Dreiser Financier
Dreiser Financier
Dreiser Financier
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
Language: English
The Financier
by Theodore Dreiser
Contents
Chapter I
Chapter II
Chapter III
Chapter IV
Chapter V
Chapter VI
Chapter VII
Chapter VIII
Chapter IX
Chapter X
Chapter XI
Chapter XII
Chapter XIII
Chapter XIV
Chapter XV
Chapter XVI
Chapter XVII
Chapter XVIII
Chapter XIX
Chapter XX
Chapter XXI
Chapter XXII
Chapter XXIII
Chapter XXIV
Chapter XXV
Chapter XXVI
Chapter XXVII
Chapter XXVIII
Chapter XXIX
Chapter XXX
Chapter XXXI
Chapter XXXII
Chapter XXXIII
Chapter XXXIV
Chapter XXXV
Chapter XXXVI
Chapter XXXVII
Chapter XXXVIII
Chapter XXXIX
Chapter XL
Chapter XLI
Chapter XLII
Chapter XLIII
Chapter XLIV
Chapter XLV
Chapter XLVI
Chapter XLVII
Chapter XLVIII
Chapter XLIX
Chapter L
Chapter LI
Chapter LII
Chapter LIII
Chapter LIV
Chapter LV
Chapter LVI
Chapter LVII
Chapter LVIII
Chapter LIX
Concerning Mycteroperca Bonaci
The Magic Crystal
Chapter I
The Philadelphia into which Frank Algernon Cowperwood was born was a
city of two hundred and fifty thousand and more. It was set with
handsome parks, notable buildings, and crowded with historic memories.
Many of the things that we and he knew later were not then in
existence—the telegraph, telephone, express company, ocean steamer,
city delivery of mails. There were no postage-stamps or registered
letters. The street car had not arrived. In its place were hosts of
omnibuses, and for longer travel the slowly developing railroad system
still largely connected by canals.
Cowperwood’s father was a bank clerk at the time of Frank’s birth, but
ten years later, when the boy was already beginning to turn a very
sensible, vigorous eye on the world, Mr. Henry Worthington Cowperwood,
because of the death of the bank’s president and the consequent moving
ahead of the other officers, fell heir to the place vacated by the
promoted teller, at the, to him, munificent salary of thirty-five
hundred dollars a year. At once he decided, as he told his wife
joyously, to remove his family from 21 Buttonwood Street to 124 New
Market Street, a much better neighborhood, where there was a nice brick
house of three stories in height as opposed to their present
two-storied domicile. There was the probability that some day they
would come into something even better, but for the present this was
sufficient. He was exceedingly grateful.
Henry Worthington Cowperwood was a man who believed only what he saw
and was content to be what he was—a banker, or a prospective one. He
was at this time a significant figure—tall, lean, inquisitorial,
clerkly—with nice, smooth, closely-cropped side whiskers coming to
almost the lower lobes of his ears. His upper lip was smooth and
curiously long, and he had a long, straight nose and a chin that tended
to be pointed. His eyebrows were bushy, emphasizing vague,
grayish-green eyes, and his hair was short and smooth and nicely
parted. He wore a frock-coat always—it was quite the thing in financial
circles in those days—and a high hat. And he kept his hands and nails
immaculately clean. His manner might have been called severe, though
really it was more cultivated than austere.
One morning he stood in front of the tank, his nose almost pressed to
the glass. Only a portion of the squid remained, and his ink-bag was
emptier than ever. In the corner of the tank sat the lobster, poised
apparently for action.
He returned that night, and lo! the expected had happened. There was a
little crowd around the tank. The lobster was in the corner. Before him
was the squid cut in two and partially devoured.
“He got him at last,” observed one bystander. “I was standing right
here an hour ago, and up he leaped and grabbed him. The squid was too
tired. He wasn’t quick enough. He did back up, but that lobster he
calculated on his doing that. He’s been figuring on his movements for a
long time now. He got him to-day.”
Frank only stared. Too bad he had missed this. The least touch of
sorrow for the squid came to him as he stared at it slain. Then he
gazed at the victor.
“The squid couldn’t kill the lobster—he had no weapon. The lobster
could kill the squid—he was heavily armed. There was nothing for the
squid to feed on; the lobster had the squid as prey. What was the
result to be? What else could it be? He didn’t have a chance,” he
concluded finally, as he trotted on homeward.
“Got who? What got what?” she inquired in amazement. “Go wash your
hands.”
“Why, that lobster got that squid I was telling you and pa about the
other day.”
“Well, that’s too bad. What makes you take any interest in such things?
Run, wash your hands.”
“Well, you don’t often see anything like that. I never did.” He went
out in the back yard, where there was a hydrant and a post with a
little table on it, and on that a shining tin-pan and a bucket of
water. Here he washed his face and hands.
“Say, papa,” he said to his father, later, “you know that squid?”
“Yes.”
But for days and weeks Frank thought of this and of the life he was
tossed into, for he was already pondering on what he should be in this
world, and how he should get along. From seeing his father count money,
he was sure that he would like banking; and Third Street, where his
father’s office was, seemed to him the cleanest, most fascinating
street in the world.
Chapter II
The growth of young Frank Algernon Cowperwood was through years of what
might be called a comfortable and happy family existence. Buttonwood
Street, where he spent the first ten years of his life, was a lovely
place for a boy to live. It contained mostly small two and three-story
red brick houses, with small white marble steps leading up to the front
door, and thin, white marble trimmings outlining the front door and
windows. There were trees in the street—plenty of them. The road
pavement was of big, round cobblestones, made bright and clean by the
rains; and the sidewalks were of red brick, and always damp and cool.
In the rear was a yard, with trees and grass and sometimes flowers, for
the lots were almost always one hundred feet deep, and the
house-fronts, crowding close to the pavement in front, left a
comfortable space in the rear.
The Cowperwoods, father and mother, were not so lean and narrow that
they could not enter into the natural tendency to be happy and joyous
with their children; and so this family, which increased at the rate of
a child every two or three years after Frank’s birth until there were
four children, was quite an interesting affair when he was ten and they
were ready to move into the New Market Street home. Henry Worthington
Cowperwood’s connections were increased as his position grew more
responsible, and gradually he was becoming quite a personage. He
already knew a number of the more prosperous merchants who dealt with
his bank, and because as a clerk his duties necessitated his calling at
other banking-houses, he had come to be familiar with and favorably
known in the Bank of the United States, the Drexels, the Edwards, and
others. The brokers knew him as representing a very sound organization,
and while he was not considered brilliant mentally, he was known as a
most reliable and trustworthy individual.
“There, my son,” said his father to him one day, “you won’t often see a
bundle of those around this neighborhood.” He referred to a series of
shares in the British East India Company, deposited as collateral at
two-thirds of their face value for a loan of one hundred thousand
dollars. A Philadelphia magnate had hypothecated them for the use of
the ready cash. Young Cowperwood looked at them curiously. “They don’t
look like much, do they?” he commented.
“They are worth just four times their face value,” said his father,
archly.
Frank reexamined them. “The British East India Company,” he read. “Ten
pounds—that’s pretty near fifty dollars.”
Young Cowperwood gave them back after a time, but not without a keen
sense of the vast ramifications of finance. What was the East India
Company? What did it do? His father told him.
There was another man his father talked about—one Francis J. Grund, a
famous newspaper correspondent and lobbyist at Washington, who
possessed the faculty of unearthing secrets of every kind, especially
those relating to financial legislation. The secrets of the President
and the Cabinet, as well as of the Senate and the House of
Representatives, seemed to be open to him. Grund had been about, years
before, purchasing through one or two brokers large amounts of the
various kinds of Texas debt certificates and bonds. The Republic of
Texas, in its struggle for independence from Mexico, had issued bonds
and certificates in great variety, amounting in value to ten or fifteen
million dollars. Later, in connection with the scheme to make Texas a
State of the Union, a bill was passed providing a contribution on the
part of the United States of five million dollars, to be applied to the
extinguishment of this old debt. Grund knew of this, and also of the
fact that some of this debt, owing to the peculiar conditions of issue,
was to be paid in full, while other portions were to be scaled down,
and there was to be a false or pre-arranged failure to pass the bill at
one session in order to frighten off the outsiders who might have heard
and begun to buy the old certificates for profit. He acquainted the
Third National Bank with this fact, and of course the information came
to Cowperwood as teller. He told his wife about it, and so his son, in
this roundabout way, heard it, and his clear, big eyes glistened. He
wondered why his father did not take advantage of the situation and buy
some Texas certificates for himself. Grund, so his father said, and
possibly three or four others, had made over a hundred thousand dollars
apiece. It wasn’t exactly legitimate, he seemed to think, and yet it
was, too. Why shouldn’t such inside information be rewarded? Somehow,
Frank realized that his father was too honest, too cautious, but when
he grew up, he told himself, he was going to be a broker, or a
financier, or a banker, and do some of these things.
Just at this time there came to the Cowperwoods an uncle who had not
previously appeared in the life of the family. He was a brother of Mrs.
Cowperwood’s—Seneca Davis by name—solid, unctuous, five feet ten in
height, with a big, round body, a round, smooth head rather bald, a
clear, ruddy complexion, blue eyes, and what little hair he had of a
sandy hue. He was exceedingly well dressed according to standards
prevailing in those days, indulging in flowered waistcoats, long,
light-colored frock-coats, and the invariable (for a fairly prosperous
man) high hat. Frank was fascinated by him at once. He had been a
planter in Cuba and still owned a big ranch there and could tell him
tales of Cuban life—rebellions, ambuscades, hand-to-hand fighting with
machetes on his own plantation, and things of that sort. He brought
with him a collection of Indian curies, to say nothing of an
independent fortune and several slaves—one, named Manuel, a tall,
raw-boned black, was his constant attendant, a bodyservant, as it were.
He shipped raw sugar from his plantation in boat-loads to the Southwark
wharves in Philadelphia. Frank liked him because he took life in a
hearty, jovial way, rather rough and offhand for this somewhat quiet
and reserved household.
He plucked at the vines, tweaked Edward’s ear, told Joseph, the second
boy, he would bring him an Indian tomahawk, and went back into the
house.
“This is the lad that interests me,” he said, after a time, laying a
hand on the shoulder of Frank. “What did you name him in full, Henry?”
“Frank Algernon.”
“Well, you might have named him after me. There’s something to this
boy. How would you like to come down to Cuba and be a planter, my boy?”
“I’m not so sure that I’d like to,” replied the eldest.
“Money!”
“Aha! What’s bred in the bone, eh? Get something of that from your
father, eh? Well, that’s a good trait. And spoken like a man, too!
We’ll hear more about that later. Nancy, you’re breeding a financier
here, I think. He talks like one.”
He looked at Frank carefully now. There was real force in that sturdy
young body—no doubt of it. Those large, clear gray eyes were full of
intelligence. They indicated much and revealed nothing.
Uncle Seneca became a frequent visitor to the house—he and his negro
body-guard, Manuel, who spoke both English and Spanish, much to the
astonishment of the children; and he took an increasing interest in
Frank.
“When that boy gets old enough to find out what he wants to do, I think
I’ll help him to do it,” he observed to his sister one day; and she
told him she was very grateful. He talked to Frank about his studies,
and found that he cared little for books or most of the study he was
compelled to pursue. Grammar was an abomination. Literature silly.
Latin was of no use. History—well, it was fairly interesting.
“You’re pretty young, my son,” observed his uncle. “You’re only how old
now? Fourteen?”
“Thirteen.”
“Well, you can’t leave school much before sixteen. You’ll do better if
you stay until seventeen or eighteen. It can’t do you any harm. You
won’t be a boy again.”
“Don’t go too fast, son. You’ll be a man soon enough. You want to be a
banker, do you?”
“Yes, sir!”
“Well, when the time comes, if everything is all right and you’ve
behaved yourself and you still want to, I’ll help you get a start in
business. If I were you and were going to be a banker, I’d first spend
a year or so in some good grain and commission house. There’s good
training to be had there. You’ll learn a lot that you ought to know.
And, meantime, keep your health and learn all you can. Wherever I am,
you let me know, and I’ll write and find out how you’ve been conducting
yourself.”
Chapter III
It was in his thirteenth year that young Cowperwood entered into his
first business venture. Walking along Front Street one day, a street of
importing and wholesale establishments, he saw an auctioneer’s flag
hanging out before a wholesale grocery and from the interior came the
auctioneer’s voice: “What am I bid for this exceptional lot of Java
coffee, twenty-two bags all told, which is now selling in the market
for seven dollars and thirty-two cents a bag wholesale? What am I bid?
What am I bid? The whole lot must go as one. What am I bid?”
“Twenty-five,” a fourth.
Then it came to dollar raises, for Castile soap was not such a vital
commodity. “Twenty-six.” “Twenty-seven.” “Twenty-eight.” “Twenty-nine.”
There was a pause. “Thirty,” observed young Cowperwood, decisively.
The auctioneer, a short lean faced, spare man with bushy hair and an
incisive eye, looked at him curiously and almost incredulously but
without pausing. He had, somehow, in spite of himself, been impressed
by the boy’s peculiar eye; and now he felt, without knowing why, that
the offer was probably legitimate enough, and that the boy had the
money. He might be the son of a grocer.
“I’m bid thirty! I’m bid thirty! I’m bid thirty for this fine lot of
Castile soap. It’s a fine lot. It’s worth fourteen cents a bar. Will
any one bid thirty-one? Will any one bid thirty-one? Will any one bid
thirty-one?”
“I’m bid thirty-two! I’m bid thirty-two! I’m bid thirty-two! Will
anybody bid thirty-three? It’s fine soap. Seven cases of fine Castile
soap. Will anybody bid thirty-three?”
Young Cowperwood’s mind was working. He had no money with him; but his
father was teller of the Third National Bank, and he could quote him as
reference. He could sell all of his soap to the family grocer, surely;
or, if not, to other grocers. Other people were anxious to get this
soap at this price. Why not he?
“Yes. Don’t be gone long. If you’re not here in an hour I’ll sell it
again.”
Young Cowperwood made no reply. He hurried out and ran fast; first, to
his mother’s grocer, whose store was within a block of his home.
Thirty feet from the door he slowed up, put on a nonchalant air, and
strolling in, looked about for Castile soap. There it was, the same
kind, displayed in a box and looking just as his soap looked.
“If I could sell you seven boxes for sixty-two dollars just like this,
would you take them?”
“Yes, sir.”
“Yes, I will,” he replied. “Are you going into the soap business?”
“No. But I know where I can get some of that soap cheap.”
He hurried out again and ran to his father’s bank. It was after banking
hours; but he knew how to get in, and he knew that his father would be
glad to see him make thirty dollars. He only wanted to borrow the money
for a day.
“What’s the trouble, Frank?” asked his father, looking up from his desk
when he appeared, breathless and red faced.
“Why, Frank,” he said, going over to a drawer where some bills were,
“are you going to become a financier already? You’re sure you’re not
going to lose on this? You know what you’re doing, do you?”
“You let me have the money, father, will you?” he pleaded. “I’ll show
you in a little bit. Just let me have it. You can trust me.”
He was like a young hound on the scent of game. His father could not
resist his appeal.
Frank ran out of the building with a briefly spoken thanks and returned
to the auction room as fast as his legs would carry him. When he came
in, sugar was being auctioned. He made his way to the auctioneer’s
clerk.
“Now?”
“Yep.”
The auctioneer watched him as he went out. In half an hour he was back
with a drayman—an idle levee-wharf hanger-on who was waiting for a job.
Frank had bargained with him to deliver the soap for sixty cents. In
still another half-hour he was before the door of the astonished Mr.
Dalrymple whom he had come out and look at the boxes before attempting
to remove them. His plan was to have them carried on to his own home if
the operation for any reason failed to go through. Though it was his
first great venture, he was cool as glass.
“Yes,” said Mr. Dalrymple, scratching his gray head reflectively. “Yes,
that’s the same soap. I’ll take it. I’ll be as good as my word. Where’d
you get it, Frank?”
Mr. Dalrymple had the drayman bring in the soap; and after some
formality—because the agent in this case was a boy—made out his note at
thirty days and gave it to him.
Frank thanked him and pocketed the note. He decided to go back to his
father’s bank and discount it, as he had seen others doing, thereby
paying his father back and getting his own profit in ready money. It
couldn’t be done ordinarily on any day after business hours; but his
father would make an exception in his case.
“Oh, no,” said his son, “you discount it and take your money. I may
want mine.”
His father smiled at his business-like air. “All right,” he said. “I’ll
fix it to-morrow. Tell me just how you did this.” And his son told him.
At seven o’clock that evening Frank’s mother heard about it, and in due
time Uncle Seneca.
“What’d I tell you, Cowperwood?” he asked. “He has stuff in him, that
youngster. Look out for him.”
Mrs. Cowperwood looked at her boy curiously at dinner. Was this the son
she had nursed at her bosom not so very long before? Surely he was
developing rapidly.
Auction sales were not to be discovered every day, however, and his
home grocer was only open to one such transaction in a reasonable
period of time, but from the very first young Cowperwood knew how to
make money. He took subscriptions for a boys’ paper; handled the agency
for the sale of a new kind of ice-skate, and once organized a band of
neighborhood youths into a union for the purpose of purchasing their
summer straw hats at wholesale. It was not his idea that he could get
rich by saving. From the first he had the notion that liberal spending
was better, and that somehow he would get along.
“I know the house,” he said. “I’ve seen you go in there. You go to the
same school my sister does, don’t you? Aren’t you Patience Barlow?” He
had heard some of the boys speak her name. “Yes. How do you know?”
“Oh, I’ve heard,” he smiled. “I’ve seen you. Do you like licorice?”
He fished in his coat and pulled out some fresh sticks that were sold
at the time.
“It isn’t very good. I’ve been carrying it a long time. I had some
taffy the other day.”
“Oh, it’s all right,” she replied, chewing the end of hers.
“I think I know who she is. I’ve seen her coming home from school.”
“Do you know Ruth Merriam?” she asked, when he was about ready to turn
off into the cobblestone road to reach his own door.
“No, why?”
“There in twenty-eight.”
“Maybe she’ll ask you,” she called back, growing more courageous as the
distance between them widened. “I’ll ask her.”
“Thanks,” he smiled.
He looked after her with a smiling face. She was very pretty. He felt a
keen desire to kiss her, and what might transpire at Ruth Merriam’s
party rose vividly before his eyes.
This was just one of the early love affairs, or puppy loves, that held
his mind from time to time in the mixture of after events. Patience
Barlow was kissed by him in secret ways many times before he found
another girl. She and others of the street ran out to play in the snow
of a winter’s night, or lingered after dusk before her own door when
the days grew dark early. It was so easy to catch and kiss her then,
and to talk to her foolishly at parties. Then came Dora Fitler, when he
was sixteen years old and she was fourteen; and Marjorie Stafford, when
he was seventeen and she was fifteen. Dora Fitter was a brunette, and
Marjorie Stafford was as fair as the morning, with bright-red cheeks,
bluish-gray eyes, and flaxen hair, and as plump as a partridge.
Just at this time his Uncle Seneca, again back in Philadelphia and
stouter and more domineering than ever, said to him one day:
“Now, Frank, if you’re ready for it, I think I know where there’s a
good opening for you. There won’t be any salary in it for the first
year, but if you mind your p’s and q’s, they’ll probably give you
something as a gift at the end of that time. Do you know of Henry
Waterman & Company down in Second Street?”
“Well, they tell me they might make a place for you as a bookkeeper.
They’re brokers in a way—grain and commission men. You say you want to
get in that line. When school’s out, you go down and see Mr.
Waterman—tell him I sent you, and he’ll make a place for you, I think.
Let me know how you come out.”
Uncle Seneca was married now, having, because of his wealth, attracted
the attention of a poor but ambitious Philadelphia society matron; and
because of this the general connections of the Cowperwoods were
considered vastly improved. Henry Cowperwood was planning to move with
his family rather far out on North Front Street, which commanded at
that time a beautiful view of the river and was witnessing the
construction of some charming dwellings. His four thousand dollars a
year in these pre-Civil-War times was considerable. He was making what
he considered judicious and conservative investments and because of his
cautious, conservative, clock-like conduct it was thought he might
reasonably expect some day to be vice-president and possibly president,
of his bank.
This offer of Uncle Seneca to get him in with Waterman & Company seemed
to Frank just the thing to start him off right. So he reported to that
organization at 74 South Second Street one day in June, and was
cordially received by Mr. Henry Waterman, Sr. There was, he soon
learned, a Henry Waterman, Jr., a young man of twenty-five, and a
George Waterman, a brother, aged fifty, who was the confidential inside
man. Henry Waterman, Sr., a man of fifty-five years of age, was the
general head of the organization, inside and out—traveling about the
nearby territory to see customers when that was necessary, coming into
final counsel in cases where his brother could not adjust matters,
suggesting and advising new ventures which his associates and hirelings
carried out. He was, to look at, a phlegmatic type of man—short, stout,
wrinkled about the eyes, rather protuberant as to stomach, red-necked,
red-faced, the least bit popeyed, but shrewd, kindly, good-natured, and
witty. He had, because of his naturally common-sense ideas and rather
pleasing disposition built up a sound and successful business here. He
was getting strong in years and would gladly have welcomed the hearty
cooperation of his son, if the latter had been entirely suited to the
business.
“I like that fellow,” Henry Waterman confided to his brother the moment
Frank had gone with instructions to report the following morning.
“There’s something to him. He’s the cleanest, briskest, most alive
thing that’s walked in here in many a day.”
“Yes,” said George, a much leaner and slightly taller man, with dark,
blurry, reflective eyes and a thin, largely vanished growth of
brownish-black hair which contrasted strangely with the egg-shaped
whiteness of his bald head. “Yes, he’s a nice young man. It’s a wonder
his father don’t take him in his bank.”
“Well, he may not be able to,” said his brother. “He’s only the cashier
there.”
“That’s right.”
“Well, we’ll give him a trial. I bet anything he makes good. He’s a
likely-looking youth.”
Henry got up and walked out into the main entrance looking into Second
Street. The cool cobble pavements, shaded from the eastern sun by the
wall of buildings on the east—of which his was a part—the noisy trucks
and drays, the busy crowds hurrying to and fro, pleased him. He looked
at the buildings over the way—all three and four stories, and largely
of gray stone and crowded with life—and thanked his stars that he had
originally located in so prosperous a neighborhood. If he had only
brought more property at the time he bought this!
“I wish that Cowperwood boy would turn out to be the kind of man I
want,” he observed to himself, meditatively. “He could save me a lot of
running these days.”
Chapter IV
The appearance of Frank Cowperwood at this time was, to say the least,
prepossessing and satisfactory. Nature had destined him to be about
five feet ten inches tall. His head was large, shapely, notably
commercial in aspect, thickly covered with crisp, dark-brown hair and
fixed on a pair of square shoulders and a stocky body. Already his eyes
had the look that subtle years of thought bring. They were inscrutable.
You could tell nothing by his eyes. He walked with a light, confident,
springy step. Life had given him no severe shocks nor rude awakenings.
He had not been compelled to suffer illness or pain or deprivation of
any kind. He saw people richer than himself, but he hoped to be rich.
His family was respected, his father well placed. He owed no man
anything. Once he had let a small note of his become overdue at the
bank, but his father raised such a row that he never forgot it. “I
would rather crawl on my hands and knees than let my paper go to
protest,” the old gentleman observed; and this fixed in his mind what
scarcely needed to be so sharply emphasized—the significance of credit.
No paper of his ever went to protest or became overdue after that
through any negligence of his.
He turned out to be the most efficient clerk that the house of Waterman
& Co. had ever known. They put him on the books at first as assistant
bookkeeper, vice Mr. Thomas Trixler, dismissed, and in two weeks George
said: “Why don’t we make Cowperwood head bookkeeper? He knows more in a
minute than that fellow Sampson will ever know.”
“All right, make the transfer, George, but don’t fuss so. He won’t be a
bookkeeper long, though. I want to see if he can’t handle some of these
transfers for me after a bit.”
The books of Messrs. Waterman & Co., though fairly complicated, were
child’s play to Frank. He went through them with an ease and rapidity
which surprised his erstwhile superior, Mr. Sampson.
“Why, that fellow,” Sampson told another clerk on the first day he had
seen Cowperwood work, “he’s too brisk. He’s going to make a bad break.
I know that kind. Wait a little bit until we get one of those rush
credit and transfer days.” But the bad break Mr. Sampson anticipated
did not materialize. In less than a week Cowperwood knew the financial
condition of the Messrs. Waterman as well as they did—better—to a
dollar. He knew how their accounts were distributed; from what section
they drew the most business; who sent poor produce and good—the varying
prices for a year told that. To satisfy himself he ran back over
certain accounts in the ledger, verifying his suspicions. Bookkeeping
did not interest him except as a record, a demonstration of a firm’s
life. He knew he would not do this long. Something else would happen;
but he saw instantly what the grain and commission business was—every
detail of it. He saw where, for want of greater activity in offering
the goods consigned—quicker communication with shippers and buyers, a
better working agreement with surrounding commission men—this house,
or, rather, its customers, for it had nothing, endured severe losses. A
man would ship a tow-boat or a car-load of fruit or vegetables against
a supposedly rising or stable market; but if ten other men did the same
thing at the same time, or other commission men were flooded with fruit
or vegetables, and there was no way of disposing of them within a
reasonable time, the price had to fall. Every day was bringing its
special consignments. It instantly occurred to him that he would be of
much more use to the house as an outside man disposing of heavy
shipments, but he hesitated to say anything so soon. More than likely,
things would adjust themselves shortly.
The Watermans, Henry and George, were greatly pleased with the way he
handled their accounts. There was a sense of security in his very
presence. He soon began to call Brother George’s attention to the
condition of certain accounts, making suggestions as to their possible
liquidation or discontinuance, which pleased that individual greatly.
He saw a way of lightening his own labors through the intelligence of
this youth; while at the same time developing a sense of pleasant
companionship with him.
Brother Henry was for trying him on the outside. It was not always
possible to fill the orders with the stock on hand, and somebody had to
go into the street or the Exchange to buy and usually he did this. One
morning, when way-bills indicated a probable glut of flour and a
shortage of grain—Frank saw it first—the elder Waterman called him into
his office and said:
“Frank, I wish you would see what you can do with this condition that
confronts us on the street. By to-morrow we’re going to be overcrowded
with flour. We can’t be paying storage charges, and our orders won’t
eat it up. We’re short on grain. Maybe you could trade out the flour to
some of those brokers and get me enough grain to fill these orders.”
“What’s your name, young man?” he asked, leaning back in his wooden
chair.
“Cowperwood.”
“So you work for Waterman & Company? You want to make a record, no
doubt. That’s why you came to me?”
“Well,” said Henry Waterman, when he reported, “you did that quick.
Sold old Genderman two hundred barrels direct, did you? That’s doing
pretty well. He isn’t on our books, is he?”
“No, sir.”
“I thought not. Well, if you can do that sort of work on the street you
won’t be on the books long.”
“That’s pretty much, seeing the way times are, but I guess he’s worth
it. He’s certainly done everything we’ve expected, and more. He’s cut
out for this business.”
“What does he say about it? Do you ever hear him say whether he’s
satisfied?”
“Oh, he likes it pretty much, I guess. You see him as much as I do.”
“Well, we’ll make it five hundred. That fellow wouldn’t make a bad
partner in this business some day. He has the real knack for it. You
see that he gets the five hundred dollars with a word from both of us.”
“Hard at it,” he said, standing under the flaring gaslight and looking
at his brisk employee with great satisfaction.
It was early evening, and the snow was making a speckled pattern
through the windows in front.
“My brother and I have been especially pleased with the way you have
handled the work here during the past six months. We wanted to make
some acknowledgment, and we thought about five hundred dollars would be
right. Beginning January first we’ll give you a regular salary of
thirty dollars a week.”
“I’m certainly much obliged to you,” said Frank. “I didn’t expect that
much. It’s a good deal. I’ve learned considerable here that I’m glad to
know.”
“Oh, don’t mention it. We know you’ve earned it. You can stay with us
as long as you like. We’re glad to have you with us.”
After dinner that evening, before leaving to call on his girl, Marjorie
Stafford, he told his father of the gift of five hundred dollars and
the promised salary.
“That’s splendid,” said the older man. “You’re doing better than I
thought. I suppose you’ll stay there.”
“Why?”
“Well, it isn’t exactly what I want to do. It’s all right, but I’d
rather try my hand at brokerage, I think. That appeals to me.”
“Don’t you think you are doing them an injustice not to tell them?”
“Not at all. They need me.” All the while surveying himself in a
mirror, straightening his tie and adjusting his coat.
He went out into the dining-room, where his mother was, and slipping
his arms around her little body, said: “What do you think, Mammy?”
“I got five hundred dollars to-night, and I get thirty a week next
year. What do you want for Christmas?”
“You don’t say! Isn’t that nice! Isn’t that fine! They must like you.
You’re getting to be quite a man, aren’t you?”
“Anything you want for Christmas this year, Margy?” he asked, after
kissing her in the dimly-lighted hall. “I got five hundred to-night.”
“Needn’t I?” he asked, squeezing her waist and kissing her mouth again.
It was fine to be getting on this way in the world and having such a
good time.
Chapter V
The following October, having passed his eighteenth year by nearly six
months, and feeling sure that he would never want anything to do with
the grain and commission business as conducted by the Waterman Company,
Cowperwood decided to sever his relations with them and enter the
employ of Tighe & Company, bankers and brokers.
Cowperwood’s meeting with Tighe & Company had come about in the
ordinary pursuance of his duties as outside man for Waterman & Company.
From the first Mr. Tighe took a keen interest in this subtle young
emissary.
“How’s business with you people?” he would ask, genially; or, “Find
that you’re getting many I.O.U.’s these days?”
Because of the unsettled condition of the country, the over-inflation
of securities, the slavery agitation, and so forth, there were
prospects of hard times. And Tighe—he could not have told you why—was
convinced that this young man was worth talking to in regard to all
this. He was not really old enough to know, and yet he did know.
“Oh, things are going pretty well with us, thank you, Mr. Tighe,”
Cowperwood would answer.
A negro slave belonging to a visitor from Cuba had just been abducted
and set free, because the laws of Pennsylvania made freedom the right
of any negro brought into the state, even though in transit only to
another portion of the country, and there was great excitement because
of it. Several persons had been arrested, and the newspapers were
discussing it roundly.
“I don’t think the South is going to stand for this thing. It’s making
trouble in our business, and it must be doing the same thing for
others. We’ll have secession here, sure as fate, one of these days.” He
talked with the vaguest suggestion of a brogue.
He turned to a new customer as young Cowperwood went out, but again the
boy struck him as being inexpressibly sound and deep-thinking on
financial matters. “If that young fellow wanted a place, I’d give it to
him,” he thought.
Finally, one day he said to him: “How would you like to try your hand
at being a floor man for me in ’change? I need a young man here. One of
my clerks is leaving.”
“Well, if you’re ready and can make the change, the place is open. Come
any time you like.”
It was only two weeks later that Frank took his departure from Waterman
& Company, interested and yet in no way flustered by his new prospects.
And great was the grief of Mr. George Waterman. As for Mr. Henry
Waterman, he was actually irritated by this defection.
“No, not at all, Mr. Waterman. It’s just that I want to get into the
straight-out brokerage business.”
“Well, that certainly is too bad. I’m sorry. I don’t want to urge you
against your own best interests. You know what you are doing. But
George and I had about agreed to offer you an interest in this thing
after a bit. Now you’re picking up and leaving. Why, damn it, man,
there’s good money in this business.”
“I know it,” smiled Cowperwood, “but I don’t like it. I have other
plans in view. I’ll never be a grain and commission man.” Mr. Henry
Waterman could scarcely understand why obvious success in this field
did not interest him. He feared the effect of his departure on the
business.
And once the change was made Cowperwood was convinced that this new
work was more suited to him in every way—as easy and more profitable,
of course. In the first place, the firm of Tighe & Co., unlike that of
Waterman & Co., was located in a handsome green-gray stone building at
66 South Third Street, in what was then, and for a number of years
afterward, the heart of the financial district. Great institutions of
national and international import and repute were near at hand—Drexel &
Co., Edward Clark & Co., the Third National Bank, the First National
Bank, the Stock Exchange, and similar institutions. Almost a score of
smaller banks and brokerage firms were also in the vicinity. Edward
Tighe, the head and brains of this concern, was a Boston Irishman, the
son of an immigrant who had flourished and done well in that
conservative city. He had come to Philadelphia to interest himself in
the speculative life there. “Sure, it’s a right good place for those of
us who are awake,” he told his friends, with a slight Irish accent, and
he considered himself very much awake. He was a medium-tall man, not
very stout, slightly and prematurely gray, and with a manner which was
as lively and good-natured as it was combative and self-reliant. His
upper lip was ornamented by a short, gray mustache.
“May heaven preserve me,” he said, not long after he came there, “these
Pennsylvanians never pay for anything they can issue bonds for.” It was
the period when Pennsylvania’s credit, and for that matter
Philadelphia’s, was very bad in spite of its great wealth. “If there’s
ever a war there’ll be battalions of Pennsylvanians marching around
offering notes for their meals. If I could just live long enough I
could get rich buyin’ up Pennsylvania notes and bonds. I think they’ll
pay some time; but, my God, they’re mortal slow! I’ll be dead before
the State government will ever catch up on the interest they owe me
now.”
It was true. The condition of the finances of the state and city was
most reprehensible. Both State and city were rich enough; but there
were so many schemes for looting the treasury in both instances that
when any new work had to be undertaken bonds were necessarily issued to
raise the money. These bonds, or warrants, as they were called, pledged
interest at six per cent.; but when the interest fell due, instead of
paying it, the city or State treasurer, as the case might be, stamped
the same with the date of presentation, and the warrant then bore
interest for not only its original face value, but the amount then due
in interest. In other words, it was being slowly compounded. But this
did not help the man who wanted to raise money, for as security they
could not be hypothecated for more than seventy per cent. of their
market value, and they were not selling at par, but at ninety. A man
might buy or accept them in foreclosure, but he had a long wait. Also,
in the final payment of most of them favoritism ruled, for it was only
when the treasurer knew that certain warrants were in the hands of “a
friend” that he would advertise that such and such warrants—those
particular ones that he knew about—would be paid.
What was more, the money system of the United States was only then
beginning slowly to emerge from something approximating chaos to
something more nearly approaching order. The United States Bank, of
which Nicholas Biddle was the progenitor, had gone completely in 1841,
and the United States Treasury with its subtreasury system had come in
1846; but still there were many, many wildcat banks, sufficient in
number to make the average exchange-counter broker a walking
encyclopedia of solvent and insolvent institutions. Still, things were
slowly improving, for the telegraph had facilitated stock-market
quotations, not only between New York, Boston, and Philadelphia, but
between a local broker’s office in Philadelphia and his stock exchange.
In other words, the short private wire had been introduced.
Communication was quicker and freer, and daily grew better.
Railroads had been built to the South, East, North, and West. There was
as yet no stock-ticker and no telephone, and the clearing-house had
only recently been thought of in New York, and had not yet been
introduced in Philadelphia. Instead of a clearing-house service,
messengers ran daily between banks and brokerage firms, balancing
accounts on pass-books, exchanging bills, and, once a week,
transferring the gold coin, which was the only thing that could be
accepted for balances due, since there was no stable national currency.
“On ’change,” when the gong struck announcing the close of the day’s
business, a company of young men, known as “settlement clerks,” after a
system borrowed from London, gathered in the center of the room and
compared or gathered the various trades of the day in a ring, thus
eliminating all those sales and resales between certain firms which
naturally canceled each other. They carried long account books, and
called out the transactions—“Delaware and Maryland sold to Beaumont and
Company,” “Delware and Maryland sold to Tighe and Company,” and so on.
This simplified the bookkeeping of the various firms, and made for
quicker and more stirring commercial transactions.
Seats “on ’change” sold for two thousand dollars each. The members of
the exchange had just passed rules limiting the trading to the hours
between ten and three (before this they had been any time between
morning and midnight), and had fixed the rates at which brokers could
do business, in the face of cut-throat schemes which had previously
held. Severe penalties were fixed for those who failed to obey. In
other words, things were shaping up for a great ’change business, and
Edward Tighe felt, with other brokers, that there was a great future
ahead.
Chapter VI
The Cowperwood family was by this time established in its new and
larger and more tastefully furnished house on North Front Street,
facing the river. The house was four stories tall and stood twenty-five
feet on the street front, without a yard.
Here the family began to entertain in a small way, and there came to
see them, now and then, representatives of the various interests that
Henry Cowperwood had encountered in his upward climb to the position of
cashier. It was not a very distinguished company, but it included a
number of people who were about as successful as himself—heads of small
businesses who traded at his bank, dealers in dry-goods, leather,
groceries (wholesale), and grain. The children had come to have
intimacies of their own. Now and then, because of church connections,
Mrs. Cowperwood ventured to have an afternoon tea or reception, at
which even Cowperwood attempted the gallant in so far as to stand about
in a genially foolish way and greet those whom his wife had invited.
And so long as he could maintain his gravity very solemnly and greet
people without being required to say much, it was not too painful for
him. Singing was indulged in at times, a little dancing on occasion,
and there was considerably more “company to dinner,” informally, than
there had been previously.
And here it was, during the first year of the new life in this house,
that Frank met a certain Mrs. Semple, who interested him greatly. Her
husband had a pretentious shoe store on Chestnut Street, near Third,
and was planning to open a second one farther out on the same street.
The occasion of the meeting was an evening call on the part of the
Semples, Mr. Semple being desirous of talking with Henry Cowperwood
concerning a new transportation feature which was then entering the
world—namely, street-cars. A tentative line, incorporated by the North
Pennsylvania Railway Company, had been put into operation on a mile and
a half of tracks extending from Willow Street along Front to Germantown
Road, and thence by various streets to what was then known as the
Cohocksink Depot; and it was thought that in time this mode of
locomotion might drive out the hundreds of omnibuses which now crowded
and made impassable the downtown streets. Young Cowperwood had been
greatly interested from the start. Railway transportation, as a whole,
interested him, anyway, but this particular phase was most fascinating.
It was already creating widespread discussion, and he, with others, had
gone to see it. A strange but interesting new type of car, fourteen
feet long, seven feet wide, and nearly the same height, running on
small iron car-wheels, was giving great satisfaction as being quieter
and easier-riding than omnibuses; and Alfred Semple was privately
considering investing in another proposed line which, if it could
secure a franchise from the legislature, was to run on Fifth and Sixth
streets.
Cowperwood, Senior, saw a great future for this thing; but he did not
see as yet how the capital was to be raised for it. Frank believed that
Tighe & Co. should attempt to become the selling agents of this new
stock of the Fifth and Sixth Street Company in the event it succeeded
in getting a franchise. He understood that a company was already
formed, that a large amount of stock was to be issued against the
prospective franchise, and that these shares were to be sold at five
dollars, as against an ultimate par value of one hundred. He wished he
had sufficient money to take a large block of them.
Meanwhile, Lillian Semple caught and held his interest. Just what it
was about her that attracted him at this age it would be hard to say,
for she was really not suited to him emotionally, intellectually, or
otherwise. He was not without experience with women or girls, and still
held a tentative relationship with Marjorie Stafford; but Lillian
Semple, in spite of the fact that she was married and that he could
have legitimate interest in her, seemed not wiser and saner, but more
worth while. She was twenty-four as opposed to Frank’s nineteen, but
still young enough in her thoughts and looks to appear of his own age.
She was slightly taller than he—though he was now his full height (five
feet ten and one-half inches)—and, despite her height, shapely,
artistic in form and feature, and with a certain unconscious placidity
of soul, which came more from lack of understanding than from force of
character. Her hair was the color of a dried English walnut, rich and
plentiful, and her complexion waxen—cream wax—-with lips of faint pink,
and eyes that varied from gray to blue and from gray to brown,
according to the light in which you saw them. Her hands were thin and
shapely, her nose straight, her face artistically narrow. She was not
brilliant, not active, but rather peaceful and statuesque without
knowing it. Cowperwood was carried away by her appearance. Her beauty
measured up to his present sense of the artistic. She was lovely, he
thought—gracious, dignified. If he could have his choice of a wife,
this was the kind of a girl he would like to have.
So came Lillian Semple, who was nothing more to him than the shadow of
an ideal. Yet she cleared up certain of his ideas in regard to women.
She was not physically as vigorous or brutal as those other women whom
he had encountered in the lupanars, thus far—raw, unashamed
contraveners of accepted theories and notions—and for that very reason
he liked her. And his thoughts continued to dwell on her,
notwithstanding the hectic days which now passed like flashes of light
in his new business venture. For this stock exchange world in which he
now found himself, primitive as it would seem to-day, was most
fascinating to Cowperwood. The room that he went to in Third Street, at
Dock, where the brokers or their agents and clerks gathered one hundred
and fifty strong, was nothing to speak of artistically—a square chamber
sixty by sixty, reaching from the second floor to the roof of a
four-story building; but it was striking to him. The windows were high
and narrow; a large-faced clock faced the west entrance of the room
where you came in from the stairs; a collection of telegraph
instruments, with their accompanying desks and chairs, occupied the
northeast corner. On the floor, in the early days of the exchange, were
rows of chairs where the brokers sat while various lots of stocks were
offered to them. Later in the history of the exchange the chairs were
removed and at different points posts or floor-signs indicating where
certain stocks were traded in were introduced. Around these the men who
were interested gathered to do their trading. From a hall on the third
floor a door gave entrance to a visitor’s gallery, small and poorly
furnished; and on the west wall a large blackboard carried current
quotations in stocks as telegraphed from New York and Boston. A
wicket-like fence in the center of the room surrounded the desk and
chair of the official recorder; and a very small gallery opening from
the third floor on the west gave place for the secretary of the board,
when he had any special announcement to make. There was a room off the
southwest corner, where reports and annual compendiums of chairs were
removed and at different signs indicating where certain stocks of
various kinds were kept and were available for the use of members.
It was useless, as Frank soon found, to try to figure out exactly why
stocks rose and fell. Some general reasons there were, of course, as he
was told by Tighe, but they could not always be depended on.
He smiled at first at the air of great secrecy and wisdom on the part
of the younger men. They were so heartily and foolishly suspicious. The
older men, as a rule, were inscrutable. They pretended indifference,
uncertainty. They were like certain fish after a certain kind of bait,
however. Snap! and the opportunity was gone. Somebody else had picked
up what you wanted. All had their little note-books. All had their
peculiar squint of eye or position or motion which meant “Done! I take
you!” Sometimes they seemed scarcely to confirm their sales or
purchases—they knew each other so well—but they did. If the market was
for any reason active, the brokers and their agents were apt to be more
numerous than if it were dull and the trading indifferent. A gong
sounded the call to trading at ten o’clock, and if there was a
noticeable rise or decline in a stock or a group of stocks, you were
apt to witness quite a spirited scene. Fifty to a hundred men would
shout, gesticulate, shove here and there in an apparently aimless
manner; endeavoring to take advantage of the stock offered or called
for.
“Five-eighths for five hundred P. and W.,” some one would call—Rivers
or Cowperwood, or any other broker.
“Five hundred at three-fourths,” would come the reply from some one
else, who either had an order to sell the stock at that price or who
was willing to sell it short, hoping to pick up enough of the stock at
a lower figure later to fill his order and make a little something
besides. If the supply of stock at that figure was large Rivers would
probably continue to bid five-eighths. If, on the other hand, he
noticed an increasing demand, he would probably pay three-fourths for
it. If the professional traders believed Rivers had a large buying
order, they would probably try to buy the stock before he could at
three-fourths, believing they could sell it out to him at a slightly
higher price. The professional traders were, of course, keen students
of psychology; and their success depended on their ability to guess
whether or not a broker representing a big manipulator, like Tighe, had
an order large enough to affect the market sufficiently to give them an
opportunity to “get in and out,” as they termed it, at a profit before
he had completed the execution of his order. They were like hawks
watching for an opportunity to snatch their prey from under the very
claws of their opponents.
Four, five, ten, fifteen, twenty, thirty, forty, fifty, and sometimes
the whole company would attempt to take advantage of the given rise of
a given stock by either selling or offering to buy, in which case the
activity and the noise would become deafening. Given groups might be
trading in different things; but the large majority of them would
abandon what they were doing in order to take advantage of a
speciality. The eagerness of certain young brokers or clerks to
discover all that was going on, and to take advantage of any given rise
or fall, made for quick physical action, darting to and fro, the
excited elevation of explanatory fingers. Distorted faces were shoved
over shoulders or under arms. The most ridiculous grimaces were
purposely or unconsciously indulged in. At times there were situations
in which some individual was fairly smothered with arms, faces,
shoulders, crowded toward him when he manifested any intention of
either buying or selling at a profitable rate. At first it seemed quite
a wonderful thing to young Cowperwood—the very physical face of it—for
he liked human presence and activity; but a little later the sense of
the thing as a picture or a dramatic situation, of which he was a part
faded, and he came down to a clearer sense of the intricacies of the
problem before him. Buying and selling stocks, as he soon learned, was
an art, a subtlety, almost a psychic emotion. Suspicion, intuition,
feeling—these were the things to be “long” on.
Yet in time he also asked himself, who was it who made the real
money—the stock-brokers? Not at all. Some of them were making money,
but they were, as he quickly saw, like a lot of gulls or stormy
petrels, hanging on the lee of the wind, hungry and anxious to snap up
any unwary fish. Back of them were other men, men with shrewd ideas,
subtle resources. Men of immense means whose enterprise and holdings
these stocks represented, the men who schemed out and built the
railroads, opened the mines, organized trading enterprises, and built
up immense manufactories. They might use brokers or other agents to buy
and sell on ’change; but this buying and selling must be, and always
was, incidental to the actual fact—the mine, the railroad, the wheat
crop, the flour mill, and so on. Anything less than straight-out sales
to realize quickly on assets, or buying to hold as an investment, was
gambling pure and simple, and these men were gamblers. He was nothing
more than a gambler’s agent. It was not troubling him any just at this
moment, but it was not at all a mystery now, what he was. As in the
case of Waterman & Company, he sized up these men shrewdly, judging
some to be weak, some foolish, some clever, some slow, but in the main
all small-minded or deficient because they were agents, tools, or
gamblers. A man, a real man, must never be an agent, a tool, or a
gambler—acting for himself or for others—he must employ such. A real
man—a financier—was never a tool. He used tools. He created. He led.
Chapter VII
In the meantime, his interest in Mrs. Semple had been secretly and
strangely growing. When he received an invitation to call at the Semple
home, he accepted with a great deal of pleasure. Their house was
located not so very far from his own, on North Front Street, in the
neighborhood of what is now known as No. 956. It had, in summer, quite
a wealth of green leaves and vines. The little side porch which
ornamented its south wall commanded a charming view of the river, and
all the windows and doors were topped with lunettes of small-paned
glass. The interior of the house was not as pleasing as he would have
had it. Artistic impressiveness, as to the furniture at least, was
wanting, although it was new and good. The pictures were—well, simply
pictures. There were no books to speak of—the Bible, a few current
novels, some of the more significant histories, and a collection of
antiquated odds and ends in the shape of books inherited from
relatives. The china was good—of a delicate pattern. The carpets and
wall-paper were too high in key. So it went. Still, the personality of
Lillian Semple was worth something, for she was really pleasing to look
upon, making a picture wherever she stood or sat.
It could not be said that she had wildly loved Mr. Semple at any time.
Although she had cheerfully married him, he was not the kind of man who
could arouse a notable passion in any woman. He was practical,
methodic, orderly. His shoe store was a good one—well-stocked with
styles reflecting the current tastes and a model of cleanliness and
what one might term pleasing brightness. He loved to talk, when he
talked at all, of shoe manufacturing, the development of lasts and
styles. The ready-made shoe—machine-made to a certain extent—was just
coming into its own slowly, and outside of these, supplies of which he
kept, he employed bench-making shoemakers, satisfying his customers
with personal measurements and making the shoes to order.
Mrs. Semple read a little—not much. She had a habit of sitting and
apparently brooding reflectively at times, but it was not based on any
deep thought. She had that curious beauty of body, though, that made
her somewhat like a figure on an antique vase, or out of a Greek
chorus. It was in this light, unquestionably, that Cowperwood saw her,
for from the beginning he could not keep his eyes off her. In a way,
she was aware of this but she did not attach any significance to it.
Thoroughly conventional, satisfied now that her life was bound
permanently with that of her husband, she had settled down to a staid
and quiet existence.
At first, when Frank called, she did not have much to say. She was
gracious, but the burden of conversation fell on her husband.
Cowperwood watched the varying expression of her face from time to
time, and if she had been at all psychic she must have felt something.
Fortunately she was not. Semple talked to him pleasantly, because in
the first place Frank was becoming financially significant, was suave
and ingratiating, and in the next place he was anxious to get richer
and somehow Frank represented progress to him in that line. One spring
evening they sat on the porch and talked—nothing very
important—slavery, street-cars, the panic—it was on then, that of
1857—the development of the West. Mr. Semple wanted to know all about
the stock exchange. In return Frank asked about the shoe business,
though he really did not care. All the while, inoffensively, he watched
Mrs. Semple. Her manner, he thought, was soothing, attractive,
delightful. She served tea and cake for them. They went inside after a
time to avoid the mosquitoes. She played the piano. At ten o’clock he
left.
About a year later, Mr. Semple died. It was an untimely death, one of
those fortuitous and in a way insignificant episodes which are,
nevertheless, dramatic in a dull way to those most concerned. He was
seized with a cold in the chest late in the fall—one of those seizures
ordinarily attributed to wet feet or to going out on a damp day without
an overcoat—and had insisted on going to business when Mrs. Semple
urged him to stay at home and recuperate. He was in his way a very
determined person, not obstreperously so, but quietly and under the
surface. Business was a great urge. He saw himself soon to be worth
about fifty thousand dollars. Then this cold—nine more days of
pneumonia—and he was dead. The shoe store was closed for a few days;
the house was full of sympathetic friends and church people. There was
a funeral, with burial service in the Callowhill Presbyterian Church,
to which they belonged, and then he was buried. Mrs. Semple cried
bitterly. The shock of death affected her greatly and left her for a
time in a depressed state. A brother of hers, David Wiggin, undertook
for the time being to run the shoe business for her. There was no will,
but in the final adjustment, which included the sale of the shoe
business, there being no desire on anybody’s part to contest her right
to all the property, she received over eighteen thousand dollars. She
continued to reside in the Front Street house, and was considered a
charming and interesting widow.
Meanwhile he called on Mrs. Semple, and the more he called the better
he liked her. There was no exchange of brilliant ideas between them;
but he had a way of being comforting and social when he wished. He
advised her about her business affairs in so intelligent a way that
even her relatives approved of it. She came to like him, because he was
so considerate, quiet, reassuring, and so ready to explain over and
over until everything was quite plain to her. She could see that he was
looking on her affairs quite as if they were his own, trying to make
them safe and secure.
“You’re so very kind, Frank,” she said to him, one night. “I’m awfully
grateful. I don’t know what I would have done if it hadn’t been for
you.”
She looked at his handsome face, which was turned to hers, with
child-like simplicity.
“Not at all. Not at all. I want to do it. I wouldn’t have been happy if
I couldn’t.”
His eyes had a peculiar, subtle ray in them—not a gleam. She felt warm
toward him, sympathetic, quite satisfied that she could lean on him.
“Well, I am very grateful just the same. You’ve been so good. Come out
Sunday again, if you want to, or any evening. I’ll be home.”
It was while he was calling on her in this way that his Uncle Seneca
died in Cuba and left him fifteen thousand dollars. This money made him
worth nearly twenty-five thousand dollars in his own right, and he knew
exactly what to do with it. A panic had come since Mr. Semple had died,
which had illustrated to him very clearly what an uncertain thing the
brokerage business was. There was really a severe business depression.
Money was so scarce that it could fairly be said not to exist at all.
Capital, frightened by uncertain trade and money conditions,
everywhere, retired to its hiding-places in banks, vaults, tea-kettles,
and stockings. The country seemed to be going to the dogs. War with the
South or secession was vaguely looming up in the distance. The temper
of the whole nation was nervous. People dumped their holdings on the
market in order to get money. Tighe discharged three of his clerks. He
cut down his expenses in every possible way, and used up all his
private savings to protect his private holdings. He mortgaged his
house, his land holdings—everything; and in many instances young
Cowperwood was his intermediary, carrying blocks of shares to different
banks to get what he could on them.
There was a long conversation—a long wait. His father came back to say
it was doubtful whether they could make the loan. Eight per cent., then
being secured for money, was a small rate of interest, considering its
need. For ten per cent. Mr. Kugel might make a call-loan. Frank went
back to his employer, whose commercial choler rose at the report.
Frank went back. “He’ll pay ten per cent.,” he said, quietly.
During all these days young Cowperwood was following these financial
complications with interest. He was not disturbed by the cause of
slavery, or the talk of secession, or the general progress or decline
of the country, except in so far as it affected his immediate
interests. He longed to become a stable financier; but, now that he saw
the inside of the brokerage business, he was not so sure that he wanted
to stay in it. Gambling in stocks, according to conditions produced by
this panic, seemed very hazardous. A number of brokers failed. He saw
them rush in to Tighe with anguished faces and ask that certain trades
be canceled. Their very homes were in danger, they said. They would be
wiped out, their wives and children put out on the street.
“But you’re pretty young, Frank,” argued his employer. “You have lots
of time to work for yourself.” In the end he parted friends with both
Tighe and Rivers. “That’s a smart young fellow,” observed Tighe,
ruefully.
“He’ll make his mark,” rejoined Rivers. “He’s the shrewdest boy of his
age I ever saw.”
Chapter VIII
Cowperwood’s world at this time was of roseate hue. He was in love and
had money of his own to start his new business venture. He could take
his street-car stocks, which were steadily increasing in value, and
raise seventy per cent. of their market value. He could put a mortgage
on his lots and get money there, if necessary. He had established
financial relations with the Girard National Bank—President Davison
there having taken a fancy to him—and he proposed to borrow from that
institution some day. All he wanted was suitable investments—things in
which he could realize surely, quickly. He saw fine prospective profits
in the street-car lines, which were rapidly developing into local
ramifications.
Cowperwood did not delude himself with any noble theories of conduct in
regard to her. She was beautiful, with a mental and physical lure for
him that was irresistible, and that was all he desired to know. No
other woman was holding him like that. It never occurred to him that he
could not or should not like other women at the same time. There was a
great deal of palaver about the sanctity of the home. It rolled off his
mental sphere like water off the feathers of a duck. He was not eager
for her money, though he was well aware of it. He felt that he could
use it to her advantage. He wanted her physically. He felt a keen,
primitive interest in the children they would have. He wanted to find
out if he could make her love him vigorously and could rout out the
memory of her former life. Strange ambition. Strange perversion, one
might almost say.
In spite of her fears and her uncertainty, Lillian Semple accepted his
attentions and interest because, equally in spite of herself, she was
drawn to him. One night, when she was going to bed, she stopped in
front of her dressing table and looked at her face and her bare neck
and arms. They were very pretty. A subtle something came over her as
she surveyed her long, peculiarly shaded hair. She thought of young
Cowperwood, and then was chilled and shamed by the vision of the late
Mr. Semple and the force and quality of public opinion.
“Why do you come to see me so often?” she asked him when he called the
following evening.
“No.”
“Well, I know you liked Mr. Semple, and I always thought you liked me
as his wife. He’s gone, though, now.”
“Yes. I like you. I like to be with you. Don’t you like me that way?”
“Why, I’ve never thought of it. You’re so much younger. I’m five years
older than you are.”
“Well, that’s true. But I know a lot of things you don’t know.” She
laughed softly, showing her pretty teeth.
It was evening. They were on the side porch. The river was before them.
“Yes, but that’s only because you’re a woman. A man can’t hope to get a
woman’s point of view exactly. But I’m talking about practical affairs
of this world. You’re not as old that way as I am.”
She looked at him. His handsome body, slowly broadening, was nearly
full grown. His face, because of its full, clear, big, inscrutable
eyes, had an expression which was almost babyish. She could not have
guessed the depths it veiled. His cheeks were pink, his hands not
large, but sinewy and strong. Her pale, uncertain, lymphatic body
extracted a form of dynamic energy from him even at this range.
“I don’t think you ought to come to see me so often. People won’t think
well of it.” She ventured to take a distant, matronly air—the air she
had originally held toward him.
“People,” he said, “don’t worry about people. People think what you
want them to think. I wish you wouldn’t take that distant air toward
me.”
“Why?”
“But you mustn’t like me. It’s wrong. I can’t ever marry you. You’re
too young. I’m too old.”
“Why, how silly! I never heard of such a thing!” she exclaimed. “It
will never be, Frank. It can’t be!”
“Now you must not come near me,” she pleaded, determinedly. “I’ll go in
the house, and I’ll not let you come any more. It’s terrible! You’re
silly! You mustn’t interest yourself in me.”
She did show a good deal of determination, and he desisted. But for the
time being only. He called again and again. Then one night, when they
had gone inside because of the mosquitoes, and when she had insisted
that he must stop coming to see her, that his attentions were
noticeable to others, and that she would be disgraced, he caught her,
under desperate protest, in his arms.
“Now, see here!” she exclaimed. “I told you! It’s silly! You mustn’t
kiss me! How dare you! Oh! oh! oh!—”
She broke away and ran up the near-by stairway to her room. Cowperwood
followed her swiftly. As she pushed the door to he forced it open and
recaptured her. He lifted her bodily from her feet and held her
crosswise, lying in his arms.
“Oh, how could you!” she exclaimed. “I will never speak to you any
more. I will never let you come here any more if you don’t put me down
this minute. Put me down!”
“I’ll put you down, sweet,” he said. “I’ll take you down,” at the same
time pulling her face to him and kissing her. He was very much aroused,
excited.
While she was twisting and protesting, he carried her down the stairs
again into the living-room, and seated himself in the great armchair,
still holding her tight in his arms.
“Oh!” she sighed, falling limp on his shoulder when he refused to let
her go. Then, because of the set determination of his face, some
intense pull in him, she smiled. “How would I ever explain if I did
marry you?” she asked, weakly. “Your father! Your mother!”
“You don’t need to explain. I’ll do that. And you needn’t worry about
my family. They won’t care.”
“Don’t worry about yours. I’m not marrying your family. I’m marrying
you. We have independent means.”
She relapsed into additional protests; but he kissed her the more.
There was a deadly persuasion to his caresses. Mr. Semple had never
displayed any such fire. He aroused a force of feeling in her which had
not previously been there. She was afraid of it and ashamed.
“You know I won’t!” she exclaimed, nervously. “The idea! Why do you
ask?”
“Well, not in a month. Wait a little while. I will marry you after a
while—after you see whether you want me.”
“Certainly not.”
“Three?”
“Well, maybe.”
“Don’t worry about me. You’ll find out how much of a boy I am.”
“Well, in three months then,” she whispered, while he rocked her cozily
in his arms.
Chapter IX
Before the first street-car line, which was a shambling affair, had
been laid on Front Street, the streets of Philadelphia had been crowded
with hundreds of springless omnibuses rattling over rough, hard,
cobblestones. Now, thanks to the idea of John Stephenson, in New York,
the double rail track idea had come, and besides the line on Fifth and
Sixth Streets (the cars running out one street and back on another)
which had paid splendidly from the start, there were many other lines
proposed or under way. The city was as eager to see street-cars replace
omnibuses as it was to see railroads replace canals. There was
opposition, of course. There always is in such cases. The cry of
probable monopoly was raised. Disgruntled and defeated omnibus owners
and drivers groaned aloud.
In the midst of this early work he married Mrs. Semple. There was no
vast to-do about it, as he did not want any and his bride-to-be was
nervous, fearsome of public opinion. His family did not entirely
approve. She was too old, his mother and father thought, and then
Frank, with his prospects, could have done much better. His sister Anna
fancied that Mrs. Semple was designing, which was, of course, not true.
His brothers, Joseph and Edward, were interested, but not certain as to
what they actually thought, since Mrs. Semple was good-looking and had
some money.
It was a warm October day when he and Lillian went to the altar, in the
First Presbyterian Church of Callowhill Street. His bride, Frank was
satisfied, looked exquisite in a trailing gown of cream lace—a creation
that had cost months of labor. His parents, Mrs. Seneca Davis, the
Wiggin family, brothers and sisters, and some friends were present. He
was a little opposed to this idea, but Lillian wanted it. He stood up
straight and correct in black broadcloth for the wedding
ceremony—because she wished it, but later changed to a smart business
suit for traveling. He had arranged his affairs for a two weeks’ trip
to New York and Boston. They took an afternoon train for New York,
which required five hours to reach. When they were finally alone in the
Astor House, New York, after hours of make-believe and public pretense
of indifference, he gathered her in his arms.
She met his eagerness with that smiling, tantalizing passivity which he
had so much admired but which this time was tinged strongly with a
communicated desire. He thought he should never have enough of her, her
beautiful face, her lovely arms, her smooth, lymphatic body. They were
like two children, billing and cooing, driving, dining, seeing the
sights. He was curious to visit the financial sections of both cities.
New York and Boston appealed to him as commercially solid. He wondered,
as he observed the former, whether he should ever leave Philadelphia.
He was going to be very happy there now, he thought, with Lillian and
possibly a brood of young Cowperwoods. He was going to work hard and
make money. With his means and hers now at his command, he might
become, very readily, notably wealthy.
Chapter X
The home atmosphere which they established when they returned from
their honeymoon was a great improvement in taste over that which had
characterized the earlier life of Mrs. Cowperwood as Mrs. Semple. They
had decided to occupy her house, on North Front Street, for a while at
least. Cowperwood, aggressive in his current artistic mood, had
objected at once after they were engaged to the spirit of the furniture
and decorations, or lack of them, and had suggested that he be allowed
to have it brought more in keeping with his idea of what was
appropriate. During the years in which he had been growing into manhood
he had come instinctively into sound notions of what was artistic and
refined. He had seen so many homes that were more distinguished and
harmonious than his own. One could not walk or drive about Philadelphia
without seeing and being impressed with the general tendency toward a
more cultivated and selective social life. Many excellent and expensive
houses were being erected. The front lawn, with some attempt at floral
gardening, was achieving local popularity. In the homes of the Tighes,
the Leighs, Arthur Rivers, and others, he had noticed art objects of
some distinction—bronzes, marbles, hangings, pictures, clocks, rugs.
So while they were gone on their honeymoon Ellsworth began the revision
on an estimated cost of three thousand dollars, including the
furniture. It was not completed for nearly three weeks after their
return; but when finished made a comparatively new house. The
dining-room bay hung low over the grass, as Frank wished, and the
windows were diamond-paned and leaded, swiveled on brass rods. The
parlor and dining-room were separated by sliding doors; but the
intention was to hang in this opening a silk hanging depicting a
wedding scene in Normandy. Old English oak was used in the dining-room,
an American imitation of Chippendale and Sheraton for the sitting-room
and the bedrooms. There were a few simple water-colors hung here and
there, some bronzes of Hosmer and Powers, a marble venus by Potter, a
now forgotten sculptor, and other objects of art—nothing of any
distinction. Pleasing, appropriately colored rugs covered the floor.
Mrs. Cowperwood was shocked by the nudity of the Venus which conveyed
an atmosphere of European freedom not common to America; but she said
nothing. It was all harmonious and soothing, and she did not feel
herself capable to judge. Frank knew about these things so much better
than she did. Then with a maid and a man of all work installed, a
program of entertaining was begun on a small scale.
Those who recall the early years of their married life can best realize
the subtle changes which this new condition brought to Frank, for, like
all who accept the hymeneal yoke, he was influenced to a certain extent
by the things with which he surrounded himself. Primarily, from certain
traits of his character, one would have imagined him called to be a
citizen of eminent respectability and worth. He appeared to be an ideal
home man. He delighted to return to his wife in the evenings, leaving
the crowded downtown section where traffic clamored and men hurried.
Here he could feel that he was well-stationed and physically happy in
life. The thought of the dinner-table with candles upon it (his idea);
the thought of Lillian in a trailing gown of pale-blue or green silk—he
liked her in those colors; the thought of a large fireplace flaming
with solid lengths of cord-wood, and Lillian snuggling in his arms,
gripped his immature imagination. As has been said before, he cared
nothing for books, but life, pictures, trees, physical contact—these,
in spite of his shrewd and already gripping financial calculations,
held him. To live richly, joyously, fully—his whole nature craved that.
But love, her pretty body, her lips, her quiet manner—the lure of all
these combined, and his two children, when they came—two in four
years—held him. He would dandle Frank, Jr., who was the first to
arrive, on his knee, looking at his chubby feet, his kindling eyes, his
almost formless yet bud-like mouth, and wonder at the process by which
children came into the world. There was so much to think of in this
connection—the spermatozoic beginning, the strange period of gestation
in women, the danger of disease and delivery. He had gone through a
real period of strain when Frank, Jr., was born, for Mrs. Cowperwood
was frightened. He feared for the beauty of her body—troubled over the
danger of losing her; and he actually endured his first worry when he
stood outside the door the day the child came. Not much—he was too
self-sufficient, too resourceful; and yet he worried, conjuring up
thoughts of death and the end of their present state. Then word came,
after certain piercing, harrowing cries, that all was well, and he was
permitted to look at the new arrival. The experience broadened his
conception of things, made him more solid in his judgment of life. That
old conviction of tragedy underlying the surface of things, like wood
under its veneer, was emphasized. Little Frank, and later Lillian,
blue-eyed and golden-haired, touched his imagination for a while. There
was a good deal to this home idea, after all. That was the way life was
organized, and properly so—its cornerstone was the home.
“Yes.”
“That’s Murtagh, the city treasurer. Say, he don’t do anything but play
a fine game. All that money to invest, and he don’t have to account for
anything except the principal. The interest goes to him.”
There were many houses, a constantly widening circle, that found him a
very trustworthy agent in disposing of note issues or note payment. He
seemed to know so quickly where to go to get the money. From the first
he made it a principle to keep twenty thousand dollars in cash on hand
in order to be able to take up a proposition instantly and without
discussion. So, often he was able to say, “Why, certainly, I can do
that,” when otherwise, on the face of things, he would not have been
able to do so. He was asked if he would not handle certain stock
transactions on ’change. He had no seat, and he intended not to take
any at first; but now he changed his mind, and bought one, not only in
Philadelphia, but in New York also. A certain Joseph Zimmerman, a
dry-goods man for whom he had handled various note issues, suggested
that he undertake operating in street-railway shares for him, and this
was the beginning of his return to the floor.
In the meanwhile his family life was changing—growing, one might have
said, finer and more secure. Mrs. Cowperwood had, for instance, been
compelled from time to time to make a subtle readjustment of her
personal relationship with people, as he had with his. When Mr. Semple
was alive she had been socially connected with tradesmen
principally—retailers and small wholesalers—a very few. Some of the
women of her own church, the First Presbyterian, were friendly with
her. There had been church teas and sociables which she and Mr. Semple
attended, and dull visits to his relatives and hers. The Cowperwoods,
the Watermans, and a few families of that caliber, had been the notable
exceptions. Now all this was changed. Young Cowperwood did not care
very much for her relatives, and the Semples had been alienated by her
second, and to them outrageous, marriage. His own family was closely
interested by ties of affection and mutual prosperity, but, better than
this, he was drawing to himself some really significant personalities.
He brought home with him, socially—not to talk business, for he
disliked that idea—bankers, investors, customers and prospective
customers. Out on the Schuylkill, the Wissahickon, and elsewhere, were
popular dining places where one could drive on Sunday. He and Mrs.
Cowperwood frequently drove out to Mrs. Seneca Davis’s, to Judge
Kitchen’s, to the home of Andrew Sharpless, a lawyer whom he knew, to
the home of Harper Steger, his own lawyer, and others. Cowperwood had
the gift of geniality. None of these men or women suspected the depth
of his nature—he was thinking, thinking, thinking, but enjoyed life as
he went.
One of his earliest and most genuine leanings was toward paintings. He
admired nature, but somehow, without knowing why, he fancied one could
best grasp it through the personality of some interpreter, just as we
gain our ideas of law and politics through individuals. Mrs. Cowperwood
cared not a whit one way or another, but she accompanied him to
exhibitions, thinking all the while that Frank was a little peculiar.
He tried, because he loved her, to interest her in these things
intelligently, but while she pretended slightly, she could not really
see or care, and it was very plain that she could not.
The children took up a great deal of her time. However, Cowperwood was
not troubled about this. It struck him as delightful and exceedingly
worth while that she should be so devoted. At the same time, her
lethargic manner, vague smile and her sometimes seeming indifference,
which sprang largely from a sense of absolute security, attracted him
also. She was so different from him! She took her second marriage quite
as she had taken her first—a solemn fact which contained no possibility
of mental alteration. As for himself, however, he was bustling about in
a world which, financially at least, seemed all alteration—there were
so many sudden and almost unheard-of changes. He began to look at her
at times, with a speculative eye—not very critically, for he liked
her—but with an attempt to weigh her personality. He had known her five
years and more now. What did he know about her? The vigor of
youth—those first years—had made up for so many things, but now that he
had her safely...
There came in this period the slow approach, and finally the
declaration, of war between the North and the South, attended with so
much excitement that almost all current minds were notably colored by
it. It was terrific. Then came meetings, public and stirring, and
riots; the incident of John Brown’s body; the arrival of Lincoln, the
great commoner, on his way from Springfield, Illinois, to Washington
via Philadelphia, to take the oath of office; the battle of Bull Run;
the battle of Vicksburg; the battle of Gettysburg, and so on.
Cowperwood was only twenty-five at the time, a cool, determined youth,
who thought the slave agitation might be well founded in human
rights—no doubt was—but exceedingly dangerous to trade. He hoped the
North would win; but it might go hard with him personally and other
financiers. He did not care to fight. That seemed silly for the
individual man to do. Others might—there were many poor, thin-minded,
half-baked creatures who would put themselves up to be shot; but they
were only fit to be commanded or shot down. As for him, his life was
sacred to himself and his family and his personal interests. He
recalled seeing, one day, in one of the quiet side streets, as the
working-men were coming home from their work, a small enlisting squad
of soldiers in blue marching enthusiastically along, the Union flag
flying, the drummers drumming, the fifes blowing, the idea being, of
course, to so impress the hitherto indifferent or wavering citizen, to
exalt him to such a pitch, that he would lose his sense of proportion,
of self-interest, and, forgetting all—wife, parents, home, and
children—and seeing only the great need of the country, fall in behind
and enlist. He saw one workingman swinging his pail, and evidently not
contemplating any such denouement to his day’s work, pause, listen as
the squad approached, hesitate as it drew close, and as it passed, with
a peculiar look of uncertainty or wonder in his eyes, fall in behind
and march solemnly away to the enlisting quarters. What was it that had
caught this man, Frank asked himself. How was he overcome so easily? He
had not intended to go. His face was streaked with the grease and dirt
of his work—he looked like a foundry man or machinist, say twenty-five
years of age. Frank watched the little squad disappear at the end of
the street round the corner under the trees.
This current war-spirit was strange. The people seemed to him to want
to hear nothing but the sound of the drum and fife, to see nothing but
troops, of which there were thousands now passing through on their way
to the front, carrying cold steel in the shape of guns at their
shoulders, to hear of war and the rumors of war. It was a thrilling
sentiment, no doubt, great but unprofitable. It meant self-sacrifice,
and he could not see that. If he went he might be shot, and what would
his noble emotion amount to then? He would rather make money, regulate
current political, social and financial affairs. The poor fool who fell
in behind the enlisting squad—no, not fool, he would not call him
that—the poor overwrought working-man—well, Heaven pity him! Heaven
pity all of them! They really did not know what they were doing.
One day he saw Lincoln—a tall, shambling man, long, bony, gawky, but
tremendously impressive. It was a raw, slushy morning of a late
February day, and the great war President was just through with his
solemn pronunciamento in regard to the bonds that might have been
strained but must not be broken. As he issued from the doorway of
Independence Hall, that famous birthplace of liberty, his face was set
in a sad, meditative calm. Cowperwood looked at him fixedly as he
issued from the doorway surrounded by chiefs of staff, local
dignitaries, detectives, and the curious, sympathetic faces of the
public. As he studied the strangely rough-hewn countenance a sense of
the great worth and dignity of the man came over him.
For days the face of Lincoln haunted him, and very often during the war
his mind reverted to that singular figure. It seemed to him
unquestionable that fortuitously he had been permitted to look upon one
of the world’s really great men. War and statesmanship were not for
him; but he knew how important those things were—at times.
Chapter XI
It was while the war was on, and after it was perfectly plain that it
was not to be of a few days’ duration, that Cowperwood’s first great
financial opportunity came to him. There was a strong demand for money
at the time on the part of the nation, the State, and the city. In
July, 1861, Congress had authorized a loan of fifty million dollars, to
be secured by twenty-year bonds with interest not to exceed seven per
cent., and the State authorized a loan of three millions on much the
same security, the first being handled by financiers of Boston, New
York, and Philadelphia, the second by Philadelphia financiers alone.
Cowperwood had no hand in this. He was not big enough. He read in the
papers of gatherings of men whom he knew personally or by reputation,
“to consider the best way to aid the nation or the State”; but he was
not included. And yet his soul yearned to be of them. He noticed how
often a rich man’s word sufficed—no money, no certificates, no
collateral, no anything—just his word. If Drexel & Co., or Jay Cooke &
Co., or Gould & Fiske were rumored to be behind anything, how secure it
was! Jay Cooke, a young man in Philadelphia, had made a great strike
taking this State loan in company with Drexel & Co., and selling it at
par. The general opinion was that it ought to be and could only be sold
at ninety. Cooke did not believe this. He believed that State pride and
State patriotism would warrant offering the loan to small banks and
private citizens, and that they would subscribe it fully and more.
Events justified Cooke magnificently, and his public reputation was
assured. Cowperwood wished he could make some such strike; but he was
too practical to worry over anything save the facts and conditions that
were before him.
His chance came about six months later, when it was found that the
State would have to have much more money. Its quota of troops would
have to be equipped and paid. There were measures of defense to be
taken, the treasury to be replenished. A call for a loan of
twenty-three million dollars was finally authorized by the legislature
and issued. There was great talk in the street as to who was to handle
it—Drexel & Co. and Jay Cooke & Co., of course.
Cowperwood pondered over this. If he could handle a fraction of this
great loan now—he could not possibly handle the whole of it, for he had
not the necessary connections—he could add considerably to his
reputation as a broker while making a tidy sum. How much could he
handle? That was the question. Who would take portions of it? His
father’s bank? Probably. Waterman & Co.? A little. Judge Kitchen? A
small fraction. The Mills-David Company? Yes. He thought of different
individuals and concerns who, for one reason and another—personal
friendship, good-nature, gratitude for past favors, and so on—would
take a percentage of the seven-percent. bonds through him. He totaled
up his possibilities, and discovered that in all likelihood, with a
little preliminary missionary work, he could dispose of one million
dollars if personal influence, through local political figures, could
bring this much of the loan his way.
One man in particular had grown strong in his estimation as having some
subtle political connection not visible on the surface, and this was
Edward Malia Butler. Butler was a contractor, undertaking the
construction of sewers, water-mains, foundations for buildings,
street-paving, and the like. In the early days, long before Cowperwood
had known him, he had been a garbage-contractor on his own account. The
city at that time had no extended street-cleaning service, particularly
in its outlying sections and some of the older, poorer regions. Edward
Butler, then a poor young Irishman, had begun by collecting and hauling
away the garbage free of charge, and feeding it to his pigs and cattle.
Later he discovered that some people were willing to pay a small charge
for this service. Then a local political character, a councilman friend
of his—they were both Catholics—saw a new point in the whole thing.
Butler could be made official garbage-collector. The council could vote
an annual appropriation for this service. Butler could employ more
wagons than he did now—dozens of them, scores. Not only that, but no
other garbage-collector would be allowed. There were others, but the
official contract awarded him would also, officially, be the end of the
life of any and every disturbing rival. A certain amount of the
profitable proceeds would have to be set aside to assuage the feelings
of those who were not contractors. Funds would have to be loaned at
election time to certain individuals and organizations—but no matter.
The amount would be small. So Butler and Patrick Gavin Comiskey, the
councilman (the latter silently) entered into business relations.
Butler gave up driving a wagon himself. He hired a young man, a smart
Irish boy of his neighborhood, Jimmy Sheehan, to be his assistant,
superintendent, stableman, bookkeeper, and what not. Since he soon
began to make between four and five thousand a year, where before he
made two thousand, he moved into a brick house in an outlying section
of the south side, and sent his children to school. Mrs. Butler gave up
making soap and feeding pigs. And since then times had been exceedingly
good with Edward Butler.
He could neither read nor write at first; but now he knew how, of
course. He had learned from association with Mr. Comiskey that there
were other forms of contracting—sewers, water-mains, gas-mains,
street-paving, and the like. Who better than Edward Butler to do it? He
knew the councilmen, many of them. Het met them in the back rooms of
saloons, on Sundays and Saturdays at political picnics, at election
councils and conferences, for as a beneficiary of the city’s largess he
was expected to contribute not only money, but advice. Curiously he had
developed a strange political wisdom. He knew a successful man or a
coming man when he saw one. So many of his bookkeepers,
superintendents, time-keepers had graduated into councilmen and state
legislators. His nominees—suggested to political conferences—were so
often known to make good. First he came to have influence in his
councilman’s ward, then in his legislative district, then in the city
councils of his party—Whig, of course—and then he was supposed to have
an organization.
“I’m not sure, sir. I’ll find out. He may have gone out.”
In a little while he was asked to come upstairs, where he found Butler
in a somewhat commercial-looking room. It had a desk, an office chair,
some leather furnishings, and a bookcase, but no completeness or
symmetry as either an office or a living room. There were several
pictures on the wall—an impossible oil painting, for one thing, dark
and gloomy; a canal and barge scene in pink and nile green for another;
some daguerreotypes of relatives and friends which were not half bad.
Cowperwood noticed one of two girls, one with reddish-gold hair,
another with what appeared to be silky brown. The beautiful silver
effect of the daguerreotype had been tinted. They were pretty girls,
healthy, smiling, Celtic, their heads close together, their eyes
looking straight out at you. He admired them casually, and fancied they
must be Butler’s daughters.
Cowperwood smiled.
He paused and looked tantalizingly out of the window, knowing full well
Cowperwood was greatly interested, and that this talk of political
influence and connections could only whet his appetite. Butler wanted
him to see clearly that fidelity was the point in this case—fidelity,
tact, subtlety, and concealment.
Butler felt the force of the temperament and the argument. He liked the
young man’s poise and balance. A number of people had spoken of
Cowperwood to him. (It was now Cowperwood & Co. The company was fiction
purely.) He asked him something about the street; how the market was
running; what he knew about street-railways. Finally he outlined his
plan of buying all he could of the stock of two given lines—the Ninth
and Tenth and the Fifteenth and Sixteenth—without attracting any
attention, if possible. It was to be done slowly, part on ’change, part
from individual holders. He did not tell him that there was a certain
amount of legislative pressure he hoped to bring to bear to get him
franchises for extensions in the regions beyond where the lines now
ended, in order that when the time came for them to extend their
facilities they would have to see him or his sons, who might be large
minority stockholders in these very concerns. It was a far-sighted
plan, and meant that the lines would eventually drop into his or his
sons’ basket.
“I’ll be delighted to work with you, Mr. Butler, in any way that you
may suggest,” observed Cowperwood. “I can’t say that I have so much of
a business as yet—merely prospects. But my connections are good. I am
now a member of the New York and Philadelphia exchanges. Those who have
dealt with me seem to like the results I get.”
“Very well, then; whenever you have a commission you can call at my
office, or write, or I will call here. I will give you my secret
operating code, so that anything you say will be strictly
confidential.”
“Well, we’ll not say anything more now. In a few days I’ll have
somethin’ for you. When I do, you can draw on my bank for what you
need, up to a certain amount.” He got up and looked out into the
street, and Cowperwood also arose.
“I hope so.”
Cowperwood went out, Butler accompanying him to the door. As he did so
a young girl bounded in from the street, red-cheeked, blue-eyed,
wearing a scarlet cape with the peaked hood thrown over her red-gold
hair.
“You’re home early. I thought you were going to stay all day?”
“Yes, well—” Butler continued, when she had gone. “Then well leave it
for a day or two. Good day.”
“Good day.”
Chapter XII
It was to Edward Malia Butler that Cowperwood turned now, some nineteen
months later when he was thinking of the influence that might bring him
an award of a portion of the State issue of bonds. Butler could
probably be interested to take some of them himself, or could help him
place some. He had come to like Cowperwood very much and was now being
carried on the latter’s books as a prospective purchaser of large
blocks of stocks. And Cowperwood liked this great solid Irishman. He
liked his history. He had met Mrs. Butler, a rather fat and phlegmatic
Irish woman with a world of hard sense who cared nothing at all for
show and who still liked to go into the kitchen and superintend the
cooking. He had met Owen and Callum Butler, the boys, and Aileen and
Norah, the girls. Aileen was the one who had bounded up the steps the
first day he had called at the Butler house several seasons before.
“Well, now, that isn’t so easy,” he commented at the end. “You ought to
know more about that than I do. I’m not a financier, as you well know.”
And he grinned apologetically.
“It’s a matter of influence,” went on Cowperwood. “And favoritism. That
I know. Drexel & Company and Cooke & Company have connections at
Harrisburg. They have men of their own looking after their interests.
The attorney-general and the State treasurer are hand in glove with
them. Even if I put in a bid, and can demonstrate that I can handle the
loan, it won’t help me to get it. Other people have done that. I have
to have friends—influence. You know how it is.”
“Them things,” Butler said, “is easy enough if you know the right
parties to approach. Now there’s Jimmy Oliver—he ought to know
something about that.” Jimmy Oliver was the whilom district attorney
serving at this time, and incidentally free adviser to Mr. Butler in
many ways. He was also, accidentally, a warm personal friend of the
State treasurer.
“Five million.”
“Five million!” Butler sat up. “Man, what are you talking about? That’s
a good deal of money. Where are you going to sell all that?”
“Five million! Prestige! You want one million. Well, now, that’s
different. That’s not such a bad idea. We ought to be able to get
that.”
He rubbed his chin some more and stared into the fire.
And Cowperwood felt confident when he left the house that evening that
Butler would not fail him but would set the wheels working. Therefore,
he was not surprised, and knew exactly what it meant, when a few days
later he was introduced to City Treasurer Julian Bode, who promised to
introduce him to State Treasurer Van Nostrand and to see that his
claims to consideration were put before the people. “Of course, you
know,” he said to Cowperwood, in the presence of Butler, for it was at
the latter’s home that the conference took place, “this banking crowd
is very powerful. You know who they are. They don’t want any
interference in this bond issue business. I was talking to Terrence
Relihan, who represents them up there”—meaning Harrisburg, the State
capital—“and he says they won’t stand for it at all. You may have
trouble right here in Philadelphia after you get it—they’re pretty
powerful, you know. Are you sure just where you can place it?”
Cowperwood smiled his inscrutable smile. There were so many ins and
outs to this financial life. It was an endless network of underground
holes, along which all sorts of influences were moving. A little wit, a
little nimbleness, a little luck-time and opportunity—these sometimes
availed. Here he was, through his ambition to get on, and nothing else,
coming into contact with the State treasurer and the governor. They
were going to consider his case personally, because he demanded that it
be considered—nothing more. Others more influential than himself had
quite as much right to a share, but they didn’t take it. Nerve, ideas,
aggressiveness, how these counted when one had luck!
He went away thinking how surprised Drexel & Co. and Cooke & Co. would
be to see him appearing in the field as a competitor. In his home, in a
little room on the second floor next his bedroom, which he had fixed up
as an office with a desk, a safe, and a leather chair, he consulted his
resources. There were so many things to think of. He went over again
the list of people whom he had seen and whom he could count on to
subscribe, and in so far as that was concerned—the award of one million
dollars—he was safe. He figured to make two per cent. on the total
transaction, or twenty thousand dollars. If he did he was going to buy
a house out on Girard Avenue beyond the Butlers’, or, better yet, buy a
piece of ground and erect one; mortgaging house and property so to do.
His father was prospering nicely. He might want to build a house next
to him, and they could live side by side. His own business, aside from
this deal, would yield him ten thousand dollars this year. His
street-car investments, aggregating fifty thousand, were paying six per
cent. His wife’s property, represented by this house, some government
bonds, and some real estate in West Philadelphia amounted to forty
thousand more. Between them they were rich; but he expected to be much
richer. All he needed now was to keep cool. If he succeeded in this
bond-issue matter, he could do it again and on a larger scale. There
would be more issues. He turned out the light after a while and went
into his wife’s boudoir, where she was sleeping. The nurse and the
children were in a room beyond.
“Well, Lillian,” he observed, when she awoke and turned over toward
him, “I think I have that bond matter that I was telling you about
arranged at last. I think I’ll get a million of it, anyhow. That’ll
mean twenty thousand. If I do we’ll build out on Girard Avenue. That’s
going to be the street. The college is making that neighborhood.”
“That’ll be fine, won’t it, Frank!” she observed, and rubbed his arm as
he sat on the side of the bed.
“We’ll have to show the Butlers some attention from now on. He’s been
very nice to me and he’s going to be useful—I can see that. He asked me
to bring you over some time. We must go. Be nice to his wife. He can do
a lot for me if he wants to. He has two daughters, too. We’ll have to
have them over here.”
She had already learned that the Butlers were rather showy—the younger
generation—that they were sensitive as to their lineage, and that money
in their estimation was supposed to make up for any deficiency in any
other respect. “Butler himself is a very presentable man,” Cowperwood
had once remarked to her, “but Mrs. Butler—well, she’s all right, but
she’s a little commonplace. She’s a fine woman, though, I think,
good-natured and good-hearted.” He cautioned her not to overlook Aileen
and Norah, because the Butlers, mother and father, were very proud of
them.
“It’s a strange world,” he thought; but his thoughts were his own, and
he didn’t propose to tell any one about them.
The bond issue, when it came, was a curious compromise; for, although
it netted him his twenty thousand dollars and more and served to
introduce him to the financial notice of Philadelphia and the State of
Pennsylvania, it did not permit him to manipulate the subscriptions as
he had planned. The State treasurer was seen by him at the office of a
local lawyer of great repute, where he worked when in the city. He was
gracious to Cowperwood, because he had to be. He explained to him just
how things were regulated at Harrisburg. The big financiers were looked
to for campaign funds. They were represented by henchmen in the State
assembly and senate. The governor and the treasurer were foot-free; but
there were other influences—prestige, friendship, social power,
political ambitions, etc. The big men might constitute a close
corporation, which in itself was unfair; but, after all, they were the
legitimate sponsors for big money loans of this kind. The State had to
keep on good terms with them, especially in times like these. Seeing
that Mr. Cowperwood was so well able to dispose of the million he
expected to get, it would be perfectly all right to award it to him;
but Van Nostrand had a counter-proposition to make. Would Cowperwood,
if the financial crowd now handling the matter so desired, turn over
his award to them for a consideration—a sum equal to what he expected
to make—in the event the award was made to him? Certain financiers
desired this. It was dangerous to oppose them. They were perfectly
willing he should put in a bid for five million and get the prestige of
that; to have him awarded one million and get the prestige of that was
well enough also, but they desired to handle the twenty-three million
dollars in an unbroken lot. It looked better. He need not be advertised
as having withdrawn. They would be content to have him achieve the
glory of having done what he started out to do. Just the same the
example was bad. Others might wish to imitate him. If it were known in
the street privately that he had been coerced, for a consideration,
into giving up, others would be deterred from imitating him in the
future. Besides, if he refused, they could cause him trouble. His loans
might be called. Various banks might not be so friendly in the future.
His constituents might be warned against him in one way or another.
“I’m glad to have seen you,” he said. “I’m glad we’ve met. I’ll drop in
and talk with you some time when I’m down this way. We’ll have lunch
together.”
The State treasurer, for some odd reason, felt that Mr. Cowperwood was
a man who could make him some money. His eye was so keen; his
expression was so alert, and yet so subtle. He told the governor and
some other of his associates about him.
Immediately he began working on plans with young Ellsworth for his new
house. He was going to build something exceptional this time, he told
Lillian. They were going to have to do some entertaining—entertaining
on a larger scale than ever. North Front Street was becoming too tame.
He put the house up for sale, consulted with his father and found that
he also was willing to move. The son’s prosperity had redounded to the
credit of the father. The directors of the bank were becoming much more
friendly to the old man. Next year President Kugel was going to retire.
Because of his son’s noted coup, as well as his long service, he was
going to be made president. Frank was a large borrower from his
father’s bank. By the same token he was a large depositor. His
connection with Edward Butler was significant. He sent his father’s
bank certain accounts which it otherwise could not have secured. The
city treasurer became interested in it, and the State treasurer.
Cowperwood, Sr., stood to earn twenty thousand a year as president, and
he owed much of it to his son. The two families were now on the best of
terms. Anna, now twenty-one, and Edward and Joseph frequently spent the
night at Frank’s house. Lillian called almost daily at his mother’s.
There was much interchange of family gossip, and it was thought well to
build side by side. So Cowperwood, Sr., bought fifty feet of ground
next to his son’s thirty-five, and together they commenced the erection
of two charming, commodious homes, which were to be connected by a
covered passageway, or pergola, which could be inclosed with glass in
winter.
The most popular local stone, a green granite was chosen; but Mr.
Ellsworth promised to present it in such a way that it would be
especially pleasing. Cowperwood, Sr., decided that he could afford to
spent seventy-five thousand dollars—he was now worth two hundred and
fifty thousand; and Frank decided that he could risk fifty, seeing that
he could raise money on a mortgage. He planned at the same time to
remove his office farther south on Third Street and occupy a building
of his own. He knew where an option was to be had on a twenty-five-foot
building, which, though old, could be given a new brownstone front and
made very significant. He saw in his mind’s eye a handsome building,
fitted with an immense plate-glass window; inside his hardwood fixtures
visible; and over the door, or to one side of it, set in bronze
letters, Cowperwood & Co. Vaguely but surely he began to see looming
before him, like a fleecy tinted cloud on the horizon, his future
fortune. He was to be rich, very, very rich.
Chapter XIII
During all the time that Cowperwood had been building himself up thus
steadily the great war of the rebellion had been fought almost to its
close. It was now October, 1864. The capture of Mobile and the Battle
of the Wilderness were fresh memories. Grant was now before Petersburg,
and the great general of the South, Lee, was making that last brilliant
and hopeless display of his ability as a strategist and a soldier.
There had been times—as, for instance, during the long, dreary period
in which the country was waiting for Vicksburg to fall, for the Army of
the Potomac to prove victorious, when Pennsylvania was invaded by
Lee—when stocks fell and commercial conditions were very bad generally.
In times like these Cowperwood’s own manipulative ability was taxed to
the utmost, and he had to watch every hour to see that his fortune was
not destroyed by some unexpected and destructive piece of news.
His personal attitude toward the war, however, and aside from his
patriotic feeling that the Union ought to be maintained, was that it
was destructive and wasteful. He was by no means so wanting in
patriotic emotion and sentiment but that he could feel that the Union,
as it had now come to be, spreading its great length from the Atlantic
to the Pacific and from the snows of Canada to the Gulf, was worth
while. Since his birth in 1837 he had seen the nation reach that
physical growth—barring Alaska—which it now possesses. Not so much
earlier than his youth Florida had been added to the Union by purchase
from Spain; Mexico, after the unjust war of 1848, had ceded Texas and
the territory to the West. The boundary disputes between England and
the United States in the far Northwest had been finally adjusted. To a
man with great social and financial imagination, these facts could not
help but be significant; and if they did nothing more, they gave him a
sense of the boundless commercial possibilities which existed
potentially in so vast a realm. His was not the order of speculative
financial enthusiasm which, in the type known as the “promoter,” sees
endless possibilities for gain in every unexplored rivulet and prairie
reach; but the very vastness of the country suggested possibilities
which he hoped might remain undisturbed. A territory covering the
length of a whole zone and between two seas, seemed to him to possess
potentialities which it could not retain if the States of the South
were lost.
At the same time, the freedom of the negro was not a significant point
with him. He had observed that race from his boyhood with considerable
interest, and had been struck with virtues and defects which seemed
inherent and which plainly, to him, conditioned their experiences.
He was not at all sure, for instance, that the negroes could be made
into anything much more significant than they were. At any rate, it was
a long uphill struggle for them, of which many future generations would
not witness the conclusion. He had no particular quarrel with the
theory that they should be free; he saw no particular reason why the
South should not protest vigorously against the destruction of their
property and their system. It was too bad that the negroes as slaves
should be abused in some instances. He felt sure that that ought to be
adjusted in some way; but beyond that he could not see that there was
any great ethical basis for the contentions of their sponsors. The vast
majority of men and women, as he could see, were not essentially above
slavery, even when they had all the guarantees of a constitution
formulated to prevent it. There was mental slavery, the slavery of the
weak mind and the weak body. He followed the contentions of such men as
Sumner, Garrison, Phillips, and Beecher, with considerable interest;
but at no time could he see that the problem was a vital one for him.
He did not care to be a soldier or an officer of soldiers; he had no
gift for polemics; his mind was not of the disputatious order—not even
in the realm of finance. He was concerned only to see what was of vast
advantage to him, and to devote all his attention to that. This
fratricidal war in the nation could not help him. It really delayed, he
thought, the true commercial and financial adjustment of the country,
and he hoped that it would soon end. He was not of those who complained
bitterly of the excessive war taxes, though he knew them to be trying
to many. Some of the stories of death and disaster moved him greatly;
but, alas, they were among the unaccountable fortunes of life, and
could not be remedied by him. So he had gone his way day by day,
watching the coming in and the departing of troops, seeing the bands of
dirty, disheveled, gaunt, sickly men returning from the fields and
hospitals; and all he could do was to feel sorry. This war was not for
him. He had taken no part in it, and he felt sure that he could only
rejoice in its conclusion—not as a patriot, but as a financier. It was
wasteful, pathetic, unfortunate.
The months proceeded apace. A local election intervened and there was a
new city treasurer, a new assessor of taxes, and a new mayor; but
Edward Malia Butler continued to have apparently the same influence as
before. The Butlers and the Cowperwoods had become quite friendly. Mrs.
Butler rather liked Lillian, though they were of different religious
beliefs; and they went driving or shopping together, the younger woman
a little critical and ashamed of the elder because of her poor grammar,
her Irish accent, her plebeian tastes—as though the Wiggins had not
been as plebeian as any. On the other hand the old lady, as she was
compelled to admit, was good-natured and good-hearted. She loved to
give, since she had plenty, and sent presents here and there to
Lillian, the children, and others. “Now youse must come over and take
dinner with us”—the Butlers had arrived at the evening-dinner period—or
“Youse must come drive with me to-morrow.”
“Aileen, God bless her, is such a foine girl,” or “Norah, the darlin’,
is sick the day.”
St. Timothy’s and the convent school in Germantown had been the choice
of her parents for her education—what they called a good Catholic
education. She had learned a great deal about the theory and forms of
the Catholic ritual, but she could not understand them. The church,
with its tall, dimly radiant windows, its high, white altar, its figure
of St. Joseph on one side and the Virgin Mary on the other, clothed in
golden-starred robes of blue, wearing haloes and carrying scepters, had
impressed her greatly. The church as a whole—any Catholic church—was
beautiful to look at—soothing. The altar, during high mass, lit with a
half-hundred or more candles, and dignified and made impressive by the
rich, lacy vestments of the priests and the acolytes, the impressive
needlework and gorgeous colorings of the amice, chasuble, cope, stole,
and maniple, took her fancy and held her eye. Let us say there was
always lurking in her a sense of grandeur coupled with a love of color
and a love of love. From the first she was somewhat sex-conscious. She
had no desire for accuracy, no desire for precise information. Innate
sensuousness rarely has. It basks in sunshine, bathes in color, dwells
in a sense of the impressive and the gorgeous, and rests there.
Accuracy is not necessary except in the case of aggressive, acquisitive
natures, when it manifests itself in a desire to seize. True
controlling sensuousness cannot be manifested in the most active
dispositions, nor again in the most accurate.
When she came out into life the little social distinctions which have
been indicated began to impress themselves on her, and she wished
sincerely that her father would build a better home—a mansion—such as
those she saw elsewhere, and launch her properly in society. Failing in
that, she could think of nothing save clothes, jewels, riding-horses,
carriages, and the appropriate changes of costume which were allowed
her for these. Her family could not entertain in any distinguished way
where they were, and so already, at eighteen, she was beginning to feel
the sting of a blighted ambition. She was eager for life. How was she
to get it?
Her room was a study in the foibles of an eager and ambitious mind. It
was full of clothes, beautiful things for all occasions—jewelry—which
she had small opportunity to wear—shoes, stockings, lingerie, laces. In
a crude way she had made a study of perfumes and cosmetics, though she
needed the latter not at all, and these were present in abundance. She
was not very orderly, and she loved lavishness of display; and her
curtains, hangings, table ornaments, and pictures inclined to
gorgeousness, which did not go well with the rest of the house.
“Yes, I know; but she has no real refinement. How could she have? Look
at her father and mother.”
“I don’t see anything so very much the matter with her,” insisted
Cowperwood. “She’s bright and good-looking. Of course, she’s only a
girl, and a little vain, but she’ll come out of that. She isn’t without
sense and force, at that.”
Aileen, as he knew, was most friendly to him. She liked him. She made a
point of playing the piano and singing for him in his home, and she
sang only when he was there. There was something about his steady, even
gait, his stocky body and handsome head, which attracted her. In spite
of her vanity and egotism, she felt a little overawed before him at
times—keyed up. She seemed to grow gayer and more brilliant in his
presence.
The most futile thing in this world is any attempt, perhaps, at exact
definition of character. All individuals are a bundle of
contradictions—none more so than the most capable.
The fact that she could ride in a carriage, live in a fine home on
Girard Avenue, visit such homes as those of the Cowperwoods and others,
was of great weight; and yet, even at this age, she realized that life
was more than these things. Many did not have them and lived.
But these facts of wealth and advantage gripped her; and when she sat
at the piano and played or rode in her carriage or walked or stood
before her mirror, she was conscious of her figure, her charms, what
they meant to men, how women envied her. Sometimes she looked at poor,
hollow-chested or homely-faced girls and felt sorry for them; at other
times she flared into inexplicable opposition to some handsome girl or
woman who dared to brazen her socially or physically. There were such
girls of the better families who, in Chestnut Street, in the expensive
shops, or on the drive, on horseback or in carriages, tossed their
heads and indicated as well as human motions can that they were
better-bred and knew it. When this happened each stared defiantly at
the other. She wanted ever so much to get up in the world, and yet
namby-pamby men of better social station than herself did not attract
her at all. She wanted a man. Now and then there was one “something
like,” but not entirely, who appealed to her, but most of them were
politicians or legislators, acquaintances of her father, and socially
nothing at all—and so they wearied and disappointed her. Her father did
not know the truly elite. But Mr. Cowperwood—he seemed so refined, so
forceful, and so reserved. She often looked at Mrs. Cowperwood and
thought how fortunate she was.
Chapter XIV
In scarcely any other city save this, where the inhabitants were of a
deadly average in so far as being commonplace was concerned, could such
a man as Stener have been elected city treasurer. The rank and file did
not, except in rare instances, make up their political program. An
inside ring had this matter in charge. Certain positions were allotted
to such and such men or to such and such factions of the party for such
and such services rendered—but who does not know politics?
Here he came under the eyes of Edward Malia Butler, and was slightly
useful to him. Then the central political committee, with Butler in
charge, decided that some nice, docile man who would at the same time
be absolutely faithful was needed for city treasurer, and Stener was
put on the ticket. He knew little of finance, but was an excellent
bookkeeper; and, anyhow, was not corporation counsel Regan, another
political tool of this great triumvirate, there to advise him at all
times? He was. It was a very simple matter. Being put on the ticket was
equivalent to being elected, and so, after a few weeks of exceedingly
trying platform experiences, in which he had stammered through
platitudinous declarations that the city needed to be honestly
administered, he was inducted into office; and there you were.
During a long period of years preceding the Civil War, and through it,
let it here be explained and remembered, the city of Philadelphia had
been in the habit, as a corporation, when there were no available funds
in the treasury, of issuing what were known as city warrants, which
were nothing more than notes or I.O.U.’s bearing six per cent.
interest, and payable sometimes in thirty days, sometimes in three,
sometimes in six months—all depending on the amount and how soon the
city treasurer thought there would be sufficient money in the treasury
to take them up and cancel them. Small tradesmen and large contractors
were frequently paid in this way; the small tradesman who sold supplies
to the city institutions, for instance, being compelled to discount his
notes at the bank, if he needed ready money, usually for ninety cents
on the dollar, while the large contractor could afford to hold his and
wait. It can readily be seen that this might well work to the
disadvantage of the small dealer and merchant, and yet prove quite a
fine thing for a large contractor or note-broker, for the city was sure
to pay the warrants at some time, and six per cent. interest was a fat
rate, considering the absolute security. A banker or broker who
gathered up these things from small tradesmen at ninety cents on the
dollar made a fine thing of it all around if he could wait.
There was just one drawback to all this. In order to get the full
advantage of this condition the large banker holding them must be an
“inside banker,” one close to the political forces of the city, for if
he was not and needed money and he carried his warrants to the city
treasurer, he would find that he could not get cash for them. But if he
transferred them to some banker or note-broker who was close to the
political force of the city, it was quite another matter. The treasury
would find means to pay. Or, if so desired by the note-broker or
banker—the right one—notes which were intended to be met in three
months, and should have been settled at that time, were extended to run
on years and years, drawing interest at six per cent. even when the
city had ample funds to meet them. Yet this meant, of course, an
illegal interest drain on the city, but that was all right also. “No
funds” could cover that. The general public did not know. It could not
find out. The newspapers were not at all vigilant, being pro-political.
There were no persistent, enthusiastic reformers who obtained any
political credence. During the war, warrants outstanding in this manner
arose in amount to much over two million dollars, all drawing six per
cent. interest, but then, of course, it began to get a little
scandalous. Besides, at least some of the investors began to want their
money back.
It is obvious that this was merely a case of robbing Peter to pay Paul.
There was no real clearing up of the outstanding debt. It was the
intention of the schemers to make it possible for the financial
politicians on the inside to reap the same old harvest by allowing the
certificates to be sold to the right parties for ninety or less,
setting up the claim that there was no market for them, the credit of
the city being bad. To a certain extent this was true. The war was just
over. Money was high. Investors could get more than six per cent.
elsewhere unless the loan was sold at ninety. But there were a few
watchful politicians not in the administration, and some newspapers and
non-political financiers who, because of the high strain of patriotism
existing at the time, insisted that the loan should be sold at par.
Therefore a clause to that effect had to be inserted in the enabling
ordinance.
Stener was greatly flattered by the visit from Mollenhauer. Rarely did
he trouble to put in a personal appearance, and then only for the
weight and effect his presence would have. He called on the mayor and
the president of council, much as he called on Stener, with a lofty,
distant, inscrutable air. They were as office-boys to him.
Since the action of at least three of these dummies will have something
to do with the development of Cowperwood’s story, they may be briefly
described. Edward Strobik, the chief of them, and the one most useful
to Mollenhauer, in a minor way, was a very spry person of about
thirty-five at this time—lean and somewhat forceful, with black hair,
black eyes, and an inordinately large black mustache. He was dapper,
inclined to noticeable clothing—a pair of striped trousers, a white
vest, a black cutaway coat and a high silk hat. His markedly ornamental
shoes were always polished to perfection, and his immaculate appearance
gave him the nickname of “The Dude” among some. Nevertheless he was
quite able on a small scale, and was well liked by many.
His two closest associates, Messrs. Thomas Wycroft and Jacob Harmon,
were rather less attractive and less brilliant. Jacob Harmon was a
thick wit socially, but no fool financially. He was big and rather
doleful to look upon, with sandy brown hair and brown eyes, but fairly
intelligent, and absolutely willing to approve anything which was not
too broad in its crookedness and which would afford him sufficient
protection to keep him out of the clutches of the law. He was really
not so cunning as dull and anxious to get along.
Thomas Wycroft, the last of this useful but minor triumvirate, was a
tall, lean man, candle-waxy, hollow-eyed, gaunt of face, pathetic to
look at physically, but shrewd. He was an iron-molder by trade and had
gotten into politics much as Stener had—because he was useful; and he
had managed to make some money—via this triumvirate of which Strobik
was the ringleader, and which was engaged in various peculiar
businesses which will now be indicated.
The companies which these several henchmen had organized under previous
administrations, and for Mollenhauer, dealt in meat, building material,
lamp-posts, highway supplies, anything you will, which the city
departments or its institutions needed. A city contract once awarded
was irrevocable, but certain councilmen had to be fixed in advance and
it took money to do that. The company so organized need not actually
slaughter any cattle or mold lamp-posts. All it had to do was to
organize to do that, obtain a charter, secure a contract for supplying
such material to the city from the city council (which Strobik, Harmon,
and Wycroft would attend to), and then sublet this to some actual
beef-slaughterer or iron-founder, who would supply the material and
allow them to pocket their profit which in turn was divided or paid for
to Mollenhauer and Simpson in the form of political donations to clubs
or organizations. It was so easy and in a way so legitimate. The
particular beef-slaughterer or iron-founder thus favored could not hope
of his own ability thus to obtain a contract. Stener, or whoever was in
charge of the city treasury at the time, for his services in loaning
money at a low rate of interest to be used as surety for the proper
performance of contract, and to aid in some instances the beef-killer
or iron-founder to carry out his end, was to be allowed not only the
one or two per cent. which he might pocket (other treasurers had), but
a fair proportion of the profits. A complacent, confidential chief
clerk who was all right would be recommended to him. It did not concern
Stener that Strobik, Harmon, and Wycroft, acting for Mollenhauer, were
incidentally planning to use a little of the money loaned for purposes
quite outside those indicated. It was his business to loan it.
However, to be going on. Some time before he was even nominated, Stener
had learned from Strobik, who, by the way, was one of his sureties as
treasurer (which suretyship was against the law, as were those of
Councilmen Wycroft and Harmon, the law of Pennsylvania stipulating that
one political servant might not become surety for another), that those
who had brought about this nomination and election would by no means
ask him to do anything which was not perfectly legal, but that he must
be complacent and not stand in the way of big municipal perquisites nor
bite the hands that fed him. It was also made perfectly plain to him,
that once he was well in office a little money for himself was to be
made. As has been indicated, he had always been a poor man. He had seen
all those who had dabbled in politics to any extent about him
heretofore do very well financially indeed, while he pegged along as an
insurance and real-estate agent. He had worked hard as a small
political henchman. Other politicians were building themselves nice
homes in newer portions of the city. They were going off to New York or
Harrisburg or Washington on jaunting parties. They were seen in happy
converse at road-houses or country hotels in season with their wives or
their women favorites, and he was not, as yet, of this happy throng.
Naturally now that he was promised something, he was interested and
compliant. What might he not get?
“Just what would you do about this?” he asked of Strobik, who knew of
Mollenhauer’s visit before Stener told him, and was waiting for Stener
to speak to him. “Mr. Mollenhauer talks about having this new loan
listed on ’change and brought to par so that it will sell for one
hundred.”
Neither Strobik, Harmon, nor Wycroft knew how the certificates of city
loan, which were worth only ninety on the open market, were to be made
to sell for one hundred on ’change, but Mollenhauer’s secretary, one
Abner Sengstack, had suggested to Strobik that, since Butler was
dealing with young Cowperwood and Mollenhauer did not care particularly
for his private broker in this instance, it might be as well to try
Cowperwood.
“How do you do, Mr. Stener?” he said in his soft, ingratiating voice,
as the latter held out his hand. “I am glad to meet you. I have heard
of you before, of course.”
“I tell you what I’d like to do, Mr. Stener,” he said, after he had
listened to his explanation and asked how much of the city loan he
would like to sell during the coming year. “I’ll be glad to undertake
it. But I’d like to have a day or two in which to think it over.”
He shook hands with Stener, and they parted. Cowperwood was satisfied
that he was on the verge of a significant combination, and Stener that
he had found someone on whom he could lean.
Chapter XV
The houses and the bank-front of Cowperwood & Co. had been proceeding
apace. The latter was early Florentine in its decorations with windows
which grew narrower as they approached the roof, and a door of wrought
iron set between delicately carved posts, and a straight lintel of
brownstone. It was low in height and distinguished in appearance. In
the center panel had been hammered a hand, delicately wrought, thin and
artistic, holding aloft a flaming brand. Ellsworth informed him that
this had formerly been a money-changer’s sign used in old Venice, the
significance of which had long been forgotten.
“Wait till you see them. I think you will be pleased, Mr. Cowperwood. I
am taking especial pains with yours because it is smaller. It is really
easier to treat your father’s. But yours—” He went off into a
description of the entrance-hall, reception-room and parlor, which he
was arranging and decorating in such a way as to give an effect of size
and dignity not really conformable to the actual space.
And when the houses were finished, they were effective and
arresting—quite different from the conventional residences of the
street. They were separated by a space of twenty feet, laid out as
greensward. The architect had borrowed somewhat from the Tudor school,
yet not so elaborated as later became the style in many of the
residences in Philadelphia and elsewhere. The most striking features
were rather deep-recessed doorways under wide, low, slightly floriated
arches, and three projecting windows of rich form, one on the second
floor of Frank’s house, two on the facade of his father’s. There were
six gables showing on the front of the two houses, two on Frank’s and
four on his father’s. In the front of each house on the ground floor
was a recessed window unconnected with the recessed doorways, formed by
setting the inner external wall back from the outer face of the
building. This window looked out through an arched opening to the
street, and was protected by a dwarf parapet or balustrade. It was
possible to set potted vines and flowers there, which was later done,
giving a pleasant sense of greenery from the street, and to place a few
chairs there, which were reached via heavily barred French casements.
The rooms, which were now slowly being decorated and furnished in
period styles were very significant in that they enlarged and
strengthened Frank Cowperwood’s idea of the world of art in general. It
was an enlightening and agreeable experience—one which made for
artistic and intellectual growth—to hear Ellsworth explain at length
the styles and types of architecture and furniture, the nature of woods
and ornaments employed, the qualities and peculiarities of hangings,
draperies, furniture panels, and door coverings. Ellsworth was a
student of decoration as well as of architecture, and interested in the
artistic taste of the American people, which he fancied would some day
have a splendid outcome. He was wearied to death of the prevalent
Romanesque composite combinations of country and suburban villa. The
time was ripe for something new. He scarcely knew what it would be; but
this that he had designed for Cowperwood and his father was at least
different, as he said, while at the same time being reserved, simple,
and pleasing. It was in marked contrast to the rest of the architecture
of the street. Cowperwood’s dining-room, reception-room, conservatory,
and butler’s pantry he had put on the first floor, together with the
general entry-hall, staircase, and coat-room under the stairs. For the
second floor he had reserved the library, general living-room, parlor,
and a small office for Cowperwood, together with a boudoir for Lillian,
connected with a dressing-room and bath.
On the third floor, neatly divided and accommodated with baths and
dressing-rooms, were the nursery, the servants’ quarters, and several
guest-chambers.
The sight of his new house going up made Cowperwood feel of more weight
in the world, and the possession of his suddenly achieved connection
with the city treasurer was as though a wide door had been thrown open
to the Elysian fields of opportunity. He rode about the city those days
behind a team of spirited bays, whose glossy hides and metaled harness
bespoke the watchful care of hostler and coachman. Ellsworth was
building an attractive stable in the little side street back of the
houses, for the joint use of both families. He told Mrs. Cowperwood
that he intended to buy her a victoria—as the low, open, four-wheeled
coach was then known—as soon as they were well settled in their new
home, and that they were to go out more. There was some talk about the
value of entertaining—that he would have to reach out socially for
certain individuals who were not now known to him. Together with Anna,
his sister, and his two brothers, Joseph and Edward, they could use the
two houses jointly. There was no reason why Anna should not make a
splendid match. Joe and Ed might marry well, since they were not
destined to set the world on fire in commerce. At least it would not
hurt them to try.
“Don’t you think you will like that?” he asked his wife, referring to
his plans for entertaining.
Chapter XVI
It was not long after the arrangement between Treasurer Stener and
Cowperwood had been made that the machinery for the carrying out of
that political-financial relationship was put in motion. The sum of two
hundred and ten thousand dollars in six per cent. interest-bearing
certificates, payable in ten years, was set over to the credit of
Cowperwood & Co. on the books of the city, subject to his order. Then,
with proper listing, he began to offer it in small amounts at more than
ninety, at the same time creating the impression that it was going to
be a prosperous investment. The certificates gradually rose and were
unloaded in rising amounts until one hundred was reached, when all the
two hundred thousand dollars’ worth—two thousand certificates in
all—was fed out in small lots. Stener was satisfied. Two hundred shares
had been carried for him and sold at one hundred, which netted him two
thousand dollars. It was illegitimate gain, unethical; but his
conscience was not very much troubled by that. He had none, truly. He
saw visions of a halcyon future.
Cowperwood knew that there were such properties. His very alert mind
had long since sensed the general opportunities here. The omnibuses
were slowly disappearing. The best routes were already preempted.
Still, there were other streets, and the city was growing. The incoming
population would make great business in the future. One could afford to
pay almost any price for the short lines already built if one could
wait and extend the lines into larger and better areas later. And
already he had conceived in his own mind the theory of the “endless
chain,” or “argeeable formula,” as it was later termed, of buying a
certain property on a long-time payment and issuing stocks or bonds
sufficient not only to pay your seller, but to reimburse you for your
trouble, to say nothing of giving you a margin wherewith to invest in
other things—allied properties, for instance, against which more bonds
could be issued, and so on, ad infinitum. It became an old story later,
but it was new at that time, and he kept the thought closely to
himself. None the less he was glad to have Stener speak of this, since
street-railways were his hobby, and he was convinced that he would be a
great master of them if he ever had an opportunity to control them.
Cowperwood knew that Stener did not have any two or three hundred
thousand dollars to invest in anything. There was only one way that he
could get it—and that was to borrow it out of the city treasury and
forego the interest. But he would not do that on his own initiative.
Some one else must be behind him and who else other than Mollenhauer,
or Simpson, or possibly even Butler, though he doubted that, unless the
triumvirate were secretly working together. But what of it? The larger
politicians were always using the treasury, and he was thinking now,
only, of his own attitude in regard to the use of this money. No harm
could come to him, if Stener’s ventures were successful; and there was
no reason why they should not be. Even if they were not he would be
merely acting as an agent. In addition, he saw how in the manipulation
of this money for Stener he could probably eventually control certain
lines for himself.
There was one line being laid out to within a few blocks of his new
home—the Seventeenth and Nineteenth Street line it was called—which
interested him greatly. He rode on it occasionally when he was delayed
or did not wish to trouble about a vehicle. It ran through two thriving
streets of red-brick houses, and was destined to have a great future
once the city grew large enough. As yet it was really not long enough.
If he could get that, for instance, and combine it with Butler’s lines,
once they were secured—or Mollenhauer’s, or Simpson’s, the legislature
could be induced to give them additional franchises. He even dreamed of
a combination between Butler, Mollenhauer, Simpson, and himself.
Between them, politically, they could get anything. But Butler was not
a philanthropist. He would have to be approached with a very sizable
bird in hand. The combination must be obviously advisable. Besides, he
was dealing for Butler in street-railway stocks, and if this particular
line were such a good thing Butler might wonder why it had not been
brought to him in the first place. It would be better, Frank thought,
to wait until he actually had it as his own, in which case it would be
a different matter. Then he could talk as a capitalist. He began to
dream of a city-wide street-railway system controlled by a few men, or
preferably himself alone.
Chapter XVII
The days that had been passing brought Frank Cowperwood and Aileen
Butler somewhat closer together in spirit. Because of the pressure of
his growing affairs he had not paid so much attention to her as he
might have, but he had seen her often this past year. She was now
nineteen and had grown into some subtle thoughts of her own. For one
thing, she was beginning to see the difference between good taste and
bad taste in houses and furnishings.
“Papa, why do we stay in this old barn?” she asked her father one
evening at dinner, when the usual family group was seated at the table.
“What’s the matter with this house, I’d like to know?” demanded Butler,
who was drawn up close to the table, his napkin tucked comfortably
under his chin, for he insisted on this when company was not present.
“I don’t see anything the matter with this house. Your mother and I
manage to live in it well enough.”
“Oh, it’s terrible, papa. You know it,” supplemented Norah, who was
seventeen and quite as bright as her sister, though a little less
experienced. “Everybody says so. Look at all the nice houses that are
being built everywhere about here.”
The question in just this form had been up a number of times before,
and had been handled in just this manner, or passed over entirely with
a healthy Irish grin. To-night, however, it was destined for a little
more extended thought.
“You know it’s bad, papa,” corrected Aileen, firmly. “Now what’s the
use getting mad about it? It’s old and cheap and dingy. The furniture
is all worn out. That old piano in there ought to be given away. I
won’t play on it any more. The Cowperwoods—”
“Old is it!” exclaimed Butler, his accent sharpening somewhat with his
self-induced rage. He almost pronounced it “owled.” “Dingy, hi! Where
do you get that? At your convent, I suppose. And where is it worn? Show
me where it’s worn.”
“Children! children!” (Mr. Butler, for all his commercial and political
responsibility, was as much a child to her as any.) “Youse mustn’t
quarrel now. Come now. Give your father the tomatoes.”
There was an Irish maid serving at table; but plates were passed from
one to the other just the same. A heavily ornamented chandelier,
holding sixteen imitation candles in white porcelain, hung low over the
table and was brightly lighted, another offense to Aileen.
“Mama, how often have I told you not to say ‘youse’?” pleaded Norah,
very much disheartened by her mother’s grammatical errors. “You know
you said you wouldn’t.”
“And who’s to tell your mother what she should say?” called Butler,
more incensed than ever at this sudden and unwarranted rebellion and
assault. “Your mother talked before ever you was born, I’d have you
know. If it weren’t for her workin’ and slavin’ you wouldn’t have any
fine manners to be paradin’ before her. I’d have you know that. She’s a
better woman nor any you’ll be runnin’ with this day, you little
baggage, you!”
“Mama, do you hear what he’s calling me?” complained Norah, hugging
close to her mother’s arm and pretending fear and dissatisfaction.
“Eddie! Eddie!” cautioned Mrs. Butler, pleading with her husband. “You
know he don’t mean that, Norah, dear. Don’t you know he don’t?”
She was stroking her baby’s head. The reference to her grammar had not
touched her at all.
Butler was sorry that he had called his youngest a baggage; but these
children—God bless his soul—were a great annoyance. Why, in the name of
all the saints, wasn’t this house good enough for them?
“Why don’t you people quit fussing at the table?” observed Callum, a
likely youth, with black hair laid smoothly over his forehead in a
long, distinguished layer reaching from his left to close to his right
ear, and his upper lip carrying a short, crisp mustache. His nose was
short and retrousse, and his ears were rather prominent; but he was
bright and attractive. He and Owen both realized that the house was old
and poorly arranged; but their father and mother liked it, and business
sense and family peace dictated silence on this score.
“Well, I think it’s mean to have to live in this old place when people
not one-fourth as good as we are are living in better ones. The
Cowperwoods—why, even the Cowperwoods—”
“Why, even they have a better house than we have, and he’s merely an
agent of yours.”
“The Cowperwoods! The Cowperwoods! I’ll not have any talk about the
Cowperwoods. I’m not takin’ my rules from the Cowperwoods. Suppose they
have a fine house, what of it? My house is my house. I want to live
here. I’ve lived here too long to be pickin’ up and movin’ away. If you
don’t like it you know what else you can do. Move if you want to. I’ll
not move.”
“You surely are not going to go on fighting about that now,” pleaded
Mrs. Butler, as strong and patient as fate itself. She knew where
Aileen’s trouble lay.
“But we might have a decent house,” insisted Aileen. “Or this one done
over,” whispered Norah to her mother.
“Hush now! In good time,” replied Mrs. Butler to Norah. “Wait. We’ll
fix it all up some day, sure. You run to your lessons now. You’ve had
enough.”
Norah arose and left. Aileen subsided. Her father was simply stubborn
and impossible. And yet he was sweet, too. She pouted in order to
compel him to apologize.
“Come now,” he said, after they had left the table, and conscious of
the fact that his daughter was dissatisfied with him. He must do
something to placate her. “Play me somethin’ on the piano, somethin’
nice.” He preferred showy, clattery things which exhibited her skill
and muscular ability and left him wondering how she did it. That was
what education was for—to enable her to play these very difficult
things quickly and forcefully. “And you can have a new piano any time
you like. Go and see about it. This looks pretty good to me, but if you
don’t want it, all right.” Aileen squeezed his arm. What was the use of
arguing with her father? What good would a lone piano do, when the
whole house and the whole family atmosphere were at fault? But she
played Schumann, Schubert, Offenbach, Chopin, and the old gentleman
strolled to and fro and mused, smiling. There was real feeling and a
thoughtful interpretation given to some of these things, for Aileen was
not without sentiment, though she was so strong, vigorous, and withal
so defiant; but it was all lost on him. He looked on her, his bright,
healthy, enticingly beautiful daughter, and wondered what was going to
become of her. Some rich man was going to many her—some fine, rich
young man with good business instincts—and he, her father, would leave
her a lot of money.
It was not possible, however, not to invite the Butlers, parents and
children, particularly the children, for both afternoon and evening,
since Cowperwood was personally attracted to Aileen and despite the
fact that the presence of the parents would be most unsatisfactory.
Even Aileen as he knew was a little unsatisfactory to Anna and Mrs.
Frank Cowperwood; and these two, when they were together supervising
the list of invitations, often talked about it.
Mrs. Cowperwood, who was before her secretaire in her new boudoir,
lifted her eyebrows.
“You know, Anna, I sometimes wish that Frank’s business did not compel
me to have anything to do with them. Mrs. Butler is such a bore. She
means well enough, but she doesn’t know anything. And Aileen is too
rough. She’s too forward, I think. She comes over here and plays upon
the piano, particularly when Frank’s here. I wouldn’t mind so much for
myself, but I know it must annoy him. All her pieces are so noisy. She
never plays anything really delicate and refined.”
“I suppose we’ll have to invite her; I don’t see how we can get out of
it. I know just how she’ll do, though. She’ll walk about and pose and
hold her nose up.”
“Really, I don’t see how she can,” commented Anna. “Now, I like Norah.
She’s much nicer. She doesn’t think she’s so much.”
“I like Norah, too,” added Mrs. Cowperwood. “She’s really very sweet,
and to me she’s prettier.”
It was curious, though, that it was Aileen who commanded nearly all
their attention and fixed their minds on her so-called idiosyncrasies.
All they said was in its peculiar way true; but in addition the girl
was really beautiful and much above the average intelligence and force.
She was running deep with ambition, and she was all the more
conspicuous, and in a way irritating to some, because she reflected in
her own consciousness her social defects, against which she was
inwardly fighting. She resented the fact that people could justly
consider her parents ineligible, and for that reason her also. She was
intrinsically as worth while as any one. Cowperwood, so able, and
rapidly becoming so distinguished, seemed to realize it. The days that
had been passing had brought them somewhat closer together in spirit.
He was nice to her and liked to talk to her. Whenever he was at her
home now, or she was at his and he was present, he managed somehow to
say a word. He would come over quite near and look at her in a warm
friendly fashion.
“Well, Aileen”—she could see his genial eyes—“how is it with you? How
are your father and mother? Been out driving? That’s fine. I saw you
to-day. You looked beautiful.”
“You did. You looked stunning. A black riding-habit becomes you. I can
tell your gold hair a long way off.”
“Oh, now, you mustn’t say that to me. You’ll make me vain. My mother
and father tell me I’m too vain as it is.”
“Never mind your mother and father. I say you looked stunning, and you
did. You always do.”
“Oh!”
She gave a little gasp of delight. The color mounted to her cheeks and
temples. Mr. Cowperwood knew of course. He was so informed and
intensely forceful. And already he was so much admired by so many, her
own father and mother included, and by Mr. Mollenhauer and Mr. Simpson,
so she heard. And his own home and office were so beautiful. Besides,
his quiet intensity matched her restless force.
Aileen and her sister were accordingly invited to the reception but the
Butlers mere and pere were given to understand, in as tactful a manner
as possible, that the dance afterward was principally for young people.
The reception brought a throng of people. There were many, very many,
introductions. There were tactful descriptions of little effects Mr.
Ellsworth had achieved under rather trying circumstances; walks under
the pergola; viewings of both homes in detail. Many of the guests were
old friends. They gathered in the libraries and dining-rooms and
talked. There was much jesting, some slappings of shoulders, some good
story-telling, and so the afternoon waned into evening, and they went
away.
She had swung herself with a slight, swaggering stride into the
dining-room and disappeared. Norah and her mother stayed to chat with
Mrs. Cowperwood.
“Well, it’s lovely now, isn’t it?” breathed Mrs. Butler. “Sure you’ll
be happy here. Sure you will. When Eddie fixed the house we’re in now,
says I: ‘Eddie, it’s almost too fine for us altogether—surely it is,’
and he says, says ’e, ‘Norah, nothin’ this side o’ heavin or beyond is
too good for ye’—and he kissed me. Now what d’ye think of that fer a
big, hulkin’ gossoon?”
“Mama does love to talk so. Come on, mama. Let’s look at the
dining-room.” It was Norah talking.
“Well, may ye always be happy in it. I wish ye that. I’ve always been
happy in mine. May ye always be happy.” And she waddled good-naturedly
along.
The Cowperwood family dined hastily alone between seven and eight. At
nine the evening guests began to arrive, and now the throng was of a
different complexion—girls in mauve and cream-white and salmon-pink and
silver-gray, laying aside lace shawls and loose dolmans, and the men in
smooth black helping them. Outside in the cold, the carriage doors were
slamming, and new guests were arriving constantly. Mrs. Cowperwood
stood with her husband and Anna in the main entrance to the reception
room, while Joseph and Edward Cowperwood and Mr. and Mrs. Henry W.
Cowperwood lingered in the background. Lillian looked charming in a
train gown of old rose, with a low, square neck showing a delicate
chemisette of fine lace. Her face and figure were still notable, though
her face was not as smoothly sweet as it had been years before when
Cowperwood had first met her. Anna Cowperwood was not pretty, though
she could not be said to be homely. She was small and dark, with a
turned-up nose, snapping black eyes, a pert, inquisitive, intelligent,
and alas, somewhat critical, air. She had considerable tact in the
matter of dressing. Black, in spite of her darkness, with shining beads
of sequins on it, helped her complexion greatly, as did a red rose in
her hair. She had smooth, white well-rounded arms and shoulders. Bright
eyes, a pert manner, clever remarks—these assisted to create an
illusion of charm, though, as she often said, it was of little use.
“Men want the dolly things.”
In the evening inpour of young men and women came Aileen and Norah, the
former throwing off a thin net veil of black lace and a dolman of black
silk, which her brother Owen took from her. Norah was with Callum, a
straight, erect, smiling young Irishman, who looked as though he might
carve a notable career for himself. She wore a short, girlish dress
that came to a little below her shoe-tops, a pale-figured lavender and
white silk, with a fluffy hoop-skirt of dainty laced-edged ruffles,
against which tiny bows of lavender stood out in odd places. There was
a great sash of lavender about her waist, and in her hair a rosette of
the same color. She looked exceedingly winsome—eager and bright-eyed.
But behind her was her sister in ravishing black satin, scaled as a
fish with glistening crimsoned-silver sequins, her round, smooth arms
bare to the shoulders, her corsage cut as low in the front and back as
her daring, in relation to her sense of the proprieties, permitted. She
was naturally of exquisite figure, erect, full-breasted, with somewhat
more than gently swelling hips, which, nevertheless, melted into
lovely, harmonious lines; and this low-cut corsage, receding back and
front into a deep V, above a short, gracefully draped overskirt of
black tulle and silver tissue, set her off to perfection. Her full,
smooth, roundly modeled neck was enhanced in its cream-pink whiteness
by an inch-wide necklet of black jet cut in many faceted black squares.
Her complexion, naturally high in tone because of the pink of health,
was enhanced by the tiniest speck of black court-plaster laid upon her
cheekbone; and her hair, heightened in its reddish-gold by her dress,
was fluffed loosely and adroitly about her eyes. The main mass of this
treasure was done in two loose braids caught up in a black spangled net
at the back of her neck; and her eyebrows had been emphasized by a
pencil into something almost as significant as her hair. She was, for
the occasion, a little too emphatic, perhaps, and yet more because of
her burning vitality than of her costume. Art for her should have meant
subduing her physical and spiritual significance. Life for her meant
emphasizing them.
“Lillian!” Anna nudged her sister-in-law. She was grieved to think that
Aileen was wearing black and looked so much better than either of them.
“So you’re back again.” She was addressing Aileen. “It’s chilly out,
isn’t it?”
She was gazing at the softly lighted chambers and the throng before
her.
Norah began to babble to Anna. “You know, I just thought I never would
get this old thing on.” She was speaking of her dress. “Aileen wouldn’t
help me—the mean thing!”
Aileen had swept on to Cowperwood and his mother, who was near him. She
had removed from her arm the black satin ribbon which held her train
and kicked the skirts loose and free. Her eyes gleamed almost
pleadingly for all her hauteur, like a spirited collie’s, and her even
teeth showed beautifully.
“I can’t tell you how nice you look,” he whispered to her, familiarly,
as though there was an old understanding between them. “You’re like
fire and song.”
He did not know why he said this. He was not especially poetic. He had
not formulated the phrase beforehand. Since his first glimpse of her in
the hall, his feelings and ideas had been leaping and plunging like
spirited horses. This girl made him set his teeth and narrow his eyes.
Involuntarily he squared his jaw, looking more defiant, forceful,
efficient, as she drew near.
But Aileen and her sister were almost instantly surrounded by young men
seeking to be introduced and to write their names on dance-cards, and
for the time being she was lost to view.
Chapter XVIII
A vision of him had come to her but an hour before as she was dressing.
In a way she had dressed for him. She was never forgetful of the times
he had looked at her in an interested way. He had commented on her
hands once. To-day he had said that she looked “stunning,” and she had
thought how easy it would be to impress him to-night—to show him how
truly beautiful she was.
She had stood before her mirror between eight and nine—it was
nine-fifteen before she was really ready—and pondered over what she
should wear. There were two tall pier-glasses in her wardrobe—an unduly
large piece of furniture—and one in her closet door. She stood before
the latter, looking at her bare arms and shoulders, her shapely figure,
thinking of the fact that her left shoulder had a dimple, and that she
had selected garnet garters decorated with heart-shaped silver buckles.
The corset could not be made quite tight enough at first, and she
chided her maid, Kathleen Kelly. She studied how to arrange her hair,
and there was much ado about that before it was finally adjusted. She
penciled her eyebrows and plucked at the hair about her forehead to
make it loose and shadowy. She cut black court-plaster with her
nail-shears and tried different-sized pieces in different places.
Finally, she found one size and one place that suited her. She turned
her head from side to side, looking at the combined effect of her hair,
her penciled brows, her dimpled shoulder, and the black beauty-spot. If
some one man could see her as she was now, some time! Which man? That
thought scurried back like a frightened rat into its hole. She was, for
all her strength, afraid of the thought of the one—the very deadly—the
man.
And then she came to the matter of a train-gown. Kathleen laid out
five, for Aileen had come into the joy and honor of these things
recently, and she had, with the permission of her mother and father,
indulged herself to the full. She studied a golden-yellow silk, with
cream-lace shoulder-straps, and some gussets of garnet beads in the
train that shimmered delightfully, but set it aside. She considered
favorably a black-and-white striped silk of odd gray effect, and,
though she was sorely tempted to wear it, finally let it go. There was
a maroon dress, with basque and overskirt over white silk; a rich
cream-colored satin; and then this black sequined gown, which she
finally chose. She tried on the cream-colored satin first, however,
being in much doubt about it; but her penciled eyes and beauty-spot did
not seem to harmonize with it. Then she put on the black silk with its
glistening crimsoned-silver sequins, and, lo, it touched her. She liked
its coquettish drapery of tulle and silver about the hips. The
“overskirt,” which was at that time just coming into fashion, though
avoided by the more conservative, had been adopted by Aileen with
enthusiasm. She thrilled a little at the rustle of this black dress,
and thrust her chin and nose forward to make it set right. Then after
having Kathleen tighten her corsets a little more, she gathered the
train over her arm by its train-band and looked again. Something was
wanting. Oh, yes, her neck! What to wear—red coral? It did not look
right. A string of pearls? That would not do either. There was a
necklace made of small cameos set in silver which her mother had
purchased, and another of diamonds which belonged to her mother, but
they were not right. Finally, her jet necklet, which she did not value
very highly, came into her mind, and, oh, how lovely it looked! How
soft and smooth and glistening her chin looked above it. She caressed
her neck affectionately, called for her black lace mantilla, her long,
black silk dolman lined with red, and she was ready.
The ball-room, as she entered, was lovely enough. The young men and
young women she saw there were interesting, and she was not wanting for
admirers. The most aggressive of these youths—the most
forceful—recognized in this maiden a fillip to life, a sting to
existence. She was as a honey-jar surrounded by too hungry flies.
But it occurred to her, as her dance-list was filling up, that there
was not much left for Mr. Cowperwood, if he should care to dance with
her.
His father and a number of his cronies were over in the dining-room of
his grand home, glad to get away from the crowd. He would have to stay,
and, besides, he wanted to. Had he better dance with Aileen? His wife
cared little for dancing, but he would have to dance with her at least
once. There was Mrs. Seneca Davis smiling at him, and Aileen. By
George, how wonderful! What a girl!
“You’re quite full up. Let me see. Nine, ten, eleven. Well, that will
be enough. I don’t suppose I shall want to dance very much. It’s nice
to be popular.”
“I’m not sure about number three. I think that’s a mistake. You might
have that if you wish.”
“No.”
“Well, I’ll see where you are when it’s called. You’re darling. I’m
afraid of you.” He shot a level, interpretive glance into her eyes,
then left. Aileen’s bosom heaved. It was hard to breathe sometimes in
this warm air.
While he was dancing first with Mrs. Cowperwood and later with Mrs.
Seneca Davis, and still later with Mrs. Martyn Walker, Cowperwood had
occasion to look at Aileen often, and each time that he did so there
swept over him a sense of great vigor there, of beautiful if raw,
dynamic energy that to him was irresistible and especially so to-night.
She was so young. She was beautiful, this girl, and in spite of his
wife’s repeated derogatory comments he felt that she was nearer to his
clear, aggressive, unblinking attitude than any one whom he had yet
seen in the form of woman. She was unsophisticated, in a way, that was
plain, and yet in another way it would take so little to make her
understand so much. Largeness was the sense he had of her—not
physically, though she was nearly as tall as himself—but emotionally.
She seemed so intensely alive. She passed close to him a number of
times, her eyes wide and smiling, her lips parted, her teeth agleam,
and he felt a stirring of sympathy and companionship for her which he
had not previously experienced. She was lovely, all of her—delightful.
“Yes, indeed,” she replied. “And you’d better stay here with me. It’s
going to begin soon. You won’t mind?” she added, giving her companion a
radiant smile.
Cowperwood sat down. “That’s young Ledoux, isn’t it? I thought so. I
saw you dancing. You like it, don’t you?”
“Well, I can’t say that myself. It’s fascinating, though. Your partner
makes such a difference. Mrs. Cowperwood doesn’t like it as much as I
do.”
“I think you dance very well. I watched you, too.” She questioned
afterwards whether she should have said this. It sounded most forward
now—almost brazen.
“Yes.”
“Well, that was nice of you,” he added, after a moment. “What made you
do it?”
He turned with a mock air of inquiry. The music was beginning again.
The dancers were rising. He arose.
He had not intended to give this particular remark a serious turn; but,
now that she was so near him, he looked into her eyes steadily but with
a soft appeal and said, “Yes, why?”
They had come out from behind the palms. He had put his hand to her
waist. His right arm held her left extended arm to arm, palm to palm.
Her right hand was on his shoulder, and she was close to him, looking
into his eyes. As they began the gay undulations of the waltz she
looked away and then down without answering. Her movements were as
light and airy as those of a butterfly. He felt a sudden lightness
himself, communicated as by an invisible current. He wanted to match
the suppleness of her body with his own, and did. Her arms, the flash
and glint of the crimson sequins against the smooth, black silk of her
closely fitting dress, her neck, her glowing, radiant hair, all
combined to provoke a slight intellectual intoxication. She was so
vigorously young, so, to him, truly beautiful.
She lifted shy eyes to him now, for, in spite of her gay, aggressive
force, she was afraid of him. His personality was obviously so
dominating. Now that he was so close to her, dancing, she conceived of
him as something quite wonderful, and yet she experienced a nervous
reaction—a momentary desire to run away.
He thought she wanted him to talk to her so, to tease her with
suggestions of this concealed feeling of his—this strong liking. He
wondered what could come of any such understanding as this, anyhow?
“Oh, I just wanted to see how you danced,” she said, tamely, the force
of her original feeling having been weakened by a thought of what she
was doing. He noted the change and smiled. It was lovely to be dancing
with her. He had not thought mere dancing could hold such charm.
“You like me?” he said, suddenly, as the music drew to its close.
She thrilled from head to toe at the question. A piece of ice dropped
down her back could not have startled her more. It was apparently
tactless, and yet it was anything but tactless. She looked up quickly,
directly, but his strong eyes were too much for her.
“Why, yes,” she answered, as the music stopped, trying to keep an even
tone to her voice. She was glad they were walking toward a chair.
“I need some one like you to like me,” he continued, in the same vein.
“I need some one like you to talk to. I didn’t think so before—but now
I do. You are beautiful—wonderful.”
“We mustn’t,” she said. “I mustn’t. I don’t know what I’m doing.” She
looked at a young man strolling toward her, and asked: “I have to
explain to him. He’s the one I had this dance with.”
Cowperwood understood. He walked away. He was quite warm and tense
now—almost nervous. It was quite clear to him that he had done or was
contemplating perhaps a very treacherous thing. Under the current code
of society he had no right to do it. It was against the rules, as they
were understood by everybody. Her father, for instance—his father—every
one in this particular walk of life. However, much breaking of the
rules under the surface of things there might be, the rules were still
there. As he had heard one young man remark once at school, when some
story had been told of a boy leading a girl astray and to a disastrous
end, “That isn’t the way at all.”
Still, now that he had said this, strong thoughts of her were in his
mind. And despite his involved social and financial position, which he
now recalled, it was interesting to him to see how deliberately and
even calculatingly—and worse, enthusiastically—he was pumping the
bellows that tended only to heighten the flames of his desire for this
girl; to feed a fire that might ultimately consume him—and how
deliberately and resourcefully!
“Oh, Aileen,” called Norah, “I’ve been looking for you everywhere.
Where have you been?”
“Dancing, of course. Where do you suppose I’ve been? Didn’t you see me
on the floor?”
“Well, that doesn’t matter. Some one will take me home. Are you having
a good time?”
“Fine. Oh, let me tell you. I stepped on a lady’s dress over there,
last dance. She was terribly angry. She gave me such a look.”
“Well, never mind, honey. She won’t hurt you. Where are you going now?”
“I want to find Callum. He has to dance with me next time. I know what
he’s trying to do. He’s trying to get away from me. But he won’t.”
Aileen smiled. Norah looked very sweet. And she was so bright. What
would she think of her if she knew? She turned back, and her fourth
partner sought her. She began talking gayly, for she felt that she had
to make a show of composure; but all the while there was ringing in her
ears that definite question of his, “You like me, don’t you?” and her
later uncertain but not less truthful answer, “Yes, of course I do.”
Chapter XIX
Again, it was so very evident, in so many ways, that force was the
answer—great mental and physical force. Why, these giants of commerce
and money could do as they pleased in this life, and did. He had
already had ample local evidence of it in more than one direction.
Worse—the little guardians of so-called law and morality, the
newspapers, the preachers, the police, and the public moralists
generally, so loud in their denunciation of evil in humble places, were
cowards all when it came to corruption in high ones. They did not dare
to utter a feeble squeak until some giant had accidentally fallen and
they could do so without danger to themselves. Then, O Heavens, the
palaver! What beatings of tom-toms! What mouthings of pharisaical
moralities—platitudes! Run now, good people, for you may see clearly
how evil is dealt with in high places! It made him smile. Such
hypocrisy! Such cant! Still, so the world was organized, and it was not
for him to set it right. Let it wag as it would. The thing for him to
do was to get rich and hold his own—to build up a seeming of virtue and
dignity which would pass muster for the genuine thing. Force would do
that. Quickness of wit. And he had these. “I satisfy myself,” was his
motto; and it might well have been emblazoned upon any coat of arms
which he could have contrived to set forth his claim to intellectual
and social nobility.
But this matter of Aileen was up for consideration and solution at this
present moment, and because of his forceful, determined character he
was presently not at all disturbed by the problem it presented. It was
a problem, like some of those knotty financial complications which
presented themselves daily; but it was not insoluble. What did he want
to do? He couldn’t leave his wife and fly with Aileen, that was
certain. He had too many connections. He had too many social, and
thinking of his children and parents, emotional as well as financial
ties to bind him. Besides, he was not at all sure that he wanted to. He
did not intend to leave his growing interests, and at the same time he
did not intend to give up Aileen immediately. The unheralded
manifestation of interest on her part was too attractive. Mrs.
Cowperwood was no longer what she should be physically and mentally,
and that in itself to him was sufficient to justify his present
interest in this girl. Why fear anything, if only he could figure out a
way to achieve it without harm to himself? At the same time he thought
it might never be possible for him to figure out any practical or
protective program for either himself or Aileen, and that made him
silent and reflective. For by now he was intensely drawn to her, as he
could feel—something chemic and hence dynamic was uppermost in him now
and clamoring for expression.
When he touched her hand at parting, it was as though she had received
an electric shock, and she recalled that it was very difficult for her
to look directly into his eyes. Something akin to a destructive force
seemed to issue from them at times. Other people, men particularly,
found it difficult to face Cowperwood’s glazed stare. It was as though
there were another pair of eyes behind those they saw, watching through
thin, obscuring curtains. You could not tell what he was thinking.
And during the next few months she found herself coming closer and
closer to Cowperwood. At his home one evening, seated at the piano, no
one else being present at the moment, he leaned over and kissed her.
There was a cold, snowy street visible through the interstices of the
hangings of the windows, and gas-lamps flickering outside. He had come
in early, and hearing Aileen, he came to where she was seated at the
piano. She was wearing a rough, gray wool cloth dress, ornately banded
with fringed Oriental embroidery in blue and burnt-orange, and her
beauty was further enhanced by a gray hat planned to match her dress,
with a plume of shaded orange and blue. On her fingers were four or
five rings, far too many—an opal, an emerald, a ruby, and a
diamond—flashing visibly as she played.
She knew it was he, without turning. He came beside her, and she looked
up smiling, the reverie evoked by Schubert partly vanishing—or melting
into another mood. Suddenly he bent over and pressed his lips firmly to
hers. His mustache thrilled her with its silky touch. She stopped
playing and tried to catch her breath, for, strong as she was, it
affected her breathing. Her heart was beating like a triphammer. She
did not say, “Oh,” or, “You mustn’t,” but rose and walked over to a
window, where she lifted a curtain, pretending to look out. She felt as
though she might faint, so intensely happy was she.
Cowperwood followed her quickly. Slipping his arms about her waist, he
looked at her flushed cheeks, her clear, moist eyes and red mouth.
He crushed her face to his, and she put up her hands and stroked his
hair.
“And I love you” she answered. “I can’t help it. I know I shouldn’t,
but—oh—” Her hands closed tight over his ears and temples. She put her
lips to his and dreamed into his eyes. Then she stepped away quickly,
looking out into the street, and he walked back into the living-room.
They were quite alone. He was debating whether he should risk anything
further when Norah, having been in to see Anna next door, appeared and
not long afterward Mrs. Cowperwood. Then Aileen and Norah left.
Chapter XX
This definite and final understanding having been reached, it was but
natural that this liaison should proceed to a closer and closer
relationship. Despite her religious upbringing, Aileen was decidedly a
victim of her temperament. Current religious feeling and belief could
not control her. For the past nine or ten years there had been slowly
forming in her mind a notion of what her lover should be like. He
should be strong, handsome, direct, successful, with clear eyes, a
ruddy glow of health, and a certain native understanding and sympathy—a
love of life which matched her own. Many young men had approached her.
Perhaps the nearest realization of her ideal was Father David, of St.
Timothy’s, and he was, of course, a priest and sworn to celibacy. No
word had ever passed between them but he had been as conscious of her
as she of him. Then came Frank Cowperwood, and by degrees, because of
his presence and contact, he had been slowly built up in her mind as
the ideal person. She was drawn as planets are drawn to their sun.
“Honey!”
The voice was soft and coaxing. He turned, giving her a warning nod in
the direction of her father’s room upstairs.
She stood there, holding out one hand, and he stepped forward for a
second. Instantly her arms were about his neck, as he slipped his about
her waist.
He released her arms, and went out, and she ran to the window and
looked out after him. He was walking west on the street, for his house
was only a few blocks away, and she looked at the breadth of his
shoulders, the balance of his form. He stepped so briskly, so
incisively. Ah, this was a man! He was her Frank. She thought of him in
that light already. Then she sat down at the piano and played pensively
until dinner.
So there were other meetings, lovely hours which they soon began to
spend the moment her passion waxed warm enough to assure compliance,
without great fear and without thought of the deadly risk involved.
From odd moments in his own home, stolen when there was no one about to
see, they advanced to clandestine meetings beyond the confines of the
city. Cowperwood was not one who was temperamentally inclined to lose
his head and neglect his business. As a matter of fact, the more he
thought of this rather unexpected affectional development, the more
certain he was that he must not let it interfere with his business time
and judgment. His office required his full attention from nine until
three, anyhow. He could give it until five-thirty with profit; but he
could take several afternoons off, from three-thirty until five-thirty
or six, and no one would be the wiser. It was customary for Aileen to
drive alone almost every afternoon a spirited pair of bays, or to ride
a mount, bought by her father for her from a noted horse-dealer in
Baltimore. Since Cowperwood also drove and rode, it was not difficult
to arrange meeting-places far out on the Wissahickon or the Schuylkill
road. There were many spots in the newly laid-out park, which were as
free from interruption as the depths of a forest. It was always
possible that they might encounter some one; but it was also always
possible to make a rather plausible explanation, or none at all, since
even in case of such an encounter nothing, ordinarily, would be
suspected.
So, for the time being there was love-making, the usual billing and
cooing of lovers in a simple and much less than final fashion; and the
lovely horseback rides together under the green trees of the
approaching spring were idyllic. Cowperwood awakened to a sense of joy
in life such as he fancied, in the blush of this new desire, he had
never experienced before. Lillian had been lovely in those early days
in which he had first called on her in North Front Street, and he had
fancied himself unspeakably happy at that time; but that was nearly ten
years since, and he had forgotten. Since then he had had no great
passion, no notable liaison; and then, all at once, in the midst of his
new, great business prosperity, Aileen. Her young body and soul, her
passionate illusions. He could see always, for all her daring, that she
knew so little of the calculating, brutal world with which he was
connected. Her father had given her all the toys she wanted without
stint; her mother and brothers had coddled her, particularly her
mother. Her young sister thought she was adorable. No one imagined for
one moment that Aileen would ever do anything wrong. She was too
sensible, after all, too eager to get up in the world. Why should she,
when her life lay open and happy before her—a delightful love-match,
some day soon, with some very eligible and satisfactory lover?
“When you marry, Aileen,” her mother used to say to her, “we’ll have a
grand time here. Sure we’ll do the house over then, if we don’t do it
before. Eddie will have to fix it up, or I’ll do it meself. Never
fear.”
If she said, “No,” he would reply: “Well, he will be, never fear—worse
luck. I’ll hate to see ye go, girlie! You can stay here as long as ye
want to, and ye want to remember that you can always come back.”
Aileen paid very little attention to this bantering. She loved her
father, but it was all such a matter of course. It was the commonplace
of her existence, and not so very significant, though delightful
enough.
But how eagerly she yielded herself to Cowperwood under the spring
trees these days! She had no sense of that ultimate yielding that was
coming, for now he merely caressed and talked to her. He was a little
doubtful about himself. His growing liberties for himself seemed
natural enough, but in a sense of fairness to her he began to talk to
her about what their love might involve. Would she? Did she understand?
This phase of it puzzled and frightened Aileen a little at first. She
stood before him one afternoon in her black riding-habit and high silk
riding-hat perched jauntily on her red-gold hair; and striking her
riding-skirt with her short whip, pondering doubtfully as she listened.
He had asked her whether she knew what she was doing? Whither they were
drifting? If she loved him truly enough? The two horses were tethered
in a thicket a score of yards away from the main road and from the bank
of a tumbling stream, which they had approached. She was trying to
discover if she could see them. It was pretense. There was no interest
in her glance. She was thinking of him and the smartness of his habit,
and the exquisiteness of this moment. He had such a charming calico
pony. The leaves were just enough developed to make a diaphanous
lacework of green. It was like looking through a green-spangled arras
to peer into the woods beyond or behind. The gray stones were already
faintly messy where the water rippled and sparkled, and early birds
were calling—robins and blackbirds and wrens.
“Baby mine,” he said, “do you understand all about this? Do you know
exactly what you’re doing when you come with me this way?”
“I think I do.”
She struck her boot and looked at the ground, and then up through the
trees at the blue sky.
“No.”
She backed away as he took her hands, but came forward again, easily
enough.
“I can’t.”
“See here.”
“I can’t. Don’t ask me. I’ll answer you, but don’t make me look at
you.”
His hand stole to her cheek and fondled it. He petted her shoulder, and
she leaned her head against him.
“I don’t know your brothers very well; but from looking at them I judge
they’re pretty determined people. They think a great deal of you.”
“They would probably want to kill me, and very promptly, for just this
much. What do you think they would want to do if—well, if anything
should happen, some time?”
“Aileen!”
“You know it can’t stop this way, don’t you? You know it. This isn’t
the end. Now, if—” He explained the whole theory of illicit meetings,
calmly, dispassionately. “You are perfectly safe, except for one thing,
chance exposure. It might just so happen; and then, of course, there
would be a great deal to settle for. Mrs. Cowperwood would never give
me a divorce; she has no reason to. If I should clean up in the way I
hope to—if I should make a million—I wouldn’t mind knocking off now. I
don’t expect to work all my days. I have always planned to knock off at
thirty-five. I’ll have enough by that time. Then I want to travel. It
will only be a few more years now. If you were free—if your father and
mother were dead”—curiously she did not wince at this practical
reference—“it would be a different matter.”
He paused. She still gazed thoughtfully at the water below, her mind
running out to a yacht on the sea with him, a palace somewhere—just
they two. Her eyes, half closed, saw this happy world; and, listening
to him, she was fascinated.
“Hanged if I see the way out of this, exactly. But I love you!” He
caught her to him. “I love you—love you!”
“Oh, yes,” she replied intensely, “I want you to. I’m not afraid.”
“Who is she?”
“Will you? It will be all right. You might know her. She isn’t
objectionable in any way. Will you?”
Chapter XXI
“Oh, why—why?” she retorted, one day, curtly. “Why do you ask so many
questions? You don’t care so much for me any more; that’s why. I can
tell.”
He leaned back startled by the thrust. It had not been based on any
evidence of anything save his recent remarks; but he was not absolutely
sure. He was just the least bit sorry that he had irritated her, and he
said so.
“Oh, it’s all right,” she replied. “I don’t care. But I notice that you
don’t pay as much attention to me as you used to. It’s your business
now, first, last, and all the time. You can’t get your mind off of
that.”
But after a little time, as he grew more and more in sympathy with
Aileen, he was not so disturbed as to whether his wife might suspect or
not. He began to think on occasion, as his mind followed the various
ramifications of the situation, that it would be better if she did. She
was really not of the contentious fighting sort. He now decided because
of various calculations in regard to her character that she might not
offer as much resistance to some ultimate rearrangement, as he had
originally imagined. She might even divorce him. Desire, dreams, even
in him were evoking calculations not as sound as those which ordinarily
generated in his brain.
No, as he now said to himself, the rub was not nearly so much in his
own home, as it was in the Butler family. His relations with Edward
Malia Butler had become very intimate. He was now advising with him
constantly in regard to the handling of his securities, which were
numerous. Butler held stocks in such things as the Pennsylvania Coal
Company, the Delaware and Hudson Canal, the Morris and Essex Canal, the
Reading Railroad. As the old gentleman’s mind had broadened to the
significance of the local street-railway problem in Philadelphia, he
had decided to close out his other securities at such advantageous
terms as he could, and reinvest the money in local lines. He knew that
Mollenhauer and Simpson were doing this, and they were excellent judges
of the significance of local affairs. Like Cowperwood, he had the idea
that if he controlled sufficient of the local situation in this field,
he could at last effect a joint relationship with Mollenhauer and
Simpson. Political legislation, advantageous to the combined lines,
could then be so easily secured. Franchises and necessary extensions to
existing franchises could be added. This conversion of his outstanding
stock in other fields, and the picking up of odd lots in the local
street-railway, was the business of Cowperwood. Butler, through his
sons, Owen and Callum, was also busy planning a new line and obtaining
a franchise, sacrificing, of course, great blocks of stock and actual
cash to others, in order to obtain sufficient influence to have the
necessary legislation passed. Yet it was no easy matter, seeing that
others knew what the general advantages of the situation were, and
because of this Cowperwood, who saw the great source of profit here,
was able, betimes, to serve himself—buying blocks, a part of which only
went to Butler, Mollenhauer or others. In short he was not as eager to
serve Butler, or any one else, as he was to serve himself if he could.
“Frank,” said Stener, strolling into his office one afternoon after
four o’clock when the main rush of the day’s work was over—the
relationship between Cowperwood and Stener had long since reached the
“Frank” and “George” period—“Strobik thinks he has that North
Pennsylvania deal arranged so that we can take it up if we want to. The
principal stockholder, we find, is a man by the name of Coltan—not Ike
Colton, but Ferdinand. How’s that for a name?” Stener beamed fatly and
genially.
Things had changed considerably for him since the days when he had been
fortuitously and almost indifferently made city treasurer. His method
of dressing had so much improved since he had been inducted into
office, and his manner expressed so much more good feeling, confidence,
aplomb, that he would not have recognized himself if he had been
permitted to see himself as had those who had known him before. An old,
nervous shifting of the eyes had almost ceased, and a feeling of
restfulness, which had previously been restlessness, and had sprung
from a sense of necessity, had taken its place. His large feet were
incased in good, square-toed, soft-leather shoes; his stocky chest and
fat legs were made somewhat agreeable to the eye by a well-cut suit of
brownish-gray cloth; and his neck was now surrounded by a low,
wing-point white collar and brown-silk tie. His ample chest, which
spread out a little lower in around and constantly enlarging stomach,
was ornamented by a heavy-link gold chain, and his white cuffs had
large gold cuff-buttons set with rubies of a very notable size. He was
rosy and decidedly well fed. In fact, he was doing very well indeed.
He had moved his family from a shabby two-story frame house in South
Ninth Street to a very comfortable brick one three stories in height,
and three times as large, on Spring Garden Street. His wife had a few
acquaintances—the wives of other politicians. His children were
attending the high school, a thing he had hardly hoped for in earlier
days. He was now the owner of fourteen or fifteen pieces of cheap real
estate in different portions of the city, which might eventually become
very valuable, and he was a silent partner in the South Philadelphia
Foundry Company and the American Beef and Pork Company, two
corporations on paper whose principal business was subletting contracts
secured from the city to the humble butchers and foundrymen who would
carry out orders as given and not talk too much or ask questions.
“Well, that is an odd name,” said Cowperwood, blandly. “So he has it? I
never thought that road would pay, as it was laid out. It’s too short.
It ought to run about three miles farther out into the Kensington
section.”
“Sixty-eight, I think.”
“The current market rate. He doesn’t want much, does he? Well, George,
at that rate it will take about”—he calculated quickly on the basis of
the number of shares Cotton was holding—“one hundred and twenty
thousand to get him out alone. That isn’t all. There’s Judge Kitchen
and Joseph Zimmerman and Senator Donovan”—he was referring to the State
senator of that name. “You’ll be paying a pretty fair price for that
stud when you get it. It will cost considerable more to extend the
line. It’s too much, I think.”
Cowperwood was thinking how easy it would be to combine this line with
his dreamed-of Seventeenth and Nineteenth Street line, and after a time
and with this in view he added:
“Say, George, why do you work all your schemes through Strobik and
Harmon and Wycroft? Couldn’t you and I manage some of these things for
ourselves alone instead of for three or four? It seems to me that plan
would be much more profitable to you.”
The truth was, they had done exceedingly well. Aside from what the
higher powers had made, Stener’s new house, his lots, his bank-account,
his good clothes, and his changed and comfortable sense of life were
largely due to Cowperwood’s successful manipulation of these city-loan
certificates. Already there had been four issues of two hundred
thousand dollars each. Cowperwood had bought and sold nearly three
million dollars’ worth of these certificates, acting one time as a
“bull” and another as a “bear.” Stener was now worth all of one hundred
and fifty thousand dollars.
“There’s a line that I know of here in the city which could be made
into a splendidly paying property,” continued Cowperwood, meditatively,
“if the right things could be done with it. Just like this North
Pennsylvania line, it isn’t long enough. The territory it serves isn’t
big enough. It ought to be extended; but if you and I could get it, it
might eventually be worked with this North Pennsylvania Company or some
other as one company. That would save officers and offices and a lot of
things. There is always money to be made out of a larger purchasing
power.”
He paused and looked out the window of his handsome little hardwood
office, speculating upon the future. The window gave nowhere save into
a back yard behind another office building which had formerly been a
residence. Some grass grew feebly there. The red wall and old-fashioned
brick fence which divided it from the next lot reminded him somehow of
his old home in New Market Street, to which his Uncle Seneca used to
come as a Cuban trader followed by his black Portuguese servitor. He
could see him now as he sat here looking at the yard.
“Well,” asked Stener, ambitiously, taking the bait, “why don’t we get
hold of that—you and me? I suppose I could fix it so far as the money
is concerned. How much would it take?”
“Don’t ask me any more about it, George,” he said, finally, as he saw
that the latter was beginning to think as to which line it might be.
“Don’t say anything at all about it. I want to get my facts exactly
right, and then I’ll talk to you. I think you and I can do this thing a
little later, when we get the North Pennsylvania scheme under way. I’m
so rushed just now I’m not sure that I want to undertake it at once;
but you keep quiet and we’ll see.” He turned toward his desk, and
Stener got up.
“I’ll make any sized deposit with you that you wish, the moment you
think you’re ready to act, Frank,” exclaimed Stener, and with the
thought that Cowperwood was not nearly as anxious to do this as he
should be, since he could always rely on him (Stener) when there was
anything really profitable in the offing. Why should not the able and
wonderful Cowperwood be allowed to make the two of them rich? “Just
notify Stires, and he’ll send you a check. Strobik thought we ought to
act pretty soon.”
Stener kicked his stout legs to straighten his trousers, and extended
his hand. He strolled out in the street thinking of this new scheme.
Certainly, if he could get in with Cowperwood right he would be a rich
man, for Cowperwood was so successful and so cautious. His new house,
this beautiful banking office, his growing fame, and his subtle
connections with Butler and others put Stener in considerable awe of
him. Another line! They would control it and the North Pennsylvania!
Why, if this went on, he might become a magnate—he really might—he,
George W. Stener, once a cheap real-estate and insurance agent. He
strolled up the street thinking, but with no more idea of the
importance of his civic duties and the nature of the social ethics
against which he was offending than if they had never existed.
Chapter XXII
The services which Cowperwood performed during the ensuing year and a
half for Stener, Strobik, Butler, State Treasurer Van Nostrand, State
Senator Relihan, representative of “the interests,” so-called, at
Harrisburg, and various banks which were friendly to these gentlemen,
were numerous and confidential. For Stener, Strobik, Wycroft, Harmon
and himself he executed the North Pennsylvania deal, by which he became
a holder of a fifth of the controlling stock. Together he and Stener
joined to purchase the Seventeenth and Nineteenth Street line and in
the concurrent gambling in stocks.
His one pet idea, the thing he put more faith in than anything else,
was his street-railway manipulations, and particularly his actual
control of the Seventeenth and Nineteenth Street line. Through an
advance to him, on deposit, made in his bank by Stener at a time when
the stock of the Seventeenth and Nineteenth Street line was at a low
ebb, he had managed to pick up fifty-one per cent. of the stock for
himself and Stener, by virtue of which he was able to do as he pleased
with the road. To accomplish this, however, he had resorted to some
very “peculiar” methods, as they afterward came to be termed in
financial circles, to get this stock at his own valuation. Through
agents he caused suits for damages to be brought against the company
for non-payment of interest due. A little stock in the hands of a
hireling, a request made to a court of record to examine the books of
the company in order to determine whether a receivership were not
advisable, a simultaneous attack in the stock market, selling at three,
five, seven, and ten points off, brought the frightened stockholders
into the market with their holdings. The banks considered the line a
poor risk, and called their loans in connection with it. His father’s
bank had made one loan to one of the principal stockholders, and that
was promptly called, of course. Then, through an agent, the several
heaviest shareholders were approached and an offer was made to help
them out. The stocks would be taken off their hands at forty. They had
not really been able to discover the source of all their woes; and they
imagined that the road was in bad condition, which it was not. Better
let it go. The money was immediately forthcoming, and Cowperwood and
Stener jointly controlled fifty-one per cent. But, as in the case of
the North Pennsylvania line, Cowperwood had been quietly buying all of
the small minority holdings, so that he had in reality fifty-one per
cent. of the stock, and Stener twenty-five per cent. more.
But this second burden, interesting enough as it was, meant that he had
to be doubly watchful. Once the stock was sold at a high price, the
money borrowed from the city treasurer could be returned; his own
holdings created out of foresight, by capitalizing the future, by
writing the shrewd prospectuses and reports, would be worth their face
value, or little less. He would have money to invest in other lines. He
might obtain the financial direction of the whole, in which case he
would be worth millions. One shrewd thing he did, which indicated the
foresight and subtlety of the man, was to make a separate organization
or company of any extension or addition which he made to his line.
Thus, if he had two or three miles of track on a street, and he wanted
to extend it two or three miles farther on the same street, instead of
including this extension in the existing corporation, he would make a
second corporation to control the additional two or three miles of
right of way. This corporation he would capitalize at so much, and
issue stocks and bonds for its construction, equipment, and
manipulation. Having done this he would then take the sub-corporation
over into the parent concern, issuing more stocks and bonds of the
parent company wherewith to do it, and, of course, selling these bonds
to the public. Even his brothers who worked for him did not know the
various ramifications of his numerous deals, and executed his orders
blindly. Sometimes Joseph said to Edward, in a puzzled way, “Well,
Frank knows what he is about, I guess.”
On the other hand, he was most careful to see that every current
obligation was instantly met, and even anticipated, for he wanted to
make a great show of regularity. Nothing was so precious as reputation
and standing. His forethought, caution, and promptness pleased the
bankers. They thought he was one of the sanest, shrewdest men they had
ever met.
“No more than I ever did, father, considering my resources. You can’t
turn large deals without large loans. You know that as well as I do.”
“Yes, I know, but—now that Green and Coates—aren’t you going pretty
strong there?”
“Not at all. I know the inside conditions there. The stock is bound to
go up eventually. I’ll bull it up. I’ll combine it with my other lines,
if necessary.”
Cowperwood stared at his boy. Never was there such a defiant, daring
manipulator.
“You needn’t worry about me, father. If you are going to do that, call
my loans. Other banks will loan on my stocks. I’d like to see your bank
have the interest.”
“There are fifty periods of one shade of blue porcelain alone, Mr.
Cowperwood,” Gray informed him. “There are at least seven distinct
schools or periods of rugs—Persian, Armenian, Arabian, Flemish, Modern
Polish, Hungarian, and so on. If you ever went into that, it would be a
distinguished thing to get a complete—I mean a
representative—collection of some one period, or of all these periods.
They are beautiful. I have seen some of them, others I’ve read about.”
His mind, in spite of his outward placidity, was tinged with a great
seeking. Wealth, in the beginning, had seemed the only goal, to which
had been added the beauty of women. And now art, for art’s sake—the
first faint radiance of a rosy dawn—had begun to shine in upon him, and
to the beauty of womanhood he was beginning to see how necessary it was
to add the beauty of life—the beauty of material background—how, in
fact, the only background for great beauty was great art. This girl,
this Aileen Butler, her raw youth and radiance, was nevertheless
creating in him a sense of the distinguished and a need for it which
had never existed in him before to the same degree. It is impossible to
define these subtleties of reaction, temperament on temperament, for no
one knows to what degree we are marked by the things which attract us.
A love affair such as this had proved to be was little less or more
than a drop of coloring added to a glass of clear water, or a foreign
chemical agent introduced into a delicate chemical formula.
In short, for all her crudeness, Aileen Butler was a definite force
personally. Her nature, in a way, a protest against the clumsy
conditions by which she found herself surrounded, was almost
irrationally ambitious. To think that for so long, having been born
into the Butler family, she had been the subject, as well as the victim
of such commonplace and inartistic illusions and conditions, whereas
now, owing to her contact with, and mental subordination to Cowperwood,
she was learning so many wonderful phases of social, as well as
financial, refinement of which previously she had guessed nothing. The
wonder, for instance, of a future social career as the wife of such a
man as Frank Cowperwood. The beauty and resourcefulness of his mind,
which, after hours of intimate contact with her, he was pleased to
reveal, and which, so definite were his comments and instructions, she
could not fail to sense. The wonder of his financial and artistic and
future social dreams. And, oh, oh, she was his, and he was hers. She
was actually beside herself at times with the glory, as well as the
delight of all this.
“Never mind, pet,” he replied. “We will arrange all these things later.
I don’t see my way out of this just now; but I think the best thing to
do is to confess to Lillian some day, and see if some other plan can’t
be arranged. I want to fix it so the children won’t suffer. I can
provide for them amply, and I wouldn’t be at all surprised if Lillian
would be willing to let me go. She certainly wouldn’t want any
publicity.”
Aileen looked at him with clear, questioning, uncertain eyes. She was
not wholly without sympathy, but in a way this situation did not appeal
to her as needing much. Mrs. Cowperwood was not friendly in her mood
toward her. It was not based on anything save a difference in their
point of view. Mrs. Cowperwood could never understand how a girl could
carry her head so high and “put on such airs,” and Aileen could not
understand how any one could be so lymphatic and lackadaisical as
Lillian Cowperwood. Life was made for riding, driving, dancing, going.
It was made for airs and banter and persiflage and coquetry. To see
this woman, the wife of a young, forceful man like Cowperwood, acting,
even though she were five years older and the mother of two children,
as though life on its romantic and enthusiastic pleasurable side were
all over was too much for her. Of course Lillian was unsuited to Frank;
of course he needed a young woman like herself, and fate would surely
give him to her. Then what a delicious life they would lead!
“Oh, Frank,” she exclaimed to him, over and over, “if we could only
manage it. Do you think we can?”
“Do I think we can? Certainly I do. It’s only a matter of time. I think
if I were to put the matter to her clearly, she wouldn’t expect me to
stay. You look out how you conduct your affairs. If your father or your
brother should ever suspect me, there’d be an explosion in this town,
if nothing worse. They’d fight me in all my money deals, if they didn’t
kill me. Are you thinking carefully of what you are doing?”
“All the time. If anything happens I’ll deny everything. They can’t
prove it, if I deny it. I’ll come to you in the long run, just the
same.”
They were in the Tenth Street house at the time. She stroked his cheeks
with the loving fingers of the wildly enamored woman.
“I’ll do anything for you, sweetheart,” she declared. “I’d die for you
if I had to. I love you so.”
“Well, pet, no danger. You won’t have to do anything like that. But be
careful.”
Chapter XXIII
Cowperwood and his father were out of town at the time the fire began.
They had gone with several friends—bankers—to look at a proposed route
of extension of a local steam-railroad, on which a loan was desired. In
buggies they had driven over a good portion of the route, and were
returning to Philadelphia late Sunday evening when the cries of
newsboys hawking an “extra” reached their ears.
He figured briskly the while he waved adieu to his friends, who hurried
away, struck with their own predicament.
“You had better go on out to the house, father, and I’ll send some
telegrams.” (The telephone had not yet been invented.) “I’ll be right
out and we’ll go into this thing together. It looks like black weather
to me. Don’t say anything to any one until after we have had our talk;
then we can decide what to do.”
On the other hand, his son was meditating on the tangled relation in
which he now found himself in connection with the city treasurer and
the fact that it was not possible for him to support the market alone.
Those who should have been in a position to help him were now as bad
off as himself. There were many unfavorable points in the whole
situation. Drexel & Co. had been booming railway stocks—loaning heavily
on them. Jay Cooke & Co. had been backing Northern Pacific—were
practically doing their best to build that immense transcontinental
system alone. Naturally, they were long on that and hence in a ticklish
position. At the first word they would throw over their surest
securities—government bonds, and the like—in order to protect their
more speculative holdings. The bears would see the point. They would
hammer and hammer, selling short all along the line. But he did not
dare to do that. He would be breaking his own back quickly, and what he
needed was time. If he could only get time—three days, a week, ten
days—this storm would surely blow over.
The thing that was troubling him most was the matter of the
half-million invested with him by Stener. A fall election was drawing
near. Stener, although he had served two terms, was slated for
reelection. A scandal in connection with the city treasury would be a
very bad thing. It would end Stener’s career as an official—would very
likely send him to the penitentiary. It might wreck the Republican
party’s chances to win. It would certainly involve himself as having
much to do with it. If that happened, he would have the politicians to
reckon with. For, if he were hard pressed, as he would be, and failed,
the fact that he had been trying to invade the city street-railway
preserves which they held sacred to themselves, with borrowed city
money, and that this borrowing was liable to cost them the city
election, would all come out. They would not view all that with a
kindly eye. It would be useless to say, as he could, that he had
borrowed the money at two per cent. (most of it, to save himself, had
been covered by a protective clause of that kind), or that he had
merely acted as an agent for Stener. That might go down with the
unsophisticated of the outer world, but it would never be swallowed by
the politicians. They knew better than that.
When he arrived there the famous contractor was at dinner. He had not
heard the calling of the extras, and of course, did not understand as
yet the significance of the fire. The servant’s announcement of
Cowperwood brought him smiling to the door.
“Won’t you come in and join us? We’re just havin’ a light supper. Have
a cup of coffee or tea, now—do.”
“Why, if that’s the case, I’ll come right out.” And Butler returned to
the dining-room to put down his napkin. Aileen, who was also dining,
had heard Cowperwood’s voice, and was on the qui vive to see him. She
wondered what it was that brought him at this time of night to see her
father. She could not leave the table at once, but hoped to before he
went. Cowperwood was thinking of her, even in the face of this
impending storm, as he was of his wife, and many other things. If his
affairs came down in a heap it would go hard with those attached to
him. In this first clouding of disaster, he could not tell how things
would eventuate. He meditated on this desperately, but he was not
panic-stricken. His naturally even-molded face was set in fine, classic
lines; his eyes were as hard as chilled steel.
“Well, now,” exclaimed Butler, returning, his countenance manifesting a
decidedly comfortable relationship with the world as at present
constituted. “What’s up with you to-night? Nawthin’ wrong, I hope. It’s
been too fine a day.”
“Oh, Mr. Cowperwood, how do you do?” she exclaimed, coming forward and
holding out her hand as her father went on upstairs. She was delaying
him deliberately in order to have a word with him and this bold acting
was for the benefit of the others.
“What’s the trouble, honey?” she whispered, as soon as her father was
out of hearing. “You look worried.”
Literature, outside of the masters, has given us but one idea of the
mistress, the subtle, calculating siren who delights to prey on the
souls of men. The journalism and the moral pamphleteering of the time
seem to foster it with almost partisan zeal. It would seem that a
censorship of life had been established by divinity, and the care of
its execution given into the hands of the utterly conservative. Yet
there is that other form of liaison which has nothing to do with
conscious calculation. In the vast majority of cases it is without
design or guile. The average woman, controlled by her affections and
deeply in love, is no more capable than a child of anything save
sacrificial thought—the desire to give; and so long as this state
endures, she can only do this. She may change—Hell hath no fury,
etc.—but the sacrificial, yielding, solicitous attitude is more often
the outstanding characteristic of the mistress; and it is this very
attitude in contradistinction to the grasping legality of established
matrimony that has caused so many wounds in the defenses of the latter.
The temperament of man, either male or female, cannot help falling down
before and worshiping this nonseeking, sacrificial note. It approaches
vast distinction in life. It appears to be related to that last word in
art, that largeness of spirit which is the first characteristic of the
great picture, the great building, the great sculpture, the great
decoration—namely, a giving, freely and without stint, of itself, of
beauty. Hence the significance of this particular mood in Aileen.
“Sit down, sit down. You won’t take a little somethin’? You never do. I
remember now. Well, have a cigar, anyhow. Now, what’s this that’s
troublin’ you to-night?”
Voices could be heard faintly in the distance, far off toward the
thicker residential sections.
“Extra! Extra! All about the big Chicago fire! Chicago burning down!”
“It’s burning down the business section there, Mr. Butler,” went on
Cowperwood ominously, “and I fancy it’s going to disturb financial
conditions here to-morrow. That is what I have come to see you about.
How are your investments? Pretty well drawn in?”
“So that’s it,” he said. “You’re expectin’ trouble to-morrow. How are
your own affairs?”
“I’m in pretty good shape, I think, all told, if the money element of
this town doesn’t lose its head and go wild. There has to be a lot of
common sense exercised to-morrow, or to-night, even. You know we are
facing a real panic. Mr. Butler, you may as well know that. It may not
last long, but while it does it will be bad. Stocks are going to drop
to-morrow ten or fifteen points on the opening. The banks are going to
call their loans unless some arrangement can be made to prevent them.
No one man can do that. It will have to be a combination of men. You
and Mr. Simpson and Mr. Mollenhauer might do it—that is, you could if
you could persuade the big banking people to combine to back the
market. There is going to be a raid on local street-railways—all of
them. Unless they are sustained the bottom is going to drop out. I have
always known that you were long on those. I thought you and Mr.
Mollenhauer and some of the others might want to act. If you don’t I
might as well confess that it is going to go rather hard with me. I am
not strong enough to face this thing alone.”
“Well, now, that’s pretty bad,” said Butler, calmly and meditatively.
He was thinking of his own affairs. A panic was not good for him
either, but he was not in a desperate state. He could not fail. He
might lose some money, but not a vast amount—before he could adjust
things. Still he did not care to lose any money.
It was now a question of lying or telling the truth, and Cowperwood was
literally afraid to risk lying in this dilemma. If he did not gain
Butler’s comprehending support he might fail, and if he failed the
truth would come out, anyhow.
“The fact is that I have been buying street-railway stocks, but not for
myself exactly. I am going to do something now which I think I ought
not to do, but I cannot help myself. If I don’t do it, it will injure
you and a lot of people whom I do not wish to injure. I know you are
naturally interested in the outcome of the fall election. The truth is
I have been carrying a lot of stocks for Mr. Stener and some of his
friends. I do not know that all the money has come from the city
treasury, but I think that most of it has. I know what that means to
Mr. Stener and the Republican party and your interests in case I fail.
I don’t think Mr. Stener started this of his own accord in the first
place—I think I am as much to blame as anybody—but it grew out of other
things. As you know, I handled that matter of city loan for him and
then some of his friends wanted me to invest in street-railways for
them. I have been doing that ever since. Personally I have borrowed
considerable money from Mr. Stener at two per cent. In fact, originally
the transactions were covered in that way. Now I don’t want to shift
the blame on any one. It comes back to me and I am willing to let it
stay there, except that if I fail Mr. Stener will be blamed and that
will reflect on the administration. Naturally, I don’t want to fail.
There is no excuse for my doing so. Aside from this panic I have never
been in a better position in my life. But I cannot weather this storm
without assistance, and I want to know if you won’t help me. If I pull
through I will give you my word that I will see that the money which
has been taken from the treasury is put back there. Mr. Stener is out
of town or I would have brought him here with me.”
“Just about—a little more or a little less; I’m not sure which.”
He would not have thought so much of it if Cowperwood had told him that
Stener was involved, say, to the extent of seventy-five or a hundred
thousand dollars. That might be adjusted. But five hundred thousand
dollars!
“It’s just as likely that I’ll need it so badly that I can’t give it up
without seriously injuring myself,” added Cowperwood. “That’s just one
of a lot of things. If you and Senator Simpson and Mr. Mollenhauer were
to get together—you’re the largest holders of street-railway stocks—and
were to see Mr. Drexel and Mr. Cooke, you could fix things so that
matters would be considerably easier. I will be all right if my loans
are not called, and my loans will not be called if the market does not
slump too heavily. If it does, all my securities are depreciated, and I
can’t hold out.”
Old Butler got up. “This is serious business,” he said. “I wish you’d
never gone in with Stener in that way. It don’t look quite right and it
can’t be made to. It’s bad, bad business,” he added dourly. “Still,
I’ll do what I can. I can’t promise much, but I’ve always liked ye and
I’ll not be turning on ye now unless I have to. But I’m sorry—very. And
I’m not the only one that has a hand in things in this town.” At the
same time he was thinking it was right decent of Cowperwood to forewarn
him this way in regard to his own affairs and the city election, even
though he was saving his own neck by so doing. He meant to do what he
could.
“I don’t suppose you could keep this matter of Stener and the city
treasury quiet for a day or two until I see how I come out?” suggested
Cowperwood warily.
“Owen!”
He stepped to the door, and, opening it, called down over the banister.
“Yes, father.”
“Have Dan hitch up the light buggy and bring it around to the door. And
you get your hat and coat. I want you to go along with me.”
“Yes, father.”
He came back.
“Sure that’s a nice little storm in a teapot, now, isn’t it? Chicago
begins to burn, and I have to worry here in Philadelphia. Well, well—”
Cowperwood was up now and moving to the door. “And where are you
going?”
“Back to the house. I have several people coming there to see me. But
I’ll come back here later, if I may.”
He went back in his room for something, and Cowperwood descended the
stair alone. From the hangings of the reception-room entryway Aileen
signaled him to draw near.
“I hope it’s nothing serious, honey?” she sympathized, looking into his
solemn eyes.
“Frank, don’t let this thing make you forget me for long, please. You
won’t, will you? I love you so.”
“I can’t! Don’t you know I won’t?” He had started to kiss her, but a
noise disturbed him. “Sh!”
He walked to the door, and she followed him with eager, sympathetic
eyes.
Chapter XXIV
As Butler stepped into the buggy with his son he was thinking about
this, and it was puzzling him greatly.
“Cowperwood’s just been here,” he said to Owen, who had been rapidly
coming into a sound financial understanding of late, and was already a
shrewder man politically and socially than his father, though he had
not the latter’s magnetism. “He’s been tellin’ me that he’s in a rather
tight place. You hear that?” he continued, as some voice in the
distance was calling “Extra! Extra!” “That’s Chicago burnin’, and
there’s goin’ to be trouble on the stock exchange to-morrow. We have a
lot of our street-railway stocks around at the different banks. If we
don’t look sharp they’ll be callin’ our loans. We have to ’tend to that
the first thing in the mornin’. Cowperwood has a hundred thousand of
mine with him that he wants me to let stay there, and he has some money
that belongs to Stener, he tells me.”
“Stener?” asked Owen, curiously. “Has he been dabbling in stocks?” Owen
had heard some rumors concerning Stener and others only very recently,
which he had not credited nor yet communicated to his father. “How much
money of his has Cowperwood?” he asked.
“Aisy, now! Aisy, now!” replied Butler, doing his best to keep all
phases of the situation in mind. “We can’t tell exactly what the
circumstances were yet. He mayn’t have meant to take so much. It may
all come out all right yet. The money’s invested. Cowperwood hasn’t
failed yet. It may be put back. The thing to be settled on now is
whether anything can be done to save him. If he’s tellin’ me the
truth—and I never knew him to lie—he can get out of this if
street-railway stocks don’t break too heavy in the mornin’. I’m going
over to see Henry Mollenhauer and Mark Simpson. They’re in on this.
Cowperwood wanted me to see if I couldn’t get them to get the bankers
together and have them stand by the market. He thought we might protect
our loans by comin’ on and buyin’ and holdin’ up the price.”
Owen was running swiftly in his mind over Cowperwood’s affairs—as much
as he knew of them. He felt keenly that the banker ought to be shaken
out. This dilemma was his fault, not Stener’s—he felt. It was strange
to him that his father did not see it and resent it.
It is a curious matter of psychology, but it was only now that the real
difficulties of the situation were beginning to dawn on Butler. In the
presence of Cowperwood he was so influenced by that young man’s
personality and his magnetic presentation of his need and his own
liking for him that he had not stopped to consider all the phases of
his own relationship to the situation. Out here in the cool night air,
talking to Owen, who was ambitious on his own account and anything but
sentimentally considerate of Cowperwood, he was beginning to sober down
and see things in their true light. He had to admit that Cowperwood had
seriously compromised the city treasury and the Republican party, and
incidentally Butler’s own private interests. Nevertheless, he liked
Cowperwood. He was in no way prepared to desert him. He was now going
to see Mollenhauer and Simpson as much to save Cowperwood really as the
party and his own affairs. And yet a scandal. He did not like
that—resented it. This young scalawag! To think he should be so sly.
None the less he still liked him, even here and now, and was feeling
that he ought to do something to help the young man, if anything could
help him. He might even leave his hundred-thousand-dollar loan with him
until the last hour, as Cowperwood had requested, if the others were
friendly.
“Well, father,” said Owen, after a time, “I don’t see why you need to
worry any more than Mollenhauer or Simpson. If you three want to help
him out, you can; but for the life of me I don’t see why you should. I
know this thing will have a bad effect on the election, if it comes out
before then; but it could be hushed up until then, couldn’t it? Anyhow,
your street-railway holdings are more important than this election, and
if you can see your way clear to getting the street-railway lines in
your hands you won’t need to worry about any elections. My advice to
you is to call that one-hundred-thousand-dollar loan of yours in the
morning, and meet the drop in your stocks that way. It may make
Cowperwood fail, but that won’t hurt you any. You can go into the
market and buy his stocks. I wouldn’t be surprised if he would run to
you and ask you to take them. You ought to get Mollenhauer and Simpson
to scare Stener so that he won’t loan Cowperwood any more money. If you
don’t, Cowperwood will run there and get more. Stener’s in too far now.
If Cowperwood won’t sell out, well and good; the chances are he will
bust, anyhow, and then you can pick up as much on the market as any one
else. I think he’ll sell. You can’t afford to worry about Stener’s five
hundred thousand dollars. No one told him to loan it. Let him look out
for himself. It may hurt the party, but you can look after that later.
You and Mollenhauer can fix the newspapers so they won’t talk about it
till after election.”
“Aisy! Aisy!” was all the old contractor would say. He was thinking
hard.
Chapter XXV
The residence of Henry A. Mollenhauer was, at that time, in a section
of the city which was almost as new as that in which Butler was living.
It was on South Broad Street, near a handsome library building which
had been recently erected. It was a spacious house of the type usually
affected by men of new wealth in those days—a structure four stories in
height of yellow brick and white stone built after no school which one
could readily identify, but not unattractive in its architectural
composition. A broad flight of steps leading to a wide veranda gave
into a decidedly ornate door, which was set on either side by narrow
windows and ornamented to the right and left with pale-blue jardinieres
of considerable charm of outline. The interior, divided into twenty
rooms, was paneled and parqueted in the most expensive manner for homes
of that day. There was a great reception-hall, a large parlor or
drawing-room, a dining-room at least thirty feet square paneled in oak;
and on the second floor were a music-room devoted to the talents of
Mollenhauer’s three ambitious daughters, a library and private office
for himself, a boudoir and bath for his wife, and a conservatory.
Mollenhauer was, and felt himself to be, a very important man. His
financial and political judgment was exceedingly keen. Although he was
a German, or rather an American of German parentage, he was a man of a
rather impressive American presence. He was tall and heavy and shrewd
and cold. His large chest and wide shoulders supported a head of
distinguished proportions, both round and long when seen from different
angles. The frontal bone descended in a protruding curve over the nose,
and projected solemnly over the eyes, which burned with a shrewd,
inquiring gaze. And the nose and mouth and chin below, as well as his
smooth, hard cheeks, confirmed the impression that he knew very well
what he wished in this world, and was very able without regard to let
or hindrance to get it. It was a big face, impressive, well modeled. He
was an excellent friend of Edward Malia Butler’s, as such friendships
go, and his regard for Mark Simpson was as sincere as that of one tiger
for another. He respected ability; he was willing to play fair when
fair was the game. When it was not, the reach of his cunning was not
easily measured.
When Edward Butler and his son arrived on this Sunday evening, this
distinguished representative of one-third of the city’s interests was
not expecting them. He was in his library reading and listening to one
of his daughters playing the piano. His wife and his other two
daughters had gone to church. He was of a domestic turn of mind. Still,
Sunday evening being an excellent one for conference purposes generally
in the world of politics, he was not without the thought that some one
or other of his distinguished confreres might call, and when the
combination footman and butler announced the presence of Butler and his
son, he was well pleased.
“It’s a comfortable place you have here,” said Butler, without any
indication of the important mission that had brought him. “I don’t
wonder you stay at home Sunday evenings. What’s new in the city?”
“Well, yes,” said Butler, draining off the remainder of a brandy and
soda that had been prepared for him. “One thing. You haven’t seen an
avenin’ paper, have you?”
“No, I haven’t,” said Mollenhauer, straightening up. “Is there one out?
What’s the trouble anyhow?”
“You don’t say! I didn’t hear that. There’s a paper out, is there?
Well, well—is it much of a fire?”
“The city is burning down, so they say,” put in Owen, who was watching
the face of the distinguished politician with considerable interest.
“Well, that is news. I must send out and get a paper. John!” he called.
His man-servant appeared. “See if you can get me a paper somewhere.”
The servant disappeared. “What makes you think that would have anything
to do with us?” observed Mollenhauer, returning to Butler.
“Well, there’s one thing that goes with that that I didn’t know till a
little while ago and that is that our man Stener is apt to be short in
his accounts, unless things come out better than some people seem to
think,” suggested Butler, calmly. “That might not look so well before
election, would it?” His shrewd gray Irish eyes looked into
Mollenhauer’s, who returned his gaze.
“Where did you get that?” queried Mr. Mollenhauer icily. “He hasn’t
deliberately taken much money, has he? How much has he taken—do you
know?”
Mollenhauer, sly and secretive himself, was apparently not at all moved
by this unexpected development. At the same time, never having thought
of Stener as having any particular executive or financial ability, he
was a little stirred and curious. So his treasurer was using money
without his knowing it, and now stood in danger of being prosecuted!
Cowperwood he knew of only indirectly, as one who had been engaged to
handle city loan. He had profited by his manipulation of city loan.
Evidently the banker had made a fool of Stener, and had used the money
for street-railway shares! He and Stener must have quite some private
holdings then. That did interest Mollenhauer greatly.
“Just the man,” said Mollenhauer. “Show him up. You can see what he
thinks.”
“Perhaps I had better leave you alone now,” suggested Owen to his
father. “Perhaps I can find Miss Caroline, and she will sing for me.
I’ll wait for you, father,” he added.
A more interesting type of his kind than Senator Mark Simpson never
flourished in the State of Pennsylvania, which has been productive of
interesting types. Contrasted with either of the two men who now
greeted him warmly and shook his hand, he was physically unimpressive.
He was small—five feet nine inches, to Mollenhauer’s six feet and
Butler’s five feet eleven inches and a half, and then his face was
smooth, with a receding jaw. In the other two this feature was
prominent. Nor were his eyes as frank as those of Butler, nor as
defiant as those of Mollenhauer; but for subtlety they were unmatched
by either—deep, strange, receding, cavernous eyes which contemplated
you as might those of a cat looking out of a dark hole, and suggesting
all the artfulness that has ever distinguished the feline family. He
had a strange mop of black hair sweeping down over a fine, low, white
forehead, and a skin as pale and bluish as poor health might make it;
but there was, nevertheless, resident here a strange, resistant,
capable force that ruled men—the subtlety with which he knew how to
feed cupidity with hope and gain and the ruthlessness with which he
repaid those who said him nay. He was a still man, as such a man might
well have been—feeble and fish-like in his handshake, wan and slightly
lackadaisical in his smile, but speaking always with eyes that answered
for every defect.
“Av’nin’, Mark, I’m glad to see you,” was Butler’s greeting.
“Well, Senator, you’re not looking any the worse for wear. Can I pour
you something?”
“Well, it’s a good thing you dropped in, Senator, just when you did,”
began Mollenhauer, seating himself after his guest. “Butler here has
been telling me of a little political problem that has arisen since I
last saw you. I suppose you’ve heard that Chicago is burning?”
“Here’s the paper now,” said Butler, as John, the servant, came in from
the street bearing the paper in his hand. Mollenhauer took it and
spread it out before them. It was among the earliest of the “extras”
that were issued in this country, and contained a rather impressive
spread of type announcing that the conflagration in the lake city was
growing hourly worse since its inception the day before.
“Well, that is certainly dreadful,” said Simpson. “I’m very sorry for
Chicago. I have many friends there. I shall hope to hear that it is not
so bad as it seems.”
“Well, Mr. Stener, it seems, has been loaning out a good deal of the
city’s money to this young Cowperwood, in Third Street, who has been
handling city loans.”
“Well, it seems that Stener has loaned him as much as five hundred
thousand dollars, and if by any chance Cowperwood shouldn’t be able to
weather this storm, Stener is apt to be short that amount, and that
wouldn’t look so good as a voting proposition to the people in
November, do you think? Cowperwood owes Mr. Butler here one hundred
thousand dollars, and because of that he came to see him to-night. He
wanted Butler to see if something couldn’t be done through us to tide
him over. If not”—he waved one hand suggestively—“well, he might fail.”
Simpson fingered his strange, wide mouth with his delicate hand. “What
have they been doing with the five hundred thousand dollars?” he asked.
“Oh, the boys must make a little somethin’ on the side,” said Butler,
cheerfully. “I think they’ve been buyin’ up street-railways, for one
thing.” He stuck his thumbs in the armholes of his vest. Both
Mollenhauer and Simpson smiled wan smiles.
“Quite so,” said Mollenhauer. Senator Simpson merely looked the deep
things that he thought.
He, too, was thinking how useless it was for any one to approach a
group of politicians with a proposition like this, particularly in a
crisis such as bid fair to occur. He reflected that if he and Butler
and Mollenhauer could get together and promise Cowperwood protection in
return for the surrender of his street-railway holdings it would be a
very different matter. It would be very easy in this case to carry the
city treasury loan along in silence and even issue more money to
support it; but it was not sure, in the first place, that Cowperwood
could be made to surrender his stocks, and in the second place that
either Butler or Mollenhauer would enter into any such deal with him,
Simpson. Butler had evidently come here to say a good word for
Cowperwood. Mollenhauer and himself were silent rivals. Although they
worked together politically it was toward essentially different
financial ends. They were allied in no one particular financial
proposition, any more than Mollenhauer and Butler were. And besides, in
all probability Cowperwood was no fool. He was not equally guilty with
Stener; the latter had loaned him money. The Senator reflected on
whether he should broach some such subtle solution of the situation as
had occurred to him to his colleagues, but he decided not. Really
Mollenhauer was too treacherous a man to work with on a thing of this
kind. It was a splendid chance but dangerous. He had better go it
alone. For the present they should demand of Stener that he get
Cowperwood to return the five hundred thousand dollars if he could. If
not, Stener could be sacrificed for the benefit of the party, if need
be. Cowperwood’s stocks, with this tip as to his condition, would,
Simpson reflected, offer a good opportunity for a little stock-exchange
work on the part of his own brokers. They could spread rumors as to
Cowperwood’s condition and then offer to take his shares off his
hands—for a song, of course. It was an evil moment that led Cowperwood
to Butler.
“But this matter of the city treasury, now,” said Senator Simpson,
after the atmosphere had been allowed to settle a little, “is something
to which we shall have to devote a little thought. If Mr. Cowperwood
should fail, and the treasury lose that much money, it would embarrass
us no little. What lines are they,” he added, as an afterthought, “that
this man has been particularly interested in?”
“I really don’t know,” replied Butler, who did not care to say what
Owen had told him on the drive over.
“I don’t see,” said Mollenhauer, “unless we can make Stener get the
money back before this man Cowperwood fails, how we can save ourselves
from considerable annoyance later; but if we did anything which would
look as though we were going to compel restitution, he would probably
shut up shop anyhow. So there’s no remedy in that direction. And it
wouldn’t be very kind to our friend Edward here to do it until we hear
how he comes out on his affair.” He was referring to Butler’s loan.
“Certainly not,” said Senator Simpson, with true political sagacity and
feeling.
“I’ll have that one hundred thousand dollars in the mornin’,” said
Butler, “and never fear.”
“I think,” said Simpson, “if anything comes of this matter that we will
have to do our best to hush it up until after the election. The
newspapers can just as well keep silent on that score as not. There’s
one thing I would suggest”—and he was now thinking of the
street-railway properties which Cowperwood had so judiciously
collected—“and that is that the city treasurer be cautioned against
advancing any more money in a situation of this kind. He might readily
be compromised into advancing much more. I suppose a word from you,
Henry, would prevent that.”
Thus ended Frank Cowperwood’s dreams of what Butler and his political
associates might do for him in his hour of distress.
“I can’t tell you, Frank,” Walter Leigh insisted, “I don’t know how
things will be running by to-morrow noon. I’m glad to know how you
stand. I’m glad you’re doing what you’re doing—getting all your affairs
in shape. It will help a lot. I’ll favor you all I possibly can. But if
the chief decides on a certain group of loans to be called, they’ll
have to be called, that’s all. I’ll do my best to make things look
better. If the whole of Chicago is wiped out, the insurance
companies—some of them, anyhow—are sure to go, and then look out. I
suppose you’ll call in all your loans?”
The two men shook hands. They liked each other. Leigh was of the city’s
fashionable coterie, a society man to the manner born, but with a
wealth of common sense and a great deal of worldly experience.
He looked directly into his long-time friend’s eyes, and they smiled.
It was the same with Avery Stone, President Davison, and others. They
had all already heard rumors of disaster when he arrived. They were not
sure what the morrow would bring forth. It looked very unpromising.
Cowperwood decided to stop and see Butler again for he felt certain his
interview with Mollenhauer and Simpson was now over. Butler, who had
been meditating what he should say to Cowperwood, was not unfriendly in
his manner. “So you’re back,” he said, when Cowperwood appeared.
“Well, I’m not sure that I’ve been able to do anything for you. I’m
afraid not,” Butler said, cautiously. “It’s a hard job you set me.
Mollenhauer seems to think that he’ll support the market, on his own
account. I think he will. Simpson has interests which he has to
protect. I’m going to buy for myself, of course.”
He paused to reflect.
“I couldn’t get them to call a conference with any of the big moneyed
men as yet,” he added, warily. “They’d rather wait and see what happens
in the mornin’. Still, I wouldn’t be down-hearted if I were you. If
things turn out very bad they may change their minds. I had to tell
them about Stener. It’s pretty bad, but they’re hopin’ you’ll come
through and straighten that out. I hope so. About my own loan—well,
I’ll see how things are in the mornin’. If I raisonably can I’ll lave
it with you. You’d better see me again about it. I wouldn’t try to get
any more money out of Stener if I were you. It’s pretty bad as it is.”
Cowperwood saw at once that he was to get no aid from the politicians.
The one thing that disturbed him was this reference to Stener. Had they
already communicated with him—warned him? If so, his own coming to
Butler had been a bad move; and yet from the point of view of his
possible failure on the morrow it had been advisable. At least now the
politicians knew where he stood. If he got in a very tight corner he
would come to Butler again—the politicians could assist him or not, as
they chose. If they did not help him and he failed, and the election
were lost, it was their own fault. Anyhow, if he could see Stener first
the latter would not be such a fool as to stand in his own light in a
crisis like this.
“Things look rather dark to-night, Mr. Butler,” he said, smartly, “but
I still think I’ll come through. I hope so, anyhow. I’m sorry to have
put you to so much trouble. I wish, of course, that you gentlemen could
see your way clear to assist me, but if you can’t, you can’t. I have a
number of things that I can do. I hope that you will leave your loan as
long as you can.”
He went briskly out, and Butler meditated. “A clever young chap that,”
he said. “It’s too bad. But he may come out all right at that.”
Cowperwood hurried to his own home only to find his father awake and
brooding. To him he talked with that strong vein of sympathy and
understanding which is usually characteristic of those drawn by ties of
flesh and blood. He liked his father. He sympathized with his
painstaking effort to get up in the world. He could not forget that as
a boy he had had the loving sympathy and interest of his father. The
loan which he had from the Third National, on somewhat weak Union
Street Railway shares he could probably replace if stocks did not drop
too tremendously. He must replace this at all costs. But his father’s
investments in street-railways, which had risen with his own ventures,
and which now involved an additional two hundred thousand—how could he
protect those? The shares were hypothecated and the money was used for
other things. Additional collateral would have to be furnished the
several banks carrying them. It was nothing except loans, loans, loans,
and the need of protecting them. If he could only get an additional
deposit of two or three hundred thousand dollars from Stener. But that,
in the face of possible financial difficulties, was rank criminality.
All depended on the morrow.
Monday, the ninth, dawned gray and cheerless. He was up with the first
ray of light, shaved and dressed, and went over, under the gray-green
pergola, to his father’s house. He was up, also, and stirring about,
for he had not been able to sleep. His gray eyebrows and gray hair
looked rather shaggy and disheveled, and his side-whiskers anything but
decorative. The old gentleman’s eyes were tired, and his face was gray.
Cowperwood could see that he was worrying. He looked up from a small,
ornate escritoire of buhl, which Ellsworth had found somewhere, and
where he was quietly tabulating a list of his resources and
liabilities. Cowperwood winced. He hated to see his father worried, but
he could not help it. He had hoped sincerely, when they built their
houses together, that the days of worry for his father had gone
forever.
“I wouldn’t worry, father. I told you how I fixed it so that Butler and
that crowd will support the market. I have Rivers and Targool and Harry
Eltinge on ’change helping me sell out, and they are the best men
there. They’ll handle the situation carefully. I couldn’t trust Ed or
Joe in this case, for the moment they began to sell everybody would
know what was going on with me. This way my men will seem like bears
hammering the market, but not hammering too hard. I ought to be able to
unload enough at ten points off to raise five hundred thousand. The
market may not go lower than that. You can’t tell. It isn’t going to
sink indefinitely. If I just knew what the big insurance companies were
going to do! The morning paper hasn’t come yet, has it?”
He was going to pull a bell, but remembered that the servants would
scarcely be up as yet. He went to the front door himself. There were
the Press and the Public Ledger lying damp from the presses. He picked
them up and glanced at the front pages. His countenance fell. On one,
the Press, was spread a great black map of Chicago, a most
funereal-looking thing, the black portion indicating the burned
section. He had never seen a map of Chicago before in just this clear,
definite way. That white portion was Lake Michigan, and there was the
Chicago River dividing the city into three almost equal portions—the
north side, the west side, the south side. He saw at once that the city
was curiously arranged, somewhat like Philadelphia, and that the
business section was probably an area of two or three miles square, set
at the juncture of the three sides, and lying south of the main stem of
the river, where it flowed into the lake after the southwest and
northwest branches had united to form it. This was a significant
central area; but, according to this map, it was all burned out.
“Chicago in Ashes” ran a great side-heading set in heavily leaded black
type. It went on to detail the sufferings of the homeless, the number
of the dead, the number of those whose fortunes had been destroyed.
Then it descanted upon the probable effect in the East. Insurance
companies and manufacturers might not be able to meet the great strain
of all this.
Then, though it was still early, he and his father drove to his office.
There were already messages awaiting him, a dozen or more, to cancel or
sell. While he was standing there a messenger-boy brought him three
more. One was from Stener and said that he would be back by twelve
o’clock, the very earliest he could make it. Cowperwood was relieved
and yet distressed. He would need large sums of money to meet various
loans before three. Every hour was precious. He must arrange to meet
Stener at the station and talk to him before any one else should see
him. Clearly this was going to be a hard, dreary, strenuous day.
Third Street, by the time he reached there, was stirring with other
bankers and brokers called forth by the exigencies of the occasion.
There was a suspicious hurrying of feet—that intensity which makes all
the difference in the world between a hundred people placid and a
hundred people disturbed. At the exchange, the atmosphere was feverish.
At the sound of the gong, the staccato uproar began. Its metallic
vibrations were still in the air when the two hundred men who composed
this local organization at its utmost stress of calculation, threw
themselves upon each other in a gibbering struggle to dispose of or
seize bargains of the hour. The interests were so varied that it was
impossible to say at which pole it was best to sell or buy.
Targool and Rivers had been delegated to stay at the center of things,
Joseph and Edward to hover around on the outside and to pick up such
opportunities of selling as might offer a reasonable return on the
stock. The “bears” were determined to jam things down, and it all
depended on how well the agents of Mollenhauer, Simpson, Butler, and
others supported things in the street-railway world whether those
stocks retained any strength or not. The last thing Butler had said the
night before was that they would do the best they could. They would buy
up to a certain point. Whether they would support the market
indefinitely he would not say. He could not vouch for Mollenhauer and
Simpson. Nor did he know the condition of their affairs.
While the excitement was at its highest Cowperwood came in. As he stood
in the door looking to catch the eye of Rivers, the ’change gong
sounded, and trading stopped. All the brokers and traders faced about
to the little balcony, where the secretary of the ’change made his
announcements; and there he stood, the door open behind him, a small,
dark, clerkly man of thirty-eight or forty, whose spare figure and pale
face bespoke the methodic mind that knows no venturous thought. In his
right hand he held a slip of white paper.
Immediately the storm broke anew, more voluble than before, because, if
after one hour of investigation on this Monday morning one insurance
company had gone down, what would four or five hours or a day or two
bring forth? It meant that men who had been burned out in Chicago would
not be able to resume business. It meant that all loans connected with
this concern had been, or would be called now. And the cries of
frightened “bulls” offering thousand and five thousand lot holdings in
Northern Pacific, Illinois Central, Reading, Lake Shore, Wabash; in all
the local streetcar lines; and in Cowperwood’s city loans at constantly
falling prices was sufficient to take the heart out of all concerned.
He hurried to Arthur Rivers’s side in the lull; but there was little he
could say.
“It looks as though the Mollenhauer and Simpson crowds aren’t doing
much for the market,” he observed, gravely.
“They’ve had advices from New York,” explained Rivers solemnly. “It
can’t be supported very well. There are three insurance companies over
there on the verge of quitting, I understand. I expect to see them
posted any minute.”
They stepped apart from the pandemonium, to discuss ways and means.
Under his agreement with Stener, Cowperwood could buy up to one hundred
thousand dollars of city loan, above the customary wash sales, or
market manipulation, by which they were making money. This was in case
the market had to be genuinely supported. He decided to buy sixty
thousand dollars worth now, and use this to sustain his loans
elsewhere. Stener would pay him for this instantly, giving him more
ready cash. It might help him in one way and another; and, anyhow, it
might tend to strengthen the other securities long enough at least to
allow him to realize a little something now at better than ruinous
rates. If only he had the means “to go short” on this market! If only
doing so did not really mean ruin to his present position. It was
characteristic of the man that even in this crisis he should be seeing
how the very thing that of necessity, because of his present
obligations, might ruin him, might also, under slightly different
conditions, yield him a great harvest. He could not take advantage of
it, however. He could not be on both sides of this market. It was
either “bear” or “bull,” and of necessity he was “bull.” It was strange
but true. His subtlety could not avail him here. He was about to turn
and hurry to see a certain banker who might loan him something on his
house, when the gong struck again. Once more trading ceased. Arthur
Rivers, from his position at the State securities post, where city loan
was sold, and where he had started to buy for Cowperwood, looked
significantly at him. Newton Targool hurried to Cowperwood’s side.
“The Eastern and Western Fire Insurance Company of New York announces
that it cannot meet its obligations.”
A low sound something like “Haw!” broke forth. The announcer’s gavel
struck for order.
“H-a-a-a-w!”
“What do you think?” asked Targool. “You can’t brave this storm. Can’t
you quit selling and hold out for a few days? Why not sell short?”
“They ought to close this thing up,” Cowperwood said, shortly. “It
would be a splendid way out. Then nothing could be done.”
Not finding him at his office, he drove direct to his house. Here he
was not surprised to meet Stener just coming out, looking very pale and
distraught. At the sight of Cowperwood he actually blanched.
“Why, hello, Frank,” he exclaimed, sheepishly, “where do you come
from?”
“What’s up, George?” asked Cowperwood. “I thought you were coming into
Broad Street.”
“So I was,” returned Stener, foolishly, “but I thought I would get off
at West Philadelphia and change my clothes. I’ve a lot of things to
’tend to yet this afternoon. I was coming in to see you.” After
Cowperwood’s urgent telegram this was silly, but the young banker let
it pass.
“Listen, George. Whatever you do at this time, don’t let this political
loyalty stuff cloud your judgment. You’re in a very serious position
and so am I. If you don’t act for yourself with me now no one is going
to act for you—now or later—no one. And later will be too late. I
proved that last night when I went to Butler to get help for the two of
us. They all know about this business of our street-railway holdings
and they want to shake us out and that’s the big and little of
it—nothing more and nothing less. It’s a case of dog eat dog in this
game and this particular situation and it’s up to us to save ourselves
against everybody or go down together, and that’s just what I’m here to
tell you. Mollenhauer doesn’t care any more for you to-day than he does
for that lamp-post. It isn’t that money you’ve paid out to me that’s
worrying him, but who’s getting something for it and what. Well they
know that you and I are getting street-railways, don’t you see, and
they don’t want us to have them. Once they get those out of our hands
they won’t waste another day on you or me. Can’t you see that? Once
we’ve lost all we’ve invested, you’re down and so am I—and no one is
going to turn a hand for you or me politically or in any other way. I
want you to understand that, George, because it’s true. And before you
say you won’t or you will do anything because Mollenhauer says so, you
want to think over what I have to tell you.”
He was in front of Stener now, looking him directly in the eye and by
the kinetic force of his mental way attempting to make Stener take the
one step that might save him—Cowperwood—however little in the long run
it might do for Stener. And, more interesting still, he did not care.
Stener, as he saw him now, was a pawn in whosoever’s hands he happened
to be at the time, and despite Mr. Mollenhauer and Mr. Simpson and Mr.
Butler he proposed to attempt to keep him in his own hands if possible.
And so he stood there looking at him as might a snake at a bird
determined to galvanize him into selfish self-interest if possible. But
Stener was so frightened that at the moment it looked as though there
was little to be done with him. His face was a grayish-blue: his
eyelids and eye rings puffy and his hands and lips moist. God, what a
hole he was in now!
“As though I could see you, George, when you were off duck shooting and
when I was wiring everywhere I knew to try to get in touch with you.
How could I? The situation had to be met. Besides, I thought Butler was
more friendly to me than he proved. But there’s no use being angry with
me now, George, for going to Butler as I did, and anyhow you can’t
afford to be now. We’re in this thing together. It’s a case of sink or
swim for just us two—not any one else—just us—don’t you get that?
Butler couldn’t or wouldn’t do what I wanted him to do—get Mollenhauer
and Simpson to support the market. Instead of that they are hammering
it. They have a game of their own. It’s to shake us out—can’t you see
that? Take everything that you and I have gathered. It is up to you and
me, George, to save ourselves, and that’s what I’m here for now. If you
don’t let me have three hundred and fifty thousand dollars—three
hundred thousand, anyhow—you and I are ruined. It will be worse for
you, George, than for me, for I’m not involved in this thing in any
way—not legally, anyhow. But that’s not what I’m thinking of. What I
want to do is to save us both—put us on easy street for the rest of our
lives, whatever they say or do, and it’s in your power, with my help,
to do that for both of us. Can’t you see that? I want to save my
business so then I can help you to save your name and money.” He
paused, hoping this had convinced Stener, but the latter was still
shaking.
“George,” replied Cowperwood, who realized now that only the sternest
arguments would have any effect here, “don’t talk about what I did.
What I did I had to do. You’re in danger of losing your head and your
nerve and making a serious mistake here, and I don’t want to see you
make it. I have five hundred thousand of the city’s money invested for
you—partly for me, and partly for you, but more for you than for
me”—which, by the way, was not true—“and here you are hesitating in an
hour like this as to whether you will protect your interest or not. I
can’t understand it. This is a crisis, George. Stocks are tumbling on
every side—everybody’s stocks. You’re not alone in this—neither am I.
This is a panic, brought on by a fire, and you can’t expect to come out
of a panic alive unless you do something to protect yourself. You say
you owe your place to Mollenhauer and that you’re afraid of what he’ll
do. If you look at your own situation and mine, you’ll see that it
doesn’t make much difference what he does, so long as I don’t fail. If
I fail, where are you? Who’s going to save you from prosecution? Will
Mollenhauer or any one else come forward and put five hundred thousand
dollars in the treasury for you? He will not. If Mollenhauer and the
others have your interests at heart, why aren’t they helping me on
’change today? I’ll tell you why. They want your street-railway
holdings and mine, and they don’t care whether you go to jail afterward
or not. Now if you’re wise you will listen to me. I’ve been loyal to
you, haven’t I? You’ve made money through me—lots of it. If you’re
wise, George, you’ll go to your office and write me your check for
three hundred thousand dollars, anyhow, before you do a single other
thing. Don’t see anybody and don’t do anything till you’ve done that.
You can’t be hung any more for a sheep than you can for a lamb. No one
can prevent you from giving me that check. You’re the city treasurer.
Once I have that I can see my way out of this, and I’ll pay it all back
to you next week or the week after—this panic is sure to end in that
time. With that put back in the treasury we can see them about the five
hundred thousand a little later. In three months, or less, I can fix it
so that you can put that back. As a matter of fact, I can do it in
fifteen days once I am on my feet again. Time is all I want. You won’t
have lost your holdings and nobody will cause you any trouble if you
put the money back. They don’t care to risk a scandal any more than you
do. Now what’ll you do, George? Mollenhauer can’t stop you from doing
this any more than I can make you. Your life is in your own hands. What
will you do?”
“Well, George,” he said earnestly, “I wish you’d tell me. Time’s short.
We haven’t a moment to lose. Give me the money, won’t you, and I’ll get
out of this quick. We haven’t a moment, I tell you. Don’t let those
people frighten you off. They’re playing their own little game; you
play yours.”
“I can’t, Frank,” said Stener, finally, very weakly, his sense of his
own financial future, overcome for the time being by the thought of
Mollenhauer’s hard, controlling face. “I’ll have to think. I can’t do
it right now. Strobik just left me before I saw you, and—”
“Good God, how you talk!” exploded Cowperwood, angrily, looking at him
with ill-concealed contempt. “Go ahead! See Mollenhauer! Let him tell
you how to cut your own throat for his benefit. It won’t be right to
loan me three hundred thousand dollars more, but it will be right to
let the five hundred thousand dollars you have loaned stand unprotected
and lose it. That’s right, isn’t it? That’s just what you propose to
do—lose it, and everything else besides. I want to tell you what it is,
George—you’ve lost your mind. You’ve let a single message from
Mollenhauer frighten you to death, and because of that you’re going to
risk your fortune, your reputation, your standing—everything. Do you
really realize what this means if I fail? You will be a convict, I tell
you, George. You will go to prison. This fellow Mollenhauer, who is so
quick to tell you what not to do now, will be the last man to turn a
hand for you once you’re down. Why, look at me—I’ve helped you, haven’t
I? Haven’t I handled your affairs satisfactorily for you up to now?
What in Heaven’s name has got into you? What have you to be afraid of?”
Stener was just about to make another weak rejoinder when the door from
the outer office opened, and Albert Stires, Stener’s chief clerk,
entered. Stener was too flustered to really pay any attention to Stires
for the moment; but Cowperwood took matters in his own hands.
“Well, George,” he said, after Albert had gone out with instructions
that Stener would see Sengstack in a moment. “I see how it is. This man
has got you mesmerized. You can’t act for yourself now—you’re too
frightened. I’ll let it rest for the present; I’ll come back. But for
Heaven’s sake pull yourself together. Think what it means. I’m telling
you exactly what’s going to happen if you don’t. You’ll be
independently rich if you do. You’ll be a convict if you don’t.”
And deciding he would make one more effort in the street before seeing
Butler again, he walked out briskly, jumped into his light spring
runabout waiting outside—a handsome little yellow-glazed vehicle, with
a yellow leather cushion seat, drawn by a young, high-stepping bay
mare—and sent her scudding from door to door, throwing down the lines
indifferently and bounding up the steps of banks and into office doors.
But all without avail. All were interested, considerate; but things
were very uncertain. The Girard National Bank refused an hour’s grace,
and he had to send a large bundle of his most valuable securities to
cover his stock shrinkage there. Word came from his father at two that
as president of the Third National he would have to call for his one
hundred and fifty thousand dollars due there. The directors were
suspicious of his stocks. He at once wrote a check against fifty
thousand dollars of his deposits in that bank, took twenty-five
thousand of his available office funds, called a loan of fifty thousand
against Tighe & Co., and sold sixty thousand Green & Coates, a line he
had been tentatively dabbling in, for one-third their value—and,
combining the general results, sent them all to the Third National. His
father was immensely relieved from one point of view, but sadly
depressed from another. He hurried out at the noon-hour to see what his
own holdings would bring. He was compromising himself in a way by doing
it, but his parental heart, as well as is own financial interests, were
involved. By mortgaging his house and securing loans on his furniture,
carriages, lots, and stocks, he managed to raise one hundred thousand
in cash, and deposited it in his own bank to Frank’s credit; but it was
a very light anchor to windward in this swirling storm, at that. Frank
had been counting on getting all of his loans extended three or four
days at least. Reviewing his situation at two o’clock of this Monday
afternoon, he said to himself thoughtfully but grimly: “Well, Stener
has to loan me three hundred thousand—that’s all there is to it. And
I’ll have to see Butler now, or he’ll be calling his loan before
three.”
He hurried out, and was off to Butler’s house, driving like mad.
Chapter XXVI
Things had changed greatly since last Cowperwood had talked with
Butler. Although most friendly at the time the proposition was made
that he should combine with Mollenhauer and Simpson to sustain the
market, alas, now on this Monday morning at nine o’clock, an additional
complication had been added to the already tangled situation which had
changed Butler’s attitude completely. As he was leaving his home to
enter his runabout, at nine o’clock in the morning of this same day in
which Cowperwood was seeking Stener’s aid, the postman, coming up, had
handed Butler four letters, all of which he paused for a moment to
glance at. One was from a sub-contractor by the name of O’Higgins, the
second was from Father Michel, his confessor, of St. Timothy’s,
thanking him for a contribution to the parish poor fund; a third was
from Drexel & Co. relating to a deposit, and the fourth was an
anonymous communication, on cheap stationery from some one who was
apparently not very literate—a woman most likely—written in a scrawling
hand, which read:
There was neither signature nor mark of any kind to indicate from
whence it might have come. Butler got the impression strongly that it
might have been written by some one living in the vicinity of the
number indicated. His intuitions were keen at times. As a matter of
fact, it was written by a girl, a member of St. Timothy’s Church, who
did live in the vicinity of the house indicated, and who knew Aileen by
sight and was jealous of her airs and her position. She was a thin,
anemic, dissatisfied creature who had the type of brain which can
reconcile the gratification of personal spite with a comforting sense
of having fulfilled a moral duty. Her home was some five doors north of
the unregistered Cowperwood domicile on the opposite side of the
street, and by degrees, in the course of time, she made out, or
imagined that she had, the significance of this institution, piecing
fact to fancy and fusing all with that keen intuition which is so
closely related to fact. The result was eventually this letter which
now spread clear and grim before Butler’s eyes.
So Edward Butler, being a man of much wit and hard, grim experience,
stood there on his doorstep holding in his big, rough hand his thin
slip of cheap paper which contained such a terrific indictment of his
daughter. There came to him now a picture of her as she was when she
was a very little girl—she was his first baby girl—and how keenly he
had felt about her all these years. She had been a beautiful child—her
red-gold hair had been pillowed on his breast many a time, and his
hard, rough fingers had stroked her soft cheeks, lo, these thousands of
times. Aileen, his lovely, dashing daughter of twenty-three! He was
lost in dark, strange, unhappy speculations, without any present
ability to think or say or do the right thing. He did not know what the
right thing was, he finally confessed to himself. Aileen! Aileen! His
Aileen! If her mother knew this it would break her heart. She mustn’t!
She mustn’t! And yet mustn’t she?
The heart of a father! The world wanders into many strange by-paths of
affection. The love of a mother for her children is dominant, leonine,
selfish, and unselfish. It is concentric. The love of a husband for his
wife, or of a lover for his sweetheart, is a sweet bond of agreement
and exchange trade in a lovely contest. The love of a father for his
son or daughter, where it is love at all, is a broad, generous, sad,
contemplative giving without thought of return, a hail and farewell to
a troubled traveler whom he would do much to guard, a balanced judgment
of weakness and strength, with pity for failure and pride in
achievement. It is a lovely, generous, philosophic blossom which rarely
asks too much, and seeks only to give wisely and plentifully. “That my
boy may succeed! That my daughter may be happy!” Who has not heard and
dwelt upon these twin fervors of fatherly wisdom and tenderness?
He went up the stairs to his own office slowly. He went in and sat
down, and thought and thought. Ten o’clock came, and eleven. His son
bothered him with an occasional matter of interest, but, finding him
moody, finally abandoned him to his own speculations. It was twelve,
and then one, and he was still sitting there thinking, when the
presence of Cowperwood was announced.
“I came to see you about that loan of yours, Mr. Butler,” he observed,
briskly, with an old-time, jaunty air. You could not have told from his
manner or his face that he had observed anything out of the ordinary.
Butler, who was alone in the room—Owen having gone into an adjoining
room—merely stared at him from under his shaggy brows.
“I’ll have to have that money,” he said, brusquely, darkly.
“I judged from the way things were going this morning that you might
want it,” Cowperwood replied, quietly, without sign of tremor. “The
bottom’s out, I see.”
“The bottom’s out, and it’ll not be put back soon, I’m thinkin’. I’ll
have to have what’s belongin’ to me to-day. I haven’t any time to
spare.”
“Very well,” replied Cowperwood, who saw clearly how treacherous the
situation was. The old man was in a dour mood. His presence was an
irritation to him, for some reason—a deadly provocation. Cowperwood
felt clearly that it must be Aileen, that he must know or suspect
something.
He must pretend business hurry and end this. “I’m sorry. I thought I
might get an extension; but that’s all right. I can get the money,
though. I’ll send it right over.”
The old man was flustered, enraged, disappointed. He opened the small
office door which led into the adjoining room, and called, “Owen!”
“Yes, father.”
“I have.”
Owen was puzzled by the old man’s angry mood. He wondered what it all
meant, but thought he and Cowperwood might have had a few words. He
went out to his desk to write a note and call a clerk. Butler went to
the window and stared out. He was angry, bitter, brutal in his vein.
“I’ll fix him. I’ll show him. The dog! The damned scoundrel!”
So now, telling the clerk to say to Owen that he had gone down the
street for a few moments, he boarded a street-car and rode out to his
home, where he found his elder daughter just getting ready to go out.
She wore a purple-velvet street dress edged with narrow, flat gilt
braid, and a striking gold-and-purple turban. She had on dainty new
boots of bronze kid and long gloves of lavender suede. In her ears was
one of her latest affectations, a pair of long jet earrings. The old
Irishman realized on this occasion, when he saw her, perhaps more
clearly than he ever had in his life, that he had grown a bird of rare
plumage.
“To the library,” she said easily, and yet with a sudden realization
that all was not right with her father. His face was too heavy and
gray. He looked tired and gloomy.
Butler led the way, planting his big feet solemnly on the steps as he
went up. Aileen followed with a single glance at herself in the tall
pier-mirror which stood in the hall, realizing at once how charming she
looked and how uncertain she was feeling about what was to follow. What
could her father want? It made the color leave her cheeks for the
moment, as she thought what he might want.
Butler strolled into his stuffy room and sat down in the big leather
chair, disproportioned to everything else in the chamber, but which,
nevertheless, accompanied his desk. Before him, against the light, was
the visitor’s chair, in which he liked to have those sit whose faces he
was anxious to study. When Aileen entered he motioned her to it, which
was also ominous to her, and said, “Sit down there.”
She took the seat, not knowing what to make of his procedure. On the
instant her promise to Cowperwood to deny everything, whatever
happened, came back to her. If her father was about to attack her on
that score, he would get no satisfaction, she thought. She owed it to
Frank. Her pretty face strengthened and hardened on the instant. Her
small, white teeth set themselves in two even rows; and her father saw
quite plainly that she was consciously bracing herself for an attack of
some kind. He feared by this that she was guilty, and he was all the
more distressed, ashamed, outraged, made wholly unhappy. He fumbled in
the left-hand pocket of his coat and drew forth from among the various
papers the fatal communication so cheap in its physical texture. His
big fingers fumbled almost tremulously as he fished the letter-sheet
out of the small envelope and unfolded it without saying a word. Aileen
watched his face and his hands, wondering what it could be that he had
here. He handed the paper over, small in his big fist, and said, “Read
that.”
Aileen took it, and for a second was relieved to be able to lower her
eyes to the paper. Her relief vanished in a second, when she realized
how in a moment she would have to raise them again and look him in the
face.
In spite of herself the color fled from her cheeks instantly, only to
come back in a hot, defiant wave.
“Why, what a lie!” she said, lifting her eyes to her father’s. “To
think that any one should write such a thing of me! How dare they! I
think it’s a shame!”
Old Butler looked at her narrowly, solemnly. He was not deceived to any
extent by her bravado. If she were really innocent, he knew she would
have jumped to her feet in her defiant way. Protest would have been
written all over her. As it was, she only stared haughtily. He read
through her eager defiance to the guilty truth.
Only Aileen’s solemn promise to her lover could have saved her from
this subtle thrust. As it was, she paled nervously; but she saw Frank
Cowperwood, solemn and distinguished, asking her what she would say if
she were caught.
“It’s a lie!” she said, catching her breath. “I wasn’t at any house at
that number, and no one saw me going in there. How can you ask me that,
father?”
“But it’s not so,” insisted Aileen, pretending anger and outraged
feeling, “and I don’t think you have any right to sit there and say
that to me. I haven’t been there, and I’m not running around with Mr.
Cowperwood. Why, I hardly know the man except in a social way.”
“It’s a great blow to me, daughter. It’s a great blow to me,” he said.
“I’m willing to take your word if ye say so; but I can’t help thinkin’
what a sad thing it would be if ye were lyin’ to me. I haven’t had the
house watched. I only got this this mornin’. And what’s written here
may not be so. I hope it isn’t. But we’ll not say any more about that
now. If there is anythin’ in it, and ye haven’t gone too far yet to
save yourself, I want ye to think of your mother and your sister and
your brothers, and be a good girl. Think of the church ye was raised
in, and the name we’ve got to stand up for in the world. Why, if ye
were doin’ anything wrong, and the people of Philadelphy got a hold of
it, the city, big as it is, wouldn’t be big enough to hold us. Your
brothers have got a reputation to make, their work to do here. You and
your sister want to get married sometime. How could ye expect to look
the world in the face and do anythin’ at all if ye are doin’ what this
letter says ye are, and it was told about ye?”
The old man’s voice was thick with a strange, sad, alien emotion. He
did not want to believe that his daughter was guilty, even though he
knew she was. He did not want to face what he considered in his
vigorous, religious way to be his duty, that of reproaching her
sternly. There were some fathers who would have turned her out, he
fancied. There were others who might possibly kill Cowperwood after a
subtle investigation. That course was not for him. If vengeance he was
to have, it must be through politics and finance—he must drive him out.
But as for doing anything desperate in connection with Aileen, he could
not think of it.
The old Irishman saw through her make-believe with profound sadness—the
feeling that one of his dearest hopes had been shattered. He had
expected so much of her socially and matrimonially. Why, any one of a
dozen remarkable young men might have married her, and she would have
had lovely children to comfort him in his old age.
“Well, we’ll not talk any more about it now, daughter,” he said,
wearily. “Ye’ve been so much to me during all these years that I can
scarcely belave anythin’ wrong of ye. I don’t want to, God knows. Ye’re
a grown woman, though, now; and if ye are doin’ anythin’ wrong I don’t
suppose I could do so much to stop ye. I might turn ye out, of course,
as many a father would; but I wouldn’t like to do anythin’ like that.
But if ye are doin’ anythin’ wrong”—and he put up his hand to stop a
proposed protest on the part of Aileen—“remember, I’m certain to find
it out in the long run, and Philadelphy won’t be big enough to hold me
and the man that’s done this thing to me. I’ll get him,” he said,
getting up dramatically. “I’ll get him, and when I do—” He turned a
livid face to the wall, and Aileen saw clearly that Cowperwood, in
addition to any other troubles which might beset him, had her father to
deal with. Was this why Frank had looked so sternly at her the night
before?
“Why, your mother would die of a broken heart if she thought there was
anybody could say the least word against ye,” pursued Butler, in a
shaken voice. “This man has a family—a wife and children, Ye oughtn’t
to want to do anythin’ to hurt them. They’ll have trouble enough, if
I’m not mistaken—facin’ what’s comin’ to them in the future,” and
Butler’s jaw hardened just a little. “Ye’re a beautiful girl. Ye’re
young. Ye have money. There’s dozens of young men’d be proud to make ye
their wife. Whatever ye may be thinkin’ or doin’, don’t throw away your
life. Don’t destroy your immortal soul. Don’t break my heart entirely.”
Butler lifted his big, brown hand to command silence. She saw that this
shameful relationship, as far as her father was concerned, had been
made quite clear, and that this trying conference was now at an end.
She turned and walked shamefacedly out. He waited until he heard her
steps fading into faint nothings down the hall toward her room. Then he
arose. Once more he clinched his big fists.
Chapter XXVII
For the first time in his life Cowperwood felt conscious of having been
in the presence of that interesting social phenomenon—the outraged
sentiment of a parent. While he had no absolute knowledge as to why
Butler had been so enraged, he felt that Aileen was the contributing
cause. He himself was a father. His boy, Frank, Jr., was to him not so
remarkable. But little Lillian, with her dainty little slip of a body
and bright-aureoled head, had always appealed to him. She was going to
be a charming woman one day, he thought, and he was going to do much to
establish her safely. He used to tell her that she had “eyes like
buttons,” “feet like a pussy-cat,” and hands that were “just five
cents’ worth,” they were so little. The child admired her father and
would often stand by his chair in the library or the sitting-room, or
his desk in his private office, or by his seat at the table, asking him
questions.
This attitude toward his own daughter made him see clearly how Butler
might feel toward Aileen. He wondered how he would feel if it were his
own little Lillian, and still he did not believe he would make much
fuss over the matter, either with himself or with her, if she were as
old as Aileen. Children and their lives were more or less above the
willing of parents, anyhow, and it would be a difficult thing for any
parent to control any child, unless the child were naturally
docile-minded and willing to be controlled.
It also made him smile, in a grim way, to see how fate was raining
difficulties on him. The Chicago fire, Stener’s early absence, Butler,
Mollenhauer, and Simpson’s indifference to Stener’s fate and his. And
now this probable revelation in connection with Aileen. He could not be
sure as yet, but his intuitive instincts told him that it must be
something like this.
Now he was distressed as to what Aileen would do, say if suddenly she
were confronted by her father. If he could only get to her! But if he
was to meet Butler’s call for his loan, and the others which would come
yet to-day or on the morrow, there was not a moment to lose. If he did
not pay he must assign at once. Butler’s rage, Aileen, his own danger,
were brushed aside for the moment. His mind concentrated wholly on how
to save himself financially.
What a pretty pass for one to come to whose hopes had so recently run
so high! There was a loan of one hundred thousand dollars from the
Girard National Bank which he was particularly anxious to clear off.
This bank was the most important in the city, and if he retained its
good will by meeting this loan promptly he might hope for favors in the
future whatever happened. Yet, at the moment, he did not see how he
could do it. He decided, however, after some reflection, that he would
deliver the stocks which Judge Kitchen, Zimmerman, and others had
agreed to take and get their checks or cash yet this night. Then he
would persuade Stener to let him have a check for the sixty thousand
dollars’ worth of city loan he had purchased this morning on ’change.
Out of it he could take twenty-five thousand dollars to make up the
balance due the bank, and still have thirty-five thousand for himself.
The one unfortunate thing about such an arrangement was that by doing
it he was building up a rather complicated situation in regard to these
same certificates. Since their purchase in the morning, he had not
deposited them in the sinking-fund, where they belonged (they had been
delivered to his office by half past one in the afternoon), but, on the
contrary, had immediately hypothecated them to cover another loan. It
was a risky thing to have done, considering that he was in danger of
failing and that he was not absolutely sure of being able to take them
up in time.
Since Cowperwood’s visit Stener had talked still more with Sengstack,
Strobik, and others, all sent to see that a proper fear of things
financial had been put in his heart. The result was decidedly one which
spelled opposition to Cowperwood.
There was more in this conversation to the same effect, and then Stener
hurried as fast as his legs could carry him to Mollenhauer’s office. He
was so frightened that he could scarcely breathe, and he was quite
ready to throw himself on his knees before the big German-American
financier and leader. Oh, if Mr. Mollenhauer would only help him! If he
could just get out of this without going to jail!
“Oh, Lord! Oh, Lord! Oh, Lord!” he repeated, over and over to himself,
as he walked. “What shall I do?”
He was wondering, in view of what Butler had told him, just how much he
could advantage himself in this situation. If he could, he wanted to
get control of whatever street-railway stock Stener now had, without in
any way compromising himself. Stener’s shares could easily be
transferred on ’change through Mollenhauer’s brokers to a dummy, who
would eventually transfer them to himself (Mollenhauer). Stener must be
squeezed thoroughly, though, this afternoon, and as for his five
hundred thousand dollars’ indebtedness to the treasury, Mollenhauer did
not see what could be done about that. If Cowperwood could not pay it,
the city would have to lose it; but the scandal must be hushed up until
after election. Stener, unless the various party leaders had more
generosity than Mollenhauer imagined, would have to suffer exposure,
arrest, trial, confiscation of his property, and possibly sentence to
the penitentiary, though this might easily be commuted by the governor,
once public excitement died down. He did not trouble to think whether
Cowperwood was criminally involved or not. A hundred to one he was not.
Trust a shrewd man like that to take care of himself. But if there was
any way to shoulder the blame on to Cowperwood, and so clear the
treasurer and the skirts of the party, he would not object to that. He
wanted to hear the full story of Stener’s relations with the broker
first. Meanwhile, the thing to do was to seize what Stener had to
yield.
“Well, he owes me, or the city treasury rather, five hundred thousand
dollars, and I understand that he is going to fail and that he can’t
pay it back.”
His fat, white lips were trembling—wabbling nervously—and big hot tears
were coursing down his previously pale but now flushed cheeks. He
presented one of those almost unbelievable pictures which are yet so
intensely human and so true. If only the great financial and political
giants would for once accurately reveal the details of their lives!
“Get Up, Stener,” he said, calmly, after a few moments. “You mustn’t
give way to your feelings like this. You must not cry. These troubles
are never unraveled by tears. You must do a little thinking for
yourself. Perhaps your situation isn’t so bad.”
As he was saying this Stener was putting himself back in his chair,
getting out his handkerchief, and sobbing hopelessly in it.
“I’ll do what I can, Stener. I won’t promise anything. I can’t tell you
what the result will be. There are many peculiar political forces in
this city. I may not be able to save you, but I am perfectly willing to
try. You must put yourself absolutely under my direction. You must not
say or do anything without first consulting with me. I will send my
secretary to you from time to time. He will tell you what to do. You
must not come to me unless I send for you. Do you understand that
thoroughly?”
“Well, now, dry your eyes. I don’t want you to go out of this office
crying. Go back to your office, and I will send Sengstack to see you.
He will tell you what to do. Follow him exactly. And whenever I send
for you come at once.”
Chapter XXVIII
Stener was quite alone, worried and distraught. He was anxious to see
Cowperwood, and at the same time afraid.
He was looking at Stener’s face, and seeing fear and a pained and yet
very definite necessity for opposition written there. “Chicago is
burning, but it will be built up again. Business will be all the better
for it later on. Now, I want you to be reasonable and help me. Don’t
get frightened.”
“Yes.”
“He said just what I thought he’d say. He won’t let me do this. I
can’t, Frank, I tell you!” exclaimed Stener, jumping up. He was so
nervous that he had had a hard time keeping his seat during this short,
direct conversation. “I can’t! They’ve got me in a corner! They’re
after me! They all know what we’ve been doing. Oh, say, Frank”—he threw
up his arms wildly—“you’ve got to get me out of this. You’ve got to let
me have that five hundred thousand back and get me out of this. If you
don’t, and you should fail, they’ll send me to the penitentiary. I’ve
got a wife and four children, Frank. I can’t go on in this. It’s too
big for me. I never should have gone in on it in the first place. I
never would have if you hadn’t persuaded me, in a way. I never thought
when I began that I would ever get in as bad as all this. I can’t go
on, Frank. I can’t! I’m willing you should have all my stock. Only give
me back that five hundred thousand, and we’ll call it even.” His voice
rose nervously as he talked, and he wiped his wet forehead with his
hand and stared at Cowperwood pleadingly, foolishly.
Cowperwood stared at him in return for a few moments with a cold, fishy
eye. He knew a great deal about human nature, and he was ready for and
expectant of any queer shift in an individual’s attitude, particularly
in time of panic; but this shift of Stener’s was quite too much. “Whom
else have you been talking to, George, since I saw you? Whom have you
seen? What did Sengstack have to say?”
“He says just what Mollenhauer does, that I mustn’t loan any more money
under any circumstances, and he says I ought to get that five hundred
thousand back as quickly as possible.”
“I think he does, yes. I don’t know who else will, Frank, if he don’t.
He’s one of the big political forces in this town.”
“Sell them through Tighe & Company and put the money back in the
treasury, if you won’t take them.”
“To any one on ’change who’ll take them, I suppose. I don’t know.”
“Don’t throw your chances away, George. Don’t quit now. You’ll be worth
millions in a few years, and you won’t have to turn a hand. All you
will have to do will be to keep what you have. If you don’t help me,
mark my word, they’ll throw you over the moment I’m out of this, and
they’ll let you go to the penitentiary. Who’s going to put up five
hundred thousand dollars for you, George? Where is Mollenhauer going to
get it, or Butler, or anybody, in these times? They can’t. They don’t
intend to. When I’m through, you’re through, and you’ll be exposed
quicker than any one else. They can’t hurt me, George. I’m an agent. I
didn’t ask you to come to me. You came to me in the first place of your
own accord. If you don’t help me, you’re through, I tell you, and
you’re going to be sent to the penitentiary as sure as there are jails.
Why don’t you take a stand, George? Why don’t you stand your ground?
You have your wife and children to look after. You can’t be any worse
off loaning me three hundred thousand more than you are right now. What
difference does it make—five hundred thousand or eight hundred
thousand? It’s all one and the same thing, if you’re going to be tried
for it. Besides, if you loan me this, there isn’t going to be any
trial. I’m not going to fail. This storm will blow over in a week or
ten days, and we’ll be rich again. For Heaven’s sake, George, don’t go
to pieces this way! Be sensible! Be reasonable!”
In Stener’s crumpling weakness Cowperwood read his own fate. What could
you do with a man like that? How brace him up? You couldn’t! And with a
gesture of infinite understanding, disgust, noble indifference, he
threw up his hands and started to walk out. At the door he turned.
“George,” he said, “I’m sorry. I’m sorry for you, not for myself. I’ll
come out of things all right, eventually. I’ll be rich. But, George,
you’re making the one great mistake of your life. You’ll be poor;
you’ll be a convict, and you’ll have only yourself to blame. There
isn’t a thing the matter with this money situation except the fire.
There isn’t a thing wrong with my affairs except this slump in
stocks—this panic. You sit there, a fortune in your hands, and you
allow a lot of schemers, highbinders, who don’t know any more of your
affairs or mine than a rabbit, and who haven’t any interest in you
except to plan what they can get out of you, to frighten you and
prevent you from doing the one thing that will save your life. Three
hundred thousand paltry dollars that in three or four weeks from now I
can pay back to you four and five times over, and for that you will see
me go broke and yourself to the penitentiary. I can’t understand it,
George. You’re out of your mind. You’re going to rue this the longest
day that you live.”
It was the first time in his life that Cowperwood had ever shown the
least sign of weakening or despair. He had felt all along as though
there were nothing to the Greek theory of being pursued by the furies.
Now, however, there seemed an untoward fate which was pursuing him. It
looked that way. Still, fate or no fate, he did not propose to be
daunted. Even in this very beginning of a tendency to feel despondent
he threw back his head, expanded his chest, and walked as briskly as
ever.
The trouble with this particular transaction was the note that he had
received from Stener ordering him to stop both buying and selling,
which put his relations with the city treasury on a very formal basis.
He had bought these certificates before receiving this note, but had
not deposited them. He was going now to collect his check; but perhaps
the old, easy system of balancing matters at the end of the month might
not be said to obtain any longer. Stires might ask him to present a
voucher of deposit. If so, he could not now get this check for sixty
thousand dollars, for he did not have the certificates to deposit. If
not, he might get the money; but, also, it might constitute the basis
of some subsequent legal action. If he did not eventually deposit the
certificates before failure, some charge such as that of larceny might
be brought against him. Still, he said to himself, he might not really
fail even yet. If any of his banking associates should, for any reason,
modify their decision in regard to calling his loans, he would not.
Would Stener make a row about this if he so secured this check? Would
the city officials pay any attention to him if he did? Could you get
any district attorney to take cognizance of such a transaction, if
Stener did complain? No, not in all likelihood; and, anyhow, nothing
would come of it. No jury would punish him in the face of the
understanding existing between him and Stener as agent or broker and
principal. And, once he had the money, it was a hundred to one Stener
would think no more about it. It would go in among the various
unsatisfied liabilities, and nothing more would be thought about it.
Like lightning the entire situation hashed through his mind. He would
risk it. He stopped before the chief clerk’s desk.
“Not very, Albert,” replied Cowperwood, smiling, the while the chief
clerk was making out his check. He was wondering if by any chance
Stener would appear and attempt to interfere with this. It was a legal
transaction. He had a right to the check provided he deposited the
certificates, as was his custom, with the trustee of the fund. He
waited tensely while Albert wrote, and finally, with the check actually
in his hand, breathed a sigh of relief. Here, at least, was sixty
thousand dollars, and to-night’s work would enable him to cash the
seventy-five thousand that had been promised him. To-morrow, once more
he must see Leigh, Kitchen, Jay Cooke & Co., Edward Clark & Co.—all the
long list of people to whom he owed loans and find out what could be
done. If he could only get time! If he could get just a week!
Chapter XXIX
But time was not a thing to be had in this emergency. With the
seventy-five thousand dollars his friends had extended to him, and
sixty thousand dollars secured from Stires, Cowperwood met the Girard
call and placed the balance, thirty-five thousand dollars, in a private
safe in his own home. He then made a final appeal to the bankers and
financiers, but they refused to help him. He did not, however,
commiserate himself in this hour. He looked out of his office window
into the little court, and sighed. What more could he do? He sent a
note to his father, asking him to call for lunch. He sent a note to his
lawyer, Harper Steger, a man of his own age whom he liked very much,
and asked him to call also. He evolved in his own mind various plans of
delay, addresses to creditors and the like, but alas! he was going to
fail. And the worst of it was that this matter of the city treasurer’s
loans was bound to become a public, and more than a public, a
political, scandal. And the charge of conniving, if not illegally, at
least morally, at the misuse of the city’s money was the one thing that
would hurt him most.
How industriously his rivals would advertise this fact! He might get on
his feet again if he failed; but it would be uphill work. And his
father! His father would be pulled down with him. It was probable that
he would be forced out of the presidency of his bank. With these
thoughts Cowperwood sat there waiting. As he did so Aileen Butler was
announced by his office-boy, and at the same time Albert Stires.
“Show in Miss Butler,” he said, getting up. “Tell Mr. Stires to wait.”
Aileen came briskly, vigorously in, her beautiful body clothed as
decoratively as ever. The street suit that she wore was of a light
golden-brown broadcloth, faceted with small, dark-red buttons. Her head
was decorated with a brownish-red shake of a type she had learned was
becoming to her, brimless and with a trailing plume, and her throat was
graced by a three-strand necklace of gold beads. Her hands were
smoothly gloved as usual, and her little feet daintily shod. There was
a look of girlish distress in her eyes, which, however, she was trying
hard to conceal.
“What did they say?” he inquired, putting his arm around her and
looking quietly into her nervous eyes.
“Oh, you know, I think papa is very angry with you. He suspects. Some
one sent him an anonymous letter. He tried to get it out of me last
night, but he didn’t succeed. I denied everything. I was in here twice
this morning to see you, but you were out. I was so afraid that he
might see you first, and that you might say something.”
“Me, Aileen?”
“Well, no, not exactly. I didn’t think that. I don’t know what I
thought. Oh, honey, I’ve been so worried. You know, I didn’t sleep at
all. I thought I was stronger than that; but I was so worried about
you. You know, he put me in a strong light by his desk, where he could
see my face, and then he showed me the letter. I was so astonished for
a moment I hardly know what I said or how I looked.”
“Why, I said: ‘What a shame! It isn’t so!’ But I didn’t say it right
away. My heart was going like a trip-hammer. I’m afraid he must have
been able to tell something from my face. I could hardly get my
breath.”
“But I love you so. Oh, honey, he will never forgive me. He loves me
so. He mustn’t know. I won’t admit anything. But, oh, dear!”
She put her hands tightly together on his bosom, and he looked
consolingly into her eyes. Her eyelids, were trembling, and her lips.
She was sorry for her father, herself, Cowperwood. Through her he could
sense the force of Butler’s parental affection; the volume and danger
of his rage. There were so many, many things as he saw it now
converging to make a dramatic denouement.
“Do you?”
“Yes.”
“Oh, no!”
“Yes, honey. I’m at the end of my rope. I don’t see any way out just at
present. I’ve sent for my father and my lawyer. You mustn’t stay here,
sweet. Your father may come in here at any time. We must meet
somewhere—to-morrow, say—to-morrow afternoon. You remember Indian Rock,
out on the Wissahickon?”
“Yes.”
“Yes.”
“Look out for who’s following. If I’m not there by four-thirty, don’t
wait. You know why. It will be because I think some one is watching.
There won’t be, though, if we work it right. And now you must run,
sweet. We can’t use Nine-thirty-one any more. I’ll have to rent another
place somewhere else.”
“Aren’t you going to be strong and brave? You see, I need you to be.”
He was almost, for the first time, a little sad in his mood.
“Yes, dear, yes,” she declared, slipping her arms under his and pulling
him tight. “Oh, yes! You can depend on me. Oh, Frank, I love you so!
I’m so sorry. Oh, I do hope you don’t fail! But it doesn’t make any
difference, dear, between you and me, whatever happens, does it? We
will love each other just the same. I’ll do anything for you, honey!
I’ll do anything you say. You can trust me. They sha’n’t know anything
from me.”
She looked at his still, pale face, and a sudden strong determination
to fight for him welled up in her heart. Her love was unjust, illegal,
outlawed; but it was love, just the same, and had much of the fiery
daring of the outcast from justice.
“I love you! I love you! I love you, Frank!” she declared. He unloosed
her hands.
“Run, sweet. To-morrow at four. Don’t fail. And don’t talk. And don’t
admit anything, whatever you do.”
“I won’t.”
“Mr. Cowperwood! You know that check I gave you last night? Mr. Stener
says it’s illegal, that I shouldn’t have given it to you, that he will
hold me responsible. He says I can be arrested for compounding a
felony, and that he will discharge me and have me sent to prison if I
don’t get it back. Oh, Mr. Cowperwood, I am only a young man! I’m just
really starting out in life. I’ve got my wife and little boy to look
after. You won’t let him do that to me? You’ll give me that check back,
won’t you? I can’t go back to the office without it. He says you’re
going to fail, and that you knew it, and that you haven’t any right to
it.”
“You go back to Mr. Stener, Albert, and tell him that it can’t be done.
The certificates of loan were purchased before his order arrived, and
the records of the exchange will prove it. There is no illegality here.
I am entitled to that check and could have collected it in any
qualified court of law. The man has gone out of his head. I haven’t
failed yet. You are not in any danger of any legal proceedings; and if
you are, I’ll help defend you. I can’t give you the check back because
I haven’t it to give; and if I had, I wouldn’t. That would be allowing
a fool to make a fool of me. I’m sorry, very, but I can’t do anything
for you.”
“Oh, Mr. Cowperwood!” Tears were in Stires’s eyes. “He’ll discharge me!
He’ll forfeit my sureties. I’ll be turned out into the street. I have
only a little property of my own—outside of my salary!”
He paused, wishing he had not mentioned that fact. It was a slip of the
tongue, one of the few he ever made, due to the peculiar pressure of
the situation. Stires pleaded longer. It was no use, Cowperwood told
him. Finally he went away, crestfallen, fearsome, broken. There were
tears of suffering in his eyes. Cowperwood was very sorry. And then his
father was announced.
The elder Cowperwood brought a haggard face. He and Frank had had a
long conversation the evening before, lasting until early morning, but
it had not been productive of much save uncertainty.
“Well?” said his father, lifting his sad eyes in a peculiar way.
“Well, it looks like stormy weather, doesn’t it? I’ve decided to call a
meeting of my creditors, father, and ask for time. There isn’t anything
else to do. I can’t realize enough on anything to make it worth while
talking about. I thought Stener might change his mind, but he’s worse
rather than better. His head bookkeeper just went out of here.”
“He wanted me to give him back a check for sixty thousand that he paid
me for some city loan I bought yesterday morning.” Frank did not
explain to his father, however, that he had hypothecated the
certificates this check had paid for, and used the check itself to
raise money enough to pay the Girard National Bank and to give himself
thirty-five thousand in cash besides.
“Well, I declare!” replied the old man. “You’d think he’d have better
sense than that. That’s a perfectly legitimate transaction. When did
you say he notified you not to buy city loan?”
“Yesterday noon.”
Cowperwood, the father, put his hand over his mouth again. He felt very
disturbed about this. He saw no way out, however. He was at the end of
his own resources. He felt the side-whiskers on his left cheek. He
looked out of the window into the little green court. Possibly it was a
technical question, who should say. The financial relations of the city
treasury with other brokers before Frank had been very lax. Every
banker knew that. Perhaps precedent would or should govern in this
case. He could not say. Still, it was dangerous—not straight. If Frank
could get them out and deposit them it would be so much better.
“I will if I can.”
“Oh, twenty thousand, all told. If I suspend, though, I’ll have to have
a little ready cash.”
He was thinking of some one who would give him a second mortgage on his
house.
His father got up to go. He was as stiff with despair as though he were
suffering from cold.
“I tell you, Frank,” said Steger, “I wouldn’t worry. We can tie this
thing up legally until election and after, and that will give all this
row a chance to die down. Then you can get your people together and
talk sense to them. They’re not going to give up good properties like
this, even if Stener does go to jail.”
Chapter XXX
Perhaps you don’t know that your husband is running with another woman.
If you don’t believe it, watch the house at 931 North Tenth Street.
Mrs. Cowperwood was in the conservatory watering some plants when this
letter was brought by her maid Monday morning. She was most placid in
her thoughts, for she did not know what all the conferring of the night
before meant. Frank was occasionally troubled by financial storms, but
they did not see to harm him.
In a little while (such was her deliberate way), she put down her
sprinkling-pot and went into the library. There it was lying on the
green leather sheepskin which constituted a part of the ornamentation
of the large library table. She picked it up, glanced at it curiously
because it was on cheap paper, and then opened it. Her face paled
slightly as she read it; and then her hand trembled—not much. Hers was
not a soul that ever loved passionately, hence she could not suffer
passionately. She was hurt, disgusted, enraged for the moment, and
frightened; but she was not broken in spirit entirely. Thirteen years
of life with Frank Cowperwood had taught her a number of things. He was
selfish, she knew now, self-centered, and not as much charmed by her as
he had been. The fear she had originally felt as to the effect of her
preponderance of years had been to some extent justified by the lapse
of time. Frank did not love her as he had—he had not for some time; she
had felt it. What was it?—she had asked herself at times—almost, who
was it? Business was engrossing him so.
Finance was his master. Did this mean the end of her regime, she
queried. Would he cast her off? Where would she go? What would she do?
She was not helpless, of course, for she had money of her own which he
was manipulating for her. Who was this other woman? Was she young,
beautiful, of any social position? Was it—? Suddenly she stopped. Was
it? Could it be, by any chance—her mouth opened—Aileen Butler?
She stood still, staring at this letter, for she could scarcely
countenance her own thought. She had observed often, in spite of all
their caution, how friendly Aileen had been to him and he to her. He
liked her; he never lost a chance to defend her. Lillian had thought of
them at times as being curiously suited to each other temperamentally.
He liked young people. But, of course, he was married, and Aileen was
infinitely beneath him socially, and he had two children and herself.
And his social and financial position was so fixed and stable that he
did not dare trifle with it. Still she paused; for forty years and two
children, and some slight wrinkles, and the suspicion that we may be no
longer loved as we once were, is apt to make any woman pause, even in
the face of the most significant financial position. Where would she go
if she left him? What would people think? What about the children?
Could she prove this liaison? Could she entrap him in a compromising
situation? Did she want to?
She saw now that she did not love him as some women love their
husbands. She was not wild about him. In a way she had been taking him
for granted all these years, had thought that he loved her enough not
to be unfaithful to her; at least fancied that he was so engrossed with
the more serious things of life that no petty liaison such as this
letter indicated would trouble him or interrupt his great career.
Apparently this was not true. What should she do? What say? How act?
Her none too brilliant mind was not of much service in this crisis. She
did not know very well how either to plan or to fight.
He stepped aside and out of the general room, where the blinds were
drawn, into his private office, in order to give his creditors an
opportunity to confer privately in regard to his situation. He had
friends in the meeting who were for him. He waited one, two, nearly
three hours while they talked. Finally Walter Leigh, Judge Kitchen,
Avery Stone, of Jay Cooke & Co., and several others came in. They were
a committee appointed to gather further information.
“Nothing more can be done to-day, Frank,” Walter Leigh informed him,
quietly. “The majority want the privilege of examining the books. There
is some uncertainty about this entanglement with the city treasurer
which you say exists. They feel that you’d better announce a temporary
suspension, anyhow; and if they want to let you resume later they can
do so.”
“I’m sorry for that, gentlemen,” replied Cowperwood, the least bit
depressed. “I would rather do anything than suspend for one hour, if I
could help it, for I know just what it means. You will find assets here
far exceeding the liabilities if you will take the stocks at their
normal market value; but that won’t help any if I close my doors. The
public won’t believe in me. I ought to keep open.”
Judge Kitchen commiserated with him also; but what good did that do? He
was being compelled to suspend. An expert accountant would have to come
in and go over his books. Butler might spread the news of this
city-treasury connection. Stener might complain of this last city-loan
transaction. A half-dozen of his helpful friends stayed with him until
four o’clock in the morning; but he had to suspend just the same. And
when he did that, he knew he was seriously crippled if not ultimately
defeated in his race for wealth and fame.
When he was really and finally quite alone in his private bedroom he
stared at himself in the mirror. His face was pale and tired, he
thought, but strong and effective. “Pshaw!” he said to himself, “I’m
not whipped. I’m still young. I’ll get out of this in some way yet.
Certainly I will. I’ll find some way out.”
And in her room Lillian Cowperwood turned and tossed in the face of
this new calamity. For it had suddenly appeared from news from her
father and Frank and Anna and her mother-in-law that Frank was about to
fail, or would, or had—it was almost impossible to say just how it was.
Frank was too busy to explain. The Chicago fire was to blame. There was
no mention as yet of the city treasurership. Frank was caught in a
trap, and was fighting for his life.
In this crisis, for the moment, she forgot about the note as to his
infidelity, or rather ignored it. She was astonished, frightened,
dumbfounded, confused. Her little, placid, beautiful world was going
around in a dizzy ring. The charming, ornate ship of their fortune was
being blown most ruthlessly here and there. She felt it a sort of duty
to stay in bed and try to sleep; but her eyes were quite wide, and her
brain hurt her. Hours before Frank had insisted that she should not
bother about him, that she could do nothing; and she had left him,
wondering more than ever what and where was the line of her duty. To
stick by her husband, convention told her; and so she decided. Yes,
religion dictated that, also custom. There were the children. They must
not be injured. Frank must be reclaimed, if possible. He would get over
this. But what a blow!
Chapter XXXI
Cowperwood smiled.
The thing that was troubling him most in all of this was not the five
hundred thousand dollars which was owing the city treasury, and which
he knew would stir political and social life to the center once it was
generally known—that was a legal or semi-legal transaction, at
least—but rather the matter of the sixty thousand dollars’ worth of
unrestored city loan certificates which he had not been able to replace
in the sinking-fund and could not now even though the necessary money
should fall from heaven. The fact of their absence was a matter of
source. He pondered over the situation a good deal. The thing to do, he
thought, if he went to Mollenhauer or Simpson, or both (he had never
met either of them, but in view of Butler’s desertion they were his
only recourse), was to say that, although he could not at present
return the five hundred thousand dollars, if no action were taken
against him now, which would prevent his resuming his business on a
normal scale a little later, he would pledge his word that every dollar
of the involved five hundred thousand dollars would eventually be
returned to the treasury. If they refused, and injury was done him, he
proposed to let them wait until he was “good and ready,” which in all
probability would be never. But, really, it was not quite clear how
action against him was to be prevented—even by them. The money was down
on his books as owing the city treasury, and it was down on the city
treasury’s books as owing from him. Besides, there was a local
organization known as the Citizens’ Municipal Reform Association which
occasionally conducted investigations in connection with public
affairs. His defalcation would be sure to come to the ears of this body
and a public investigation might well follow. Various private
individuals knew of it already. His creditors, for instance, who were
now examining his books.
Harper Steger was a tall, thin, graceful, rather elegant man, of gentle
voice and perfect manners, who walked always as though he were a cat,
and a dog were prowling somewhere in the offing. He had a longish, thin
face of a type that is rather attractive to women. His eyes were blue,
his hair brown, with a suggestion of sandy red in it. He had a steady,
inscrutable gaze which sometimes came to you over a thin, delicate
hand, which he laid meditatively over his mouth. He was cruel to the
limit of the word, not aggressively but indifferently; for he had no
faith in anything. He was not poor. He had not even been born poor. He
was just innately subtle, with the rather constructive thought, which
was about the only thing that compelled him to work, that he ought to
be richer than he was—more conspicuous. Cowperwood was an excellent
avenue toward legal prosperity. Besides, he was a fascinating customer.
Of all his clients, Steger admired Cowperwood most.
“Let them proceed against you,” he said on this occasion, his brilliant
legal mind taking in all the phases of the situation at once. “I don’t
see that there is anything more here than a technical charge. If it
ever came to anything like that, which I don’t think it will, the
charge would be embezzlement or perhaps larceny as bailee. In this
instance, you were the bailee. And the only way out of that would be to
swear that you had received the check with Stener’s knowledge and
consent. Then it would only be a technical charge of irresponsibility
on your part, as I see it, and I don’t believe any jury would convict
you on the evidence of how this relationship was conducted. Still, it
might; you never can tell what a jury is going to do. All this would
have to come out at a trial, however. The whole thing, it seems to me,
would depend on which of you two—yourself or Stener—the jury would be
inclined to believe, and on how anxious this city crowd is to find a
scapegoat for Stener. This coming election is the rub. If this panic
had come at any other time—”
Cowperwood waved for silence. He knew all about that. “It all depends
on what the politicians decide to do. I’m doubtful. The situation is
too complicated. It can’t be hushed up.” They were in his private
office at his house. “What will be will be,” he added.
Steger thought a minute, rubbing his chin with his hand. “Let me see,”
he said, “that is a serious question, isn’t it? The law says one to
five years at the outside; but the sentences usually average from one
to three years in embezzlement cases. Of course, in this case—”
“Yes, there is one point in all legal procedure of the kind,” replied
Steger, cautiously, now rubbing his ear and trying to put the matter as
delicately as possible. “You can avoid jail sentences all through the
earlier parts of a case like this; but if you are once tried and
convicted it’s pretty hard to do anything—as a matter of fact, it
becomes absolutely necessary then to go to jail for a few days, five or
so, pending the motion for a new trial and the obtaining of a
certificate of reasonable doubt. It usually takes that long.”
The young banker sat there staring out of the window, and Steger
observed, “It is a bit complicated, isn’t it?”
Chapter XXXII
However, the decisive conference took place between Cowperwood and the
reigning political powers some five days after Cowperwood’s failure, at
the home of Senator Simpson, which was located in Rittenhouse Square—a
region central for the older order of wealth in Philadelphia. Simpson
was a man of no little refinement artistically, of Quaker extraction,
and of great wealth-breeding judgment which he used largely to satisfy
his craving for political predominance. He was most liberal where money
would bring him a powerful or necessary political adherent. He fairly
showered offices—commissionerships, trusteeships, judgeships, political
nominations, and executive positions generally—on those who did his
bidding faithfully and without question. Compared with Butler and
Mollenhauer he was more powerful than either, for he represented the
State and the nation. When the political authorities who were trying to
swing a national election were anxious to discover what the State of
Pennsylvania would do, so far as the Republican party was concerned, it
was to Senator Simpson that they appealed. In the literal sense of the
word, he knew. The Senator had long since graduated from State to
national politics, and was an interesting figure in the United States
Senate at Washington, where his voice in all the conservative and
moneyed councils of the nation was of great weight.
It so happened that upon the previous afternoon Butler had learned from
Mr. David Pettie, the district attorney, of the
sixty-thousand-dollar-check transaction. At the same time the matter
had been brought to Mollenhauer’s attention by Stener himself. It was
Mollenhauer, not Butler who saw that by taking advantage of
Cowperwood’s situation, he might save the local party from blame, and
at the same time most likely fleece Cowperwood out of his
street-railway shares without letting Butler or Simpson know anything
about it. The thing to do was to terrorize him with a private threat of
prosecution.
Butler was not long in arriving, and apologized for the delay.
Concealing his recent grief behind as jaunty an air as possible, he
began with:
“It’s a lively life I’m leadin’, what with every bank in the city
wantin’ to know how their loans are goin’ to be taken care of.” He took
a cigar and struck a match.
Mollenhauer pulled a long breath through his cigar, and blew it out in
a rolling steel-blue cloud. He studied the tapestry on the opposite
wall but said nothing.
The Senator was not at all for mincing words with his important
confreres, when it came to vital issues. He preferred, in his
grandiloquent way, to call a spade a spade.
“Now that sounds like very good sense to me,” said Butler, sinking a
little lower in his chair for comfort’s sake, and concealing his true
mood in regard to all this. “The boys could easily make that
investigation last three weeks, I should think. They’re slow enough
with everything else, if me memory doesn’t fail me.” At the same time
he was cogitating as to how to inject the personality of Cowperwood and
his speedy prosecution without appearing to be neglecting the general
welfare of the local party too much.
“We ought to map out our program very carefully,” continued Senator
Simpson, “so that if we are compelled to act we can do so very quickly.
I believe myself that this thing is certain to come to an issue within
a week, if not sooner, and we have no time to lose. If my advice were
followed now, I should have the mayor write the treasurer a letter
asking for information, and the treasurer write the mayor his answer,
and also have the mayor, with the authority of the common council,
suspend the treasurer for the time being—I think we have the authority
to do that—or, at least, take over his principal duties but without for
the time being, anyhow, making any of these transactions public—until
we have to, of course. We ought to be ready with these letters to show
to the newspapers at once, in case this action is forced upon us.”
There was a slight gleam of triumph in his eye as he said this, at the
same time that there was a slight shadow of disappointment in
Mollenhauer’s. So Butler knew, and probably Simpson, too.
“Yes, I can confirm that,” said Mollenhauer, quietly, seeing his own
little private plan of browbeating Cowperwood out of his street-railway
shares going glimmering. “I had a talk with Stener the other day about
this very matter, and he told me that Cowperwood had been trying to
force him to give him three hundred thousand dollars more, and that
when he refused Cowperwood managed to get sixty thousand dollars
further without his knowledge or consent.”
“Oh,” said the Senator, when Mollenhauer had finished, “that indicates
a rather sharp person, doesn’t it? And the certificates are not in the
sinking-fund, eh?”
“Well, I must say,” said Simpson, rather relieved in his manner, “this
looks like a rather good thing than not to me. A scapegoat possibly. We
need something like this. I see no reason under the circumstances for
trying to protect Mr. Cowperwood. We might as well try to make a point
of that, if we have to. The newspapers might just as well talk loud
about that as anything else. They are bound to talk; and if we give
them the right angle, I think that the election might well come and go
before the matter could be reasonably cleared up, even though Mr. Wheat
does interfere. I will be glad to undertake to see what can be done
with the papers.”
“Well, that bein’ the case,” said Butler, “I don’t see that there’s so
much more we can do now; but I do think it will be a mistake if
Cowperwood isn’t punished with the other one. He’s equally guilty with
Stener, if not more so, and I for one want to see him get what he
deserves. He belongs in the penitentiary, and that’s where he’ll go if
I have my say.” Both Mollenhauer and Simpson turned a reserved and
inquiring eye on their usually genial associate. What could be the
reason for his sudden determination to have Cowperwood punished?
Cowperwood, as Mollenhauer and Simpson saw it, and as Butler would
ordinarily have seen it, was well within his human, if not his strictly
legal rights. They did not blame him half as much for trying to do what
he had done as they blamed Stener for letting him do it. But, since
Butler felt as he did, and there was an actual technical crime here,
they were perfectly willing that the party should have the advantage of
it, even if Cowperwood went to the penitentiary.
“You may be right,” said Senator Simpson, cautiously. “You might have
those letters prepared, Henry; and if we have to bring any action at
all against anybody before election, it would, perhaps, be advisable to
bring it against Cowperwood. Include Stener if you have to but not
unless you have to. I leave it to you two, as I am compelled to start
for Pittsburg next Friday; but I know you will not overlook any point.”
The Senator arose. His time was always valuable. Butler was highly
gratified by what he had accomplished. He had succeeded in putting the
triumvirate on record against Cowperwood as the first victim, in case
of any public disturbance or demonstration against the party. All that
was now necessary was for that disturbance to manifest itself; and,
from what he could see of local conditions, it was not far off. There
was now the matter of Cowperwood’s disgruntled creditors to look into;
and if by buying in these he should succeed in preventing the financier
from resuming business, he would have him in a very precarious
condition indeed. It was a sad day for Cowperwood, Butler thought—the
day he had first tried to lead Aileen astray—and the time was not far
off when he could prove it to him.
Chapter XXXIII
In the meantime Cowperwood, from what he could see and hear, was
becoming more and more certain that the politicians would try to make a
scapegoat of him, and that shortly. For one thing, Stires had called
only a few days after he closed his doors and imparted a significant
bit of information. Albert was still connected with the city treasury,
as was Stener, and engaged with Sengstack and another personal
appointee of Mollenhauer’s in going over the treasurer’s books and
explaining their financial significance. Stires had come to Cowperwood
primarily to get additional advice in regard to the
sixty-thousand-dollar check and his personal connection with it.
Stener, it seemed, was now threatening to have his chief clerk
prosecuted, saying that he was responsible for the loss of the money
and that his bondsmen could be held responsible. Cowperwood had merely
laughed and assured Stires that there was nothing to this.
Another thing that made Cowperwood pause and consider at this time was
a letter from Aileen, detailing a conversation which had taken place at
the Butler dinner table one evening when Butler, the elder, was not at
home. She related how her brother Owen in effect had stated that
they—the politicians—her father, Mollenhauer, and Simpson, were going
to “get him yet” (meaning Cowperwood), for some criminal financial
manipulation of something—she could not explain what—a check or
something. Aileen was frantic with worry. Could they mean the
penitentiary, she asked in her letter? Her dear lover! Her beloved
Frank! Could anything like this really happen to him?
His brow clouded, and he set his teeth with rage when he read her
letter. He would have to do something about this—see Mollenhauer or
Simpson, or both, and make some offer to the city. He could not promise
them money for the present—only notes—but they might take them. Surely
they could not be intending to make a scapegoat of him over such a
trivial and uncertain matter as this check transaction! When there was
the five hundred thousand advanced by Stener, to say nothing of all the
past shady transactions of former city treasurers! How rotten! How
political, but how real and dangerous.
But Simpson was out of the city for a period of ten days, and
Mollenhauer, having in mind the suggestion made by Butler in regard to
utilizing Cowperwood’s misdeed for the benefit of the party, had
already moved as they had planned. The letters were ready and waiting.
Indeed, since the conference, the smaller politicians, taking their cue
from the overlords, had been industriously spreading the story of the
sixty-thousand-dollar check, and insisting that the burden of guilt for
the treasury defalcation, if any, lay on the banker. The moment
Mollenhauer laid eyes on Cowperwood he realized, however, that he had a
powerful personality to deal with. Cowperwood gave no evidence of
fright. He merely stated, in his bland way, that he had been in the
habit of borrowing money from the city treasury at a low rate of
interest, and that this panic had involved him so that he could not
possibly return it at present.
“I have heard rumors, Mr. Mollenhauer,” he said, “to the effect that
some charge is to be brought against me as a partner with Mr. Stener in
this matter; but I am hoping that the city will not do that, and I
thought I might enlist your influence to prevent it. My affairs are not
in a bad way at all, if I had a little time to arrange matters. I am
making all of my creditors an offer of fifty cents on the dollar now,
and giving notes at one, two, and three years; but in this matter of
the city treasury loans, if I could come to terms, I would be glad to
make it a hundred cents—only I would want a little more time. Stocks
are bound to recover, as you know, and, barring my losses at this time,
I will be all right. I realize that the matter has gone pretty far
already. The newspapers are likely to start talking at any time, unless
they are stopped by those who can control them.” (He looked at
Mollenhauer in a complimentary way.) “But if I could be kept out of the
general proceedings as much as possible, my standing would not be
injured, and I would have a better chance of getting on my feet. It
would be better for the city, for then I could certainly pay it what I
owe it.” He smiled his most winsome and engaging smile. And Mollenhauer
seeing him for the first time, was not unimpressed. Indeed he looked at
this young financial David with an interested eye. If he could have
seen a way to accept this proposition of Cowperwood’s, so that the
money offered would have been eventually payable to him, and if
Cowperwood had had any reasonable prospect of getting on his feet soon,
he would have considered carefully what he had to say. For then
Cowperwood could have assigned his recovered property to him. As it
was, there was small likelihood of this situation ever being
straightened out. The Citizens’ Municipal Reform Association, from all
he could hear, was already on the move—investigating, or about to, and
once they had set their hands to this, would unquestionably follow it
closely to the end.
“You don’t say,” replied Mollenhauer. “He did not give me that
impression. However, they are not there, and I believe that that makes
some difference legally. I have no interest in the matter one way or
the other, more than that of any other good Republican. I don’t see
exactly what I can do for you. What did you think I could do?”
“I don’t believe you can do anything for me, Mr. Mollenhauer,” replied
Cowperwood, a little tartly, “unless you are willing to deal quite
frankly with me. I am not a beginner in politics in Philadelphia. I
know something about the powers in command. I thought that you could
stop any plan to prosecute me in this matter, and give me time to get
on my feet again. I am not any more criminally responsible for that
sixty thousand dollars than I am for the five hundred thousand dollars
that I had as loan before it—not as much so. I did not create this
panic. I did not set Chicago on fire. Mr. Stener and his friends have
been reaping some profit out of dealing with me. I certainly was
entitled to make some effort to save myself after all these years of
service, and I can’t understand why I should not receive some courtesy
at the hands of the present city administration, after I have been so
useful to it. I certainly have kept city loan at par; and as for Mr.
Stener’s money, he has never wanted for his interest on that, and more
than his interest.”
And he bowed himself out. He saw clearly how hopeless was his quest.
In the meanwhile, finding that the rumors were growing in volume and
that no one appeared to be willing to take steps to straighten the
matter out, Mr. Skelton C. Wheat, President of the Citizens’ Municipal
Reform Association, was, at last and that by no means against his will,
compelled to call together the committee of ten estimable
Philadelphians of which he was chairman, in a local committee-hall on
Market Street, and lay the matter of the Cowperwood failure before it.
Mr. Wheat sat down, and the body before him immediately took the matter
which he proposed under advisement. It was decided to appoint a
subcommittee “to investigate” (to quote the statement eventually given
to the public) “the peculiar rumors now affecting one of the most
important and distinguished offices of our municipal government,” and
to report at the next meeting, which was set for the following evening
at nine o’clock. The meeting adjourned, and the following night at nine
reassembled, four individuals of very shrewd financial judgment having
meantime been about the task assigned them. They drew up a very
elaborate statement, not wholly in accordance with the facts, but as
nearly so as could be ascertained in so short a space of time.
“It appears [read the report, after a preamble which explained why the
committee had been appointed] that it has been the custom of city
treasurers for years, when loans have been authorized by councils, to
place them in the hands of some favorite broker for sale, the broker
accounting to the treasurer for the moneys received by such sales at
short periods, generally the first of each month. In the present case
Frank A. Cowperwood has been acting as such broker for the city
treasurer. But even this vicious and unbusiness-like system appears not
to have been adhered to in the case of Mr. Cowperwood. The accident of
the Chicago fire, the consequent depression of stock values, and the
subsequent failure of Mr. Frank A. Cowperwood have so involved matters
temporarily that the committee has not been able to ascertain with
accuracy that regular accounts have been rendered; but from the manner
in which Mr. Cowperwood has had possession of bonds (city loan) for
hypothecation, etc., it would appear that he has been held to no
responsibility in these matters, and that there have always been under
his control several hundred thousand dollars of cash or securities
belonging to the city, which he has manipulated for various purposes;
but the details of the results of these transactions are not easily
available.
“Some of the operations consisted of hypothecation of large amounts
of these loans before the certificates were issued, the lender
seeing that the order for the hypothecated securities was duly made
to him on the books of the treasurer. Such methods appear to have
been occurring for a long time, and it being incredible that the
city treasurer could be unaware of the nature of the business,
there is indication of a complicity between him and Mr. Cowperwood
to benefit by the use of the city credit, in violation of the law.
“Furthermore, at the very time these hypothecations were being
made, and the city paying interest upon such loans, the money
representing them was in the hands of the treasurer’s broker and
bearing no interest to the city. The payment of municipal warrants
was postponed, and they were being purchased at a discount in large
amounts by Mr. Cowperwood with the very money that should have been
in the city treasury. The _bona fide_ holders of the orders for
certificates of loans are now unable to obtain them, and thus the
city’s credit is injured to a greater extent than the present
defalcation, which amounts to over five hundred thousand dollars.
An accountant is now at work on the treasurer’s books, and a few
days should make clear the whole _modus operandi_. It is hoped that
the publicity thus obtained will break up such vicious practices.”
There was appended to this report a quotation from the law governing
the abuse of a public trust; and the committee went on to say that,
unless some taxpayer chose to initiate proceedings for the prosecution
of those concerned, the committee itself would be called upon to do so,
although such action hardly came within the object for which it was
formed.
This report was immediately given to the papers. Though some sort of a
public announcement had been anticipated by Cowperwood and the
politicians, this was, nevertheless, a severe blow. Stener was beside
himself with fear. He broke into a cold sweat when he saw the
announcement which was conservatively headed, “Meeting of the Municipal
Reform Association.” All of the papers were so closely identified with
the political and financial powers of the city that they did not dare
to come out openly and say what they thought. The chief facts had
already been in the hands of the various editors and publishers for a
week and more, but word had gone around from Mollenhauer, Simpson, and
Butler to use the soft pedal for the present. It was not good for
Philadelphia, for local commerce, etc., to make a row. The fair name of
the city would be smirched. It was the old story.
At once the question was raised as to who was really guilty, the city
treasurer or the broker, or both. How much money had actually been
lost? Where had it gone? Who was Frank Algernon Cowperwood, anyway? Why
was he not arrested? How did he come to be identified so closely with
the financial administration of the city? And though the day of what
later was termed “yellow journalism” had not arrived, and the local
papers were not given to such vital personal comment as followed later,
it was not possible, even bound as they were, hand and foot, by the
local political and social magnates, to avoid comment of some sort.
Editorials had to be written. Some solemn, conservative references to
the shame and disgrace which one single individual could bring to a
great city and a noble political party had to be ventured upon.
In due time there were brought forth several noble municipal letters,
purporting to be a stern call on the part of the mayor, Mr. Jacob
Borchardt, on Mr. George W. Stener for an immediate explanation of his
conduct, and the latter’s reply, which were at once given to the
newspapers and the Citizens’ Municipal Reform Association. These
letters were enough to show, so the politicians figured, that the
Republican party was anxious to purge itself of any miscreant within
its ranks, and they also helped to pass the time until after election.
OFFICE OF THE MAYOR OF THE CITY OF PHILADELPHIA
JACOB BORCHARDT,
_Mayor of Philadelphia._
And did Mr. Jacob Borchardt write the letters to which his name was
attached? He did not. Mr. Abner Sengstack wrote them in Mr.
Mollenhauer’s office, and Mr. Mollenhauer’s comment when he saw them
was that he thought they would do—that they were very good, in fact.
And did Mr. George W. Stener, city treasurer of Philadelphia, write
that very politic reply? He did not. Mr. Stener was in a state of
complete collapse, even crying at one time at home in his bathtub. Mr.
Abner Sengstack wrote that also, and had Mr. Stener sign it. And Mr.
Mollenhauer’s comment on that, before it was sent, was that he thought
it was “all right.” It was a time when all the little rats and mice
were scurrying to cover because of the presence of a great, fiery-eyed
public cat somewhere in the dark, and only the older and wiser rats
were able to act.
Indeed, at this very time and for some days past now, Messrs.
Mollenhauer, Butler, and Simpson were, and had been, considering with
Mr. Pettie, the district attorney, just what could be done about
Cowperwood, if anything, and in order to further emphasize the blame in
that direction, and just what defense, if any, could be made for
Stener. Butler, of course, was strong for Cowperwood’s prosecution.
Pettie did not see that any defense could be made for Stener, since
various records of street-car stocks purchased for him were spread upon
Cowperwood’s books; but for Cowperwood—“Let me see,” he said. They were
speculating, first of all, as to whether it might not be good policy to
arrest Cowperwood, and if necessary try him, since his mere arrest
would seem to the general public, at least, positive proof of his
greater guilt, to say nothing of the virtuous indignation of the
administration, and in consequence might tend to divert attention from
the evil nature of the party until after election.
Chapter XXXIV
Butler, Sr., was delighted (concerned though he was about party success
at the polls), for now he had this villain in the toils and he would
have a fine time getting out of this. The incoming district attorney to
succeed David Pettie if the Republican party won would be, as was now
planned, an appointee of Butler’s—a young Irishman who had done
considerable legal work for him—one Dennis Shannon. The other two party
leaders had already promised Butler that. Shannon was a smart,
athletic, good-looking fellow, all of five feet ten inches in height,
sandy-haired, pink-cheeked, blue-eyed, considerable of an orator and a
fine legal fighter. He was very proud to be in the old man’s favor—to
be promised a place on the ticket by him—and would, he said, if
elected, do his bidding to the best of his knowledge and ability.
There was only one fly in the ointment, so far as some of the
politicians were concerned, and that was that if Cowperwood were
convicted, Stener must needs be also. There was no escape in so far as
any one could see for the city treasurer. If Cowperwood was guilty of
securing by trickery sixty thousand dollars’ worth of the city money,
Stener was guilty of securing five hundred thousand dollars. The prison
term for this was five years. He might plead not guilty, and by
submitting as evidence that what he did was due to custom save himself
from the odious necessity of pleading guilty; but he would be convicted
nevertheless. No jury could get by the fact in regard to him. In spite
of public opinion, when it came to a trial there might be considerable
doubt in Cowperwood’s case. There was none in Stener’s.
“You know how it is, Mr. Cowperwood,” he observed. The latter smiled.
“I do, indeed,” he said.
Aileen Butler, during all this time, was following the trend of
Cowperwood’s outward vicissitudes as heralded by the newspapers and the
local gossip with as much interest and bias and enthusiasm for him as
her powerful physical and affectional nature would permit. She was no
great reasoner where affection entered in, but shrewd enough without
it; and, although she saw him often and he told her much—as much as his
natural caution would permit—she yet gathered from the newspapers and
private conversation, at her own family’s table and elsewhere, that, as
bad as they said he was, he was not as bad as he might be. One item
only, clipped from the Philadelphia Public Ledger soon after Cowperwood
had been publicly accused of embezzlement, comforted and consoled her.
She cut it out and carried it in her bosom; for, somehow, it seemed to
show that her adored Frank was far more sinned against than sinning. It
was a part of one of those very numerous pronunciamientos or reports
issued by the Citizens’ Municipal Reform Association, and it ran:
“The aspects of the case are graver than have yet been allowed to reach
the public. Five hundred thousand dollars of the deficiency arises not
from city bonds sold and not accounted for, but from loans made by the
treasurer to his broker. The committee is also informed, on what it
believes to be good authority, that the loans sold by the broker were
accounted for in the monthly settlements at the lowest prices current
during the month, and that the difference between this rate and that
actually realized was divided between the treasurer and the broker,
thus making it to the interest of both parties to ‘bear’ the market at
some time during the month, so as to obtain a low quotation for
settlement. Nevertheless, the committee can only regard the prosecution
instituted against the broker, Mr. Cowperwood, as an effort to divert
public attention from more guilty parties while those concerned may be
able to ‘fix’ matters to suit themselves.”
“There,” thought Aileen, when she read it, “there you have it.” These
politicians—her father among them as she gathered after his
conversation with her—were trying to put the blame of their own evil
deeds on her Frank. He was not nearly as bad as he was painted. The
report said so. She gloated over the words “an effort to divert public
attention from more guilty parties.” That was just what her Frank had
been telling her in those happy, private hours when they had been
together recently in one place and another, particularly the new
rendezvous in South Sixth Street which he had established, since the
old one had to be abandoned. He had stroked her rich hair, caressed her
body, and told her it was all a prearranged political scheme to cast
the blame as much as possible on him and make it as light as possible
for Stener and the party generally. He would come out of it all right,
he said, but he cautioned her not to talk. He did not deny his long and
profitable relations with Stener. He told her exactly how it was. She
understood, or thought she did. Anyhow, her Frank was telling her, and
that was enough.
Since the fatal morning, for instance, when Lillian Cowperwood had
received that utterly destructive note, like a cannonball ripping
through her domestic affairs, she had been walking like one in a
trance. Each day now for weeks she had been going about her duties
placidly enough to all outward seeming, but inwardly she was running
with a troubled tide of thought. She was so utterly unhappy. Her
fortieth year had come for her at a time when life ought naturally to
stand fixed and firm on a solid base, and here she was about to be torn
bodily from the domestic soil in which she was growing and blooming,
and thrown out indifferently to wither in the blistering noonday sun of
circumstance.
As for Cowperwood, Senior, his situation at his bank and elsewhere was
rapidly nearing a climax. As has been said, he had had tremendous faith
in his son; but he could not help seeing that an error had been
committed, as he thought, and that Frank was suffering greatly for it
now. He considered, of course, that Frank had been entitled to try to
save himself as he had; but he so regretted that his son should have
put his foot into the trap of any situation which could stir up
discussion of the sort that was now being aroused. Frank was
wonderfully brilliant. He need never have taken up with the city
treasurer or the politicians to have succeeded marvelously. Local
street-railways and speculative politicians were his undoing. The old
man walked the floor all of the days, realizing that his sun was
setting, that with Frank’s failure he failed, and that this
disgrace—these public charges—meant his own undoing. His hair had grown
very gray in but a few weeks, his step slow, his face pallid, his eyes
sunken. His rather showy side-whiskers seemed now like flags or
ornaments of a better day that was gone. His only consolation through
it all was that Frank had actually got out of his relationship with the
Third National Bank without owing it a single dollar. Still as he knew
the directors of that institution could not possibly tolerate the
presence of a man whose son had helped loot the city treasury, and
whose name was now in the public prints in this connection. Besides,
Cowperwood, Sr., was too old. He ought to retire.
The crisis for him therefore came on the day when Frank was arrested on
the embezzlement charge. The old man, through Frank, who had it from
Steger, knew it was coming, still had the courage to go to the bank but
it was like struggling under the weight of a heavy stone to do it. But
before going, and after a sleepless night, he wrote his resignation to
Frewen Kasson, the chairman of the board of directors, in order that he
should be prepared to hand it to him, at once. Kasson, a stocky,
well-built, magnetic man of fifty, breathed an inward sigh of relief at
the sight of it.
Kasson, very carefully dressed and manicured, arose and walked out of
the room for a few moments. He appreciated keenly the intensity of the
strain he had just witnessed. The moment the door was closed Cowperwood
put his head in his hands and shook convulsively. “I never thought I’d
come to this,” he muttered. “I never thought it.” Then he wiped away
his salty hot tears, and went to the window to look out and to think of
what else to do from now on.
Chapter XXXV
As time went on Butler grew more and more puzzled and restive as to his
duty in regard to his daughter. He was sure by her furtive manner and
her apparent desire to avoid him, that she was still in touch with
Cowperwood in some way, and that this would bring about a social
disaster of some kind. He thought once of going to Mrs. Cowperwood and
having her bring pressure to bear on her husband, but afterwards he
decided that that would not do. He was not really positive as yet that
Aileen was secretly meeting Cowperwood, and, besides, Mrs. Cowperwood
might not know of her husband’s duplicity. He thought also of going to
Cowperwood personally and threatening him, but that would be a severe
measure, and again, as in the other case, he lacked proof. He hesitated
to appeal to a detective agency, and he did not care to take the other
members of the family into his confidence. He did go out and scan the
neighborhood of 931 North Tenth Street once, looking at the house; but
that helped him little. The place was for rent, Cowperwood having
already abandoned his connection with it.
“She’s very anxious to have you two come along, if your father don’t
mind,” volunteered the mother, “and I should think ye’d have a fine
time. They’re going to Paris and the Riveera.”
“I don’t know that I want to go,” replied Aileen. She did not care to
compromise herself by showing any interest at the start. “It’s coming
on winter, and I haven’t any clothes. I’d rather wait and go some other
time.”
“Oh, Aileen Butler!” exclaimed Norah. “How you talk! I’ve heard you say
a dozen times you’d like to go abroad some winter. Now when the chance
comes—besides you can get your clothes made over there.”
“They wouldn’t want a man around as a sort of guide and adviser, would
they, mother?” put in Callum.
“I’m sure I don’t know,” returned Mrs. Butler, smiling, and at the same
time chewing a lusty mouthful. “You’ll have to ast ’em, my sons.”
Aileen still persisted. She did not want to go. It was too sudden. It
was this. It was that. Just then old Butler came in and took his seat
at the head of the table. Knowing all about it, he was most anxious to
appear not to.
“You wouldn’t object, Edward, would you?” queried his wife, explaining
the proposition in general.
“What talk ye have!” said his wife. “A fine mess you’d make of it
livin’ alone.”
“I’d not be alone, belave me,” replied Butler. “There’s many a place
I’d be welcome in this town—no thanks to ye.”
“And there’s many a place ye wouldn’t have been if it hadn’t been for
me. I’m tellin’ ye that,” retorted Mrs. Butler, genially.
“And that’s not stretchin’ the troot much, aither,” he answered,
fondly.
Aileen was adamant. No amount of argument both on the part of Norah and
her mother had any effect whatever. Butler witnessed the failure of his
plan with considerable dissatisfaction, but he was not through. When he
was finally convinced that there was no hope of persuading her to
accept the Mollenhauer proposition, he decided, after a while, to
employ a detective.
He made the simple excuse one day of business, which was common enough
in his case, and journeyed to New York—nearly five hours away as the
trains ran then—arriving at two o’clock. At the offices on lower
Broadway, he asked to see the manager, whom he found to be a large,
gross-featured, heavy-bodied man of fifty, gray-eyed, gray-haired,
puffily outlined as to countenance, but keen and shrewd, and with
short, fat-fingered hands, which drummed idly on his desk as he talked.
He was dressed in a suit of dark-brown wool cloth, which struck Butler
as peculiarly showy, and wore a large horseshoe diamond pin. The old
man himself invariably wore conservative gray.
“How do you do?” said Butler, when a boy ushered him into the presence
of this worthy, whose name was Martinson—Gilbert Martinson, of American
and Irish extraction. The latter nodded and looked at Butler shrewdly,
recognizing him at once as a man of force and probably of position. He
therefore rose and offered him a chair.
“Sit down,” he said, studying the old Irishman from under thick, bushy
eyebrows. “What can I do for you?”
“You’re the manager, are you?” asked Butler, solemnly, eyeing the man
with a shrewd, inquiring eye.
“This Mr. Pinkerton that runs this agency—he wouldn’t be about this
place, now, would he?” asked Butler, carefully. “I’d like to talk to
him personally, if I might, meaning no offense to you.”
“I am,” replied Martinson. “You can talk to me with the same freedom
that you could to Mr. Pinkerton. Won’t you come into my private office?
We can talk more at ease in there.”
He led the way into an adjoining room which had two windows looking
down into Broadway; an oblong table, heavy, brown, smoothly polished;
four leather-backed chairs; and some pictures of the Civil War battles
in which the North had been victorious. Butler followed doubtfully. He
hated very much to take any one into his confidence in regard to
Aileen. He was not sure that he would, even now. He wanted to “look
these fellys over,” as he said in his mind. He would decide then what
he wanted to do. He went to one of the windows and looked down into the
street, where there was a perfect swirl of omnibuses and vehicles of
all sorts. Mr. Martinson quietly closed the door.
“Now then, if there’s anything I can do for you,” Mr. Martinson paused.
He thought by this little trick to elicit Buder’s real name—it often
“worked”—but in this instance the name was not forthcoming. Butler was
too shrewd.
“I’m not so sure that I want to go into this,” said the old man
solemnly. “Certainly not if there’s any risk of the thing not being
handled in the right way. There’s somethin’ I want to find out
about—somethin’ that I ought to know; but it’s a very private matter
with me, and—” He paused to think and conjecture, looking at Mr.
Martinson the while. The latter understood his peculiar state of mind.
He had seen many such cases.
“It wouldn’t seem likely,” said the latter; “that’s the truth. It’s not
aisy to bring your private affairs into the light of day, though,”
added the old man, sadly.
“Well,” said Butler, finally, “you look to me to be all right, and I’d
like some advice. Mind ye, I’m willing to pay for it well enough; and
it isn’t anything that’ll be very hard to find out. I want to know
whether a certain man where I live is goin’ with a certain woman, and
where. You could find that out aisy enough, I belave—couldn’t you?”
“Nothing easier,” replied Martinson. “We are doing it all the time. Let
me see if I can help you just a moment, Mr. Scanlon, in order to make
it easier for you. It is very plain to me that you don’t care to tell
any more than you can help, and we don’t care to have you tell any more
than we absolutely need. We will have to have the name of the city, of
course, and the name of either the man or the woman; but not
necessarily both of them, unless you want to help us in that way.
Sometimes if you give us the name of one party—say the man, for
illustration—and the description of the woman—an accurate one—or a
photograph, we can tell you after a little while exactly what you want
to know. Of course, it’s always better if we have full information. You
suit yourself about that. Tell me as much or as little as you please,
and I’ll guarantee that we will do our best to serve you, and that you
will be satisfied afterward.”
He smiled genially.
“Well, that bein’ the case,” said Butler, finally taking the leap, with
many mental reservations, however, “I’ll be plain with you. My name’s
not Scanlon. It’s Butler. I live in Philadelphy. There’s a man there, a
banker by the name of Cowperwood—Frank A. Cowperwood—”
“Wait a moment,” said Martinson, drawing an ample pad out of his pocket
and producing a lead-pencil; “I want to get that. How do you spell it?”
“Oh, that’s the man,” interpolated Martinson. “I’ve heard of him. He’s
mixed up in some city embezzlement case over there. I suppose the
reason you didn’t go to our Philadelphia office is because you didn’t
want our local men over there to know anything about it. Isn’t that
it?”
“That’s the man, and that’s the reason,” said Butler. “I don’t care to
have anything of this known in Philadelphy. That’s why I’m here. This
man has a house on Girard Avenue—Nineteen-thirty-seven. You can find
that out, too, when you get over there.”
“Yes,” said the old man, dourly. “She is a relative. She’s me daughter,
in fact. You look to me like a sensible, honest man. I’m her father,
and I wouldn’t do anything for the world to harm her. It’s tryin’ to
save her I am. It’s him I want.” He suddenly closed one big fist
forcefully.
Martinson, who had two daughters of his own, observed the suggestive
movement.
“Well, that oughtn’t to take any time at all, Mr. Butler—three or four
days possibly, if we have any luck—a week, ten days, two weeks. It
depends on how long you want us to shadow him in case there is no
evidence the first few days.”
“Never mind about that, Mr. Butler,” replied Martinson. “You’re welcome
to anything this concern can do for you at its ordinary rates.”
He showed Butler to the door, and the old man went out. He was feeling
very depressed over this—very shabby. To think he should have to put
detectives on the track of his Aileen, his daughter!
Chapter XXXVI
“Did any one drive Sissy this mornin’?” asked Butler of Aileen,
inquiring after a favorite family horse. Butler’s plan, in case the
detective was seen, was to give the impression that he was a horseman
who had come either to buy or to sell. His name was Jonas Alderson, and
be looked sufficiently like a horsetrader to be one.
“I don’t think so, father,” replied Aileen. “I didn’t. I’ll find out.”
“Never mind. What I want to know is did you intend using her
to-morrow?”
“Very well, then. Leave her in the stable.” Butler quietly closed the
door. Aileen concluded at once that it was a horse conference. She knew
he would not dispose of any horse in which she was interested without
first consulting her, and so she thought no more about it.
After she was gone Alderson stepped out and declared that he was
satisfied. “That’s all I need to know,” he said. “I’ll let you know in
a few days if I find out anything.”
In working out his plan of action it was necessary for Butler to take
Alderson into his confidence and the detective made plain his
determination to safeguard Cowperwood’s person.
Within a week Alderson learned that Aileen and Cowperwood were visiting
an apparently private residence, which was anything but that. The house
on South Sixth Street was one of assignation purely; but in its way it
was superior to the average establishment of its kind—of red brick,
white-stone trimmings, four stories high, and all the rooms, some
eighteen in number, furnished in a showy but cleanly way. It’s
patronage was highly exclusive, only those being admitted who were
known to the mistress, having been introduced by others. This
guaranteed that privacy which the illicit affairs of this world so
greatly required. The mere phrase, “I have an appointment,” was
sufficient, where either of the parties was known, to cause them to be
shown to a private suite. Cowperwood had known of the place from
previous experiences, and when it became necessary to abandon the North
Tenth Street house, he had directed Aileen to meet him here.
The matter of entering a place of this kind and trying to find any one
was, as Alderson informed Butler on hearing of its character,
exceedingly difficult. It involved the right of search, which was
difficult to get. To enter by sheer force was easy enough in most
instances where the business conducted was in contradistinction to the
moral sentiment of the community; but sometimes one encountered violent
opposition from the tenants themselves. It might be so in this case.
The only sure way of avoiding such opposition would be to take the
woman who ran the place into one’s confidence, and by paying her
sufficiently insure silence. “But I do not advise that in this
instance,” Alderson had told Butler, “for I believe this woman is
particularly friendly to your man. It might be better, in spite of the
risk, to take it by surprise.” To do that, he explained, it would be
necessary to have at least three men in addition to the leader—perhaps
four, who, once one man had been able to make his entrance into the
hallway, on the door being opened in response to a ring, would appear
quickly and enter with and sustain him. Quickness of search was the
next thing—the prompt opening of all doors. The servants, if any, would
have to be overpowered and silenced in some way. Money sometimes did
this; force accomplished it at other times. Then one of the detectives
simulating a servant could tap gently at the different doors—Butler and
the others standing by—and in case a face appeared identify it or not,
as the case might be. If the door was not opened and the room was not
empty, it could eventually be forced. The house was one of a solid
block, so that there was no chance of escape save by the front and rear
doors, which were to be safe-guarded. It was a daringly conceived
scheme. In spite of all this, secrecy in the matter of removing Aileen
was to be preserved.
When Butler heard of this he was nervous about the whole terrible
procedure. He thought once that without going to the house he would
merely talk to his daughter declaring that he knew and that she could
not possibly deny it. He would then give her her choice between going
to Europe or going to a reformatory. But a sense of the raw brutality
of Aileen’s disposition, and something essentially coarse in himself,
made him eventually adopt the other method. He ordered Alderson to
perfect his plan, and once he found Aileen or Cowperwood entering the
house to inform him quickly. He would then drive there, and with the
assistance of these men confront her.
It was a foolish scheme, a brutalizing thing to do, both from the point
of view of affection and any corrective theory he might have had. No
good ever springs from violence. But Butler did not see that. He wanted
to frighten Aileen, to bring her by shock to a realization of the
enormity of the offense she was committing. He waited fully a week
after his word had been given; and then, one afternoon, when his nerves
were worn almost thin from fretting, the climax came. Cowperwood had
already been indicted, and was now awaiting trial. Aileen had been
bringing him news, from time to time, of just how she thought her
father was feeling toward him. She did not get this evidence direct
from Butler, of course—he was too secretive, in so far as she was
concerned, to let her know how relentlessly he was engineering
Cowperwood’s final downfall—but from odd bits confided to Owen, who
confided them to Callum, who in turn, innocently enough, confided them
to Aileen. For one thing, she had learned in this way of the new
district attorney elect—his probable attitude—for he was a constant
caller at the Butler house or office. Owen had told Callum that he
thought Shannon was going to do his best to send Cowperwood “up”—that
the old man thought he deserved it.
In the next place she had learned that her father did not want
Cowperwood to resume business—did not feel he deserved to be allowed
to. “It would be a God’s blessing if the community were shut of him,”
he had said to Owen one morning, apropos of a notice in the papers of
Cowperwood’s legal struggles; and Owen had asked Callum why he thought
the old man was so bitter. The two sons could not understand it.
Cowperwood heard all this from her, and more—bits about Judge
Payderson, the judge who was to try him, who was a friend of
Butler’s—also about the fact that Stener might be sent up for the full
term of his crime, but that he would be pardoned soon afterward.
Apparently Cowperwood was not very much frightened. He told her that he
had powerful financial friends who would appeal to the governor to
pardon him in case he was convicted; and, anyhow, that he did not think
that the evidence was strong enough to convict him. He was merely a
political scapegoat through public clamor and her father’s influence;
since the latter’s receipt of the letter about them he had been the
victim of Butler’s enmity, and nothing more. “If it weren’t for your
father, honey,” he declared, “I could have this indictment quashed in
no time. Neither Mollenhauer nor Simpson has anything against me
personally, I am sure. They want me to get out of the street-railway
business here in Philadelphia, and, of course, they wanted to make
things look better for Stener at first; but depend upon it, if your
father hadn’t been against me they wouldn’t have gone to any such
length in making me the victim. Your father has this fellow Shannon and
these minor politicians just where he wants them, too. That’s where the
trouble lies. They have to go on.”
“Oh, I know,” replied Aileen. “It’s me, just me, that’s all. If it
weren’t for me and what he suspects he’d help you in a minute.
Sometimes, you know, I think I’ve been very bad for you. I don’t know
what I ought to do. If I thought it would help you any I’d not see you
any more for a while, though I don’t see what good that would do now.
Oh, I love you, love you, Frank! I would do anything for you. I don’t
care what people think or say. I love you.”
“Oh, you just think you do,” he replied, jestingly. “You’ll get over
it. There are others.”
“Oh, how you talk!” she exclaimed. “Desert you! It’s likely, isn’t it?
But if ever you desert me, I’ll do just what I say. I swear it.”
The room in which they were sitting at the time was typical of the
rather commonplace idea of luxury which then prevailed. Most of the
“sets” of furniture put on the market for general sale by the furniture
companies were, when they approached in any way the correct idea of
luxury, imitations of one of the Louis periods. The curtains were
always heavy, frequently brocaded, and not infrequently red. The
carpets were richly flowered in high colors with a thick, velvet nap.
The furniture, of whatever wood it might be made, was almost invariably
heavy, floriated, and cumbersome. This room contained a heavily
constructed bed of walnut, with washstand, bureau, and wardrobe to
match. A large, square mirror in a gold frame was hung over the
washstand. Some poor engravings of landscapes and several nude figures
were hung in gold frames on the wall. The gilt-framed chairs were
upholstered in pink-and-white-flowered brocade, with polished brass
tacks. The carpet was of thick Brussels, pale cream and pink in hue,
with large blue jardinieres containing flowers woven in as ornaments.
The general effect was light, rich, and a little stuffy.
“You’re such a pretty minx,” he said. He slipped his arm about her and
kissed her pretty mouth. “Nothing sweeter than you this side of
Paradise,” he whispered in her ear.
While this was enacting, Butler and the extra detective had stepped out
of sight, to one side of the front door of the house, while Alderson,
taking the lead, rang the bell. A negro servant appeared.
“Is Mrs. Davis in?” he asked, genially, using the name of the woman in
control. “I’d like to see her.”
“Sorry to trouble you, Mrs. Davis,” he said, “but we are looking for a
couple who are in your house here. We’re after a runaway girl. We don’t
want to make any disturbance—merely to get her and take her away.” Mrs.
Davis paled and opened her mouth. “Now don’t make any noise or try to
scream, or we’ll have to stop you. My men are all around the house.
Nobody can get out. Do you know anybody by the name of Cowperwood?”
“Isn’t there a girl here with red hair?” asked one of Alderson’s
assistants. “And a man with a gray suit and a light-brown mustache?
They came in here half an hour ago. You remember them, don’t you?”
“There’s just one couple in the house, but I’m not sure whether they’re
the ones you want. I’ll ask them to come down if you wish. Oh, I wish
you wouldn’t make any disturbance. This is terrible.”
“We’ll not make any disturbance,” replied Alderson, “if you don’t. Just
you be quiet. We merely want to see the girl and take her away. Now,
you stay where you are. What room are they in?”
“In the second one in the rear up-stairs. Won’t you let me go, though?
It will be so much better. I’ll just tap and ask them to come out.”
“No. We’ll tend to that. You stay where you are. You’re not going to
get into any trouble. You just stay where you are,” insisted Alderson.
“Let her go,” he said grimly, doggedly referring to Mrs. Davis, “But
watch her. Tell the girl to come down-stairs to me.”
Mrs. Davis, realizing on the moment that this was some family tragedy,
and hoping in an agonized way that she could slip out of it peacefully,
started upstairs at once with Alderson and his assistants who were
close at his heels. Reaching the door of the room occupied by
Cowperwood and Aileen, she tapped lightly. At the time Aileen and
Cowperwood were sitting in a big arm-chair. At the first knock Aileen
blanched and leaped to her feet. Usually not nervous, to-day, for some
reason, she anticipated trouble. Cowperwood’s eyes instantly hardened.
“Don’t be nervous,” he said, “no doubt it’s only the servant. I’ll go.”
“Yes; he says he wants to see you. There are several other men with
him. I think it’s some one who belongs to you, maybe.”
“I’ll dress and go down,” he said, when he saw Aileen’s pale face. “You
stay here. And don’t you worry in any way for I’ll get you out of
this—now, don’t worry. This is my affair. I got you in it and I’ll get
you out of it.” He went for his hat and coat and added, as he did so,
“You go ahead and dress; but let me go first.”
Aileen, the moment the door closed, had begun to put on her clothes
swiftly and nervously. Her mind was working like a rapidly moving
machine. She was wondering whether this really could be her father.
Perhaps it was not. Might there be some other Mrs. Montague—a real one?
Supposing it was her father—he had been so nice to her in not telling
the family, in keeping her secret thus far. He loved her—she knew that.
It makes all the difference in the world in a child’s attitude on an
occasion like this whether she has been loved and petted and spoiled,
or the reverse. Aileen had been loved and petted and spoiled. She could
not think of her father doing anything terrible physically to her or to
any one else. But it was so hard to confront him—to look into his eyes.
When she had attained a proper memory of him, her fluttering wits told
her what to do.
“No, Frank,” she whispered, excitedly; “if it’s father, you’d better
let me go. I know how to talk to him. He won’t say anything to me. You
stay here. I’m not afraid—really, I’m not. If I want you, I’ll call
you.”
He had come over and taken her pretty chin in his hands, and was
looking solemnly into her eyes.
He had on his coat and overcoat, and was standing with his hat in his
hand. Aileen was nearly dressed, struggling with the row of red
current-colored buttons which fastened her dress in the back.
Cowperwood helped her. When she was ready—hat, gloves, and all—he said:
“No; please, Frank,” she begged, courageously. “Let me, I know it’s
father. Who else could it be?” She wondered at the moment whether her
father had brought her two brothers but would not now believe it. He
would not do that, she knew. “You can come if I call.” She went on.
“Nothing’s going to happen, though. I understand him. He won’t do
anything to me. If you go it will only make him angry. Let me go. You
stand in the door here. If I don’t call, it’s all right. Will you?”
She put her two pretty hands on his shoulders, and he weighed the
matter very carefully. “Very well,” he said, “only I’ll go to the foot
of the stairs with you.”
They went to the door and he opened it. Outside were Alderson with two
other detectives and Mrs. Davis, standing perhaps five feet away.
Cowperwood made way for Aileen, who swept by, furious at the presence
of men and this exposure. Her courage had entirely returned. She was
angry now to think her father would make a public spectacle of her.
Cowperwood started to follow.
“I’d advise you not to go down there right away,” cautioned Alderson,
sagely. “That’s her father. Butler’s her name, isn’t it? He don’t want
you so much as he wants her.”
Butler’s reply he could not hear, but he was now at ease for he knew
how much Butler loved his daughter.
“I know who you’re here with,” he continued, shaking his head sadly.
“The dog! I’ll get him yet. I’ve had men watchin’ you all the time. Oh,
the shame of this day! The shame of this day! You’ll be comin’ home
with me now.”
“That’s just it, father,” began Aileen. “You’ve had men watching me. I
should have thought—” She stopped, because he put up his hand in a
strange, agonized, and yet dominating way.
The old man led the way broken-heartedly. He felt he would never live
to forget the agony of this hour.
Chapter XXXVII
The old man saw nothing for it, as they rode on, save a grim contest
between them which could end in what? What could he do with her? They
were riding away fresh from this awful catastrophe, and she was not
saying a word! She had even asked him why he had come there! How was he
to subdue her, when the very act of trapping her had failed to do so?
His ruse, while so successful materially, had failed so utterly
spiritually. They reached the house, and Aileen got out. The old man,
too nonplussed to wish to go further at this time, drove back to his
office. He then went out and walked—a peculiar thing for him to do; he
had done nothing like that in years and years—walking to think. Coming
to an open Catholic church, he went in and prayed for enlightenment,
the growing dusk of the interior, the single everlasting lamp before
the repository of the chalice, and the high, white altar set with
candles soothing his troubled feelings.
He came out of the church after a time and returned home. Aileen did
not appear at dinner, and he could not eat. He went into his private
room and shut the door—thinking, thinking, thinking. The dreadful
spectacle of Aileen in a house of ill repute burned in his brain. To
think that Cowperwood should have taken her to such a place—his Aileen,
his and his wife’s pet. In spite of his prayers, his uncertainty, her
opposition, the puzzling nature of the situation, she must be got out
of this. She must go away for a while, give the man up, and then the
law should run its course with him. In all likelihood Cowperwood would
go to the penitentiary—if ever a man richly deserved to go, it was he.
Butler would see that no stone was left unturned. He would make it a
personal issue, if necessary. All he had to do was to let it be known
in judicial circles that he wanted it so. He could not suborn a jury,
that would be criminal; but he could see that the case was properly and
forcefully presented; and if Cowperwood were convicted, Heaven help
him. The appeal of his financial friends would not save him. The judges
of the lower and superior courts knew on which side their bread was
buttered. They would strain a point in favor of the highest political
opinion of the day, and he certainly could influence that. Aileen
meanwhile was contemplating the peculiar nature of her situation. In
spite of their silence on the way home, she knew that a conversation
was coming with her father. It had to be. He would want her to go
somewhere. Most likely he would revive the European trip in some
form—she now suspected the invitation of Mrs. Mollenhauer as a trick;
and she had to decide whether she would go. Would she leave Cowperwood
just when he was about to be tried? She was determined she would not.
She wanted to see what was going to happen to him. She would leave home
first—run to some relative, some friend, some stranger, if necessary,
and ask to be taken in. She had some money—a little. Her father had
always been very liberal with her. She could take a few clothes and
disappear. They would be glad enough to send for her after she had been
gone awhile. Her mother would be frantic; Norah and Callum and Owen
would be beside themselves with wonder and worry; her father—she could
see him. Maybe that would bring him to his senses. In spite of all her
emotional vagaries, she was the pride and interest of this home, and
she knew it.
It was in this direction that her mind was running when her father, a
few days after the dreadful exposure in the Sixth Street house, sent
for her to come to him in his room. He had come home from his office
very early in the afternoon, hoping to find Aileen there, in order that
he might have a private interview with her, and by good luck found her
in. She had had no desire to go out into the world these last few
days—she was too expectant of trouble to come. She had just written
Cowperwood asking for a rendezvous out on the Wissahickon the following
afternoon, in spite of the detectives. She must see him. Her father,
she said, had done nothing; but she was sure he would attempt to do
something. She wanted to talk to Cowperwood about that.
“I’ve been thinkin’ about ye, Aileen, and what ought to be done in this
case,” began her father without preliminaries of any kind once they
were in his “office room” in the house together. “You’re on the road to
ruin if any one ever was. I tremble when I think of your immortal soul.
I want to do somethin’ for ye, my child, before it’s too late. I’ve
been reproachin’ myself for the last month and more, thinkin’, perhaps,
it was somethin’ I had done, or maybe had failed to do, aither me or
your mother, that has brought ye to the place where ye are to-day.
Needless to say, it’s on me conscience, me child. It’s a heartbroken
man you’re lookin’ at this day. I’ll never be able to hold me head up
again. Oh, the shame—the shame! That I should have lived to see it!”
“But father,” she protested, “I love Mr. Cowperwood. It’s almost the
same as if I were married to him. He will marry me some day when he
gets a divorce from Mrs. Cowperwood. You don’t understand how it is.
He’s very fond of me, and I love him. He needs me.”
Aileen flung her head back defiantly. “It’s true, nevertheless,” she
reiterated. “You just don’t understand.”
Butler could scarcely believe his ears. He had never heard such talk
before in his life from any one. It amazed and shocked him. He was
quite aware of all the subtleties of politics and business, but these
of romance were too much for him. He knew nothing about them. To think
a daughter of his should be talking like this, and she a Catholic! He
could not understand where she got such notions unless it was from the
Machiavellian, corrupting brain of Cowperwood himself.
“Oh, don’t talk nonsense, father,” flared Aileen, angrily, thinking how
hopeless it was to talk to her father about such things anyhow. “I’m
not a child any more. I’m twenty-four years of age. You just don’t
understand. Mr. Cowperwood doesn’t like his wife. He’s going to get a
divorce when he can, and will marry me. I love him, and he loves me,
and that’s all there is to it.”
“Ye’ll marry him, will you?” asked Butler, nonplussed and further
astounded. “So ye’ll wait for him and marry him? Ye’ll take him away
from his wife and children, where, if he were half a man, he’d be
stayin’ this minute instead of gallivantin’ around with you. And marry
him? Ye’d disgrace your father and yer mother and yer family? Ye’ll
stand here and say this to me, I that have raised ye, cared for ye, and
made somethin’ of ye? Where would you be if it weren’t for me and your
poor, hard-workin’ mother, schemin’ and plannin’ for you year in and
year out? Ye’re smarter than I am, I suppose. Ye know more about the
world than I do, or any one else that might want to say anythin’ to ye.
I’ve raised ye to be a fine lady, and this is what I get. Talk about me
not bein’ able to understand, and ye lovin’ a convict-to-be, a robber,
an embezzler, a bankrupt, a lyin’, thavin’—”
“But I’m not through with him yet,” he went on, ignoring her desire to
leave, and addressing her direct—confident now that she was as capable
as another of understanding him. “I’ll get him as sure as I have a
name. There’s law in this land, and I’ll have it on him. I’ll show him
whether he’ll come sneakin’ into dacent homes and robbin’ parents of
their children.”
He paused after a time for want of breath and Aileen stared, her face
tense and white. Her father could be so ridiculous. He was, contrasted
with Cowperwood and his views, so old-fashioned. To think he could be
talking of some one coming into their home and stealing her away from
him, when she had been so willing to go. What silliness! And yet, why
argue? What good could be accomplished, arguing with him here in this
way? And so for the moment, she said nothing more—merely looked. But
Butler was by no means done. His mood was too stormy even though he was
doing his best now to subdue himself.
“I wish you wouldn’t talk about that, father,” she began, having
softened under his explanation. “I don’t want to go to Europe now. I
don’t want to leave Philadelphia. I know you want me to go; but I don’t
want to think of going now. I can’t.”
Butler’s brow darkened again. What was the use of all this opposition
on her part? Did she really imagine that she was going to master
him—her father, and in connection with such an issue as this? How
impossible! But tempering his voice as much as possible, he went on,
quite softly, in fact. “But it would be so fine for ye, Aileen. Ye
surely can’t expect to stay here after—” He paused, for he was going to
say “what has happened.” He knew she was very sensitive on that point.
His own conduct in hunting her down had been such a breach of fatherly
courtesy that he knew she felt resentful, and in a way properly so.
Still, what could be greater than her own crime? “After,” he concluded,
“ye have made such a mistake ye surely wouldn’t want to stay here. Ye
won’t be wantin’ to keep up that—committin’ a mortal sin. It’s against
the laws of God and man.”
“You don’t understand me, father,” she exclaimed, hopelessly toward the
end. “You can’t. I have one idea, and you have another. But I don’t
seem to be able to make you understand now. The fact is, if you want to
know it, I don’t believe in the Catholic Church any more, so there.”
The moment Aileen had said this she wished she had not. It was a slip
of the tongue. Butler’s face took on an inexpressibly sad, despairing
look.
“The harm that has come to yer soul!” he replied. “It’s plain to me,
daughter, that somethin’ terrible has happened to ye. This man has
ruined ye, body and soul. Somethin’ must be done. I don’t want to be
hard on ye, but ye must leave Philadelphy. Ye can’t stay here. I can’t
permit ye. Ye can go to Europe, or ye can go to yer aunt’s in New
Orleans; but ye must go somewhere. I can’t have ye stayin’ here—it’s
too dangerous. It’s sure to be comin’ out. The papers’ll be havin’ it
next. Ye’re young yet. Yer life is before you. I tremble for yer soul;
but so long as ye’re young and alive ye may come to yer senses. It’s me
duty to be hard. It’s my obligation to you and the Church. Ye must quit
this life. Ye must lave this man. Ye must never see him any more. I
can’t permit ye. He’s no good. He has no intintion of marrying ye, and
it would be a crime against God and man if he did. No, no! Never that!
The man’s a bankrupt, a scoundrel, a thafe. If ye had him, ye’d soon be
the unhappiest woman in the world. He wouldn’t be faithful to ye. No,
he couldn’t. He’s not that kind.” He paused, sick to the depths of his
soul. “Ye must go away. I say it once and for all. I mane it kindly,
but I want it. I have yer best interests at heart. I love ye; but ye
must. I’m sorry to see ye go—I’d rather have ye here. No one will be
sorrier; but ye must. Ye must make it all seem natcheral and ordinary
to yer mother; but ye must go—d’ye hear? Ye must.”
“Now get all the clothes ye want,” went on Butler, by no means grasping
her true mood. “Fix yourself up in any way you plase. Say where ye want
to go, but get ready.”
“Ye don’t mane to say ye will deliberately disobey me when I’m asking
ye to do somethin’ that’s intended for yer own good, will ye daughter?”
“Ye really mane that, do ye?” asked Butler, sadly but grimly.
“Then I’ll have to see what I can do, daughter,” replied the old man.
“Ye’re still my daughter, whatever ye are, and I’ll not see ye come to
wreck and ruin for want of doin’ what I know to be my solemn duty. I’ll
give ye a few more days to think this over, but go ye must. There’s an
end of that. There are laws in this land still. There are things that
can be done to those who won’t obey the law. I found ye this time—much
as it hurt me to do it. I’ll find ye again if ye try to disobey me. Ye
must change yer ways. I can’t have ye goin’ on as ye are. Ye understand
now. It’s the last word. Give this man up, and ye can have anything ye
choose. Ye’re my girl—I’ll do everything I can in this world to make ye
happy. Why, why shouldn’t I? What else have I to live for but me
children? It’s ye and the rest of them that I’ve been workin’ and
plannin’ for all these years. Come now, be a good girl. Ye love your
old father, don’t ye? Why, I rocked ye in my arms as a baby, Aileen.
I’ve watched over ye when ye were not bigger than what would rest in me
two fists here. I’ve been a good father to ye—ye can’t deny that. Look
at the other girls you’ve seen. Have any of them had more nor what ye
have had? Ye won’t go against me in this. I’m sure ye won’t. Ye can’t.
Ye love me too much—surely ye do—don’t ye?” His voice weakened. His
eyes almost filled.
He paused and put a big, brown, horny hand on Aileen’s arm. She had
listened to his plea not unmoved—really more or less softened—because
of the hopelessness of it. She could not give up Cowperwood. Her father
just did not understand. He did not know what love was. Unquestionably
he had never loved as she had.
“I’d like to, father,” she said at last and softly, tenderly. “Really I
would. I do love you. Yes, I do. I want to please you; but I can’t in
this—I can’t! I love Frank Cowperwood. You don’t understand—really you
don’t!”
“Very well, then,” he said at last and sadly, oh, so sadly, as Aileen
turned away. “Have it yer own way, if ye will. Ye must go, though,
willy-nilly. It can’t be any other way. I wish to God it could.”
Aileen went out, very solemn, and Butler went over to his desk and sat
down. “Such a situation!” he said to himself. “Such a complication!”
Chapter XXXVIII
The situation which confronted Aileen was really a trying one. A girl
of less innate courage and determination would have weakened and
yielded. For in spite of her various social connections and
acquaintances, the people to whom Aileen could run in an emergency of
the present kind were not numerous. She could scarcely think of any one
who would be likely to take her in for any lengthy period, without
question. There were a number of young women of her own age, married
and unmarried, who were very friendly to her, but there were few with
whom she was really intimate. The only person who stood out in her
mind, as having any real possibility of refuge for a period, was a
certain Mary Calligan, better known as “Mamie” among her friends, who
had attended school with Aileen in former years and was now a teacher
in one of the local schools.
In spite of the fact that her mother was a dressmaker, Mamie’s clothes
never looked smart or attractive—she would have felt out of keeping
with herself if they had. Her shoes were rather large, and ill-fitting;
her skirt hung in lifeless lines from her hips to her feet, of good
material but seemingly bad design. At that time the colored “jersey,”
so-called, was just coming into popular wear, and, being close-fitting,
looked well on those of good form. Alas for Mamie Calligan! The mode of
the time compelled her to wear one; but she had neither the arms nor
the chest development which made this garment admirable. Her hat, by
choice, was usually a pancake affair with a long, single feather, which
somehow never seemed to be in exactly the right position, either to her
hair or her face. At most times she looked a little weary; but she was
not physically weary so much as she was bored. Her life held so little
of real charm; and Aileen Butler was unquestionably the most
significant element of romance in it.
Mamie’s mother’s very pleasant social disposition, the fact that they
had a very cleanly, if poor little home, that she could entertain them
by playing on their piano, and that Mrs. Calligan took an adoring
interest in the work she did for her, made up the sum and substance of
the attraction of the Calligan home for Aileen. She went there
occasionally as a relief from other things, and because Mamie Calligan
had a compatible and very understanding interest in literature.
Curiously, the books Aileen liked she liked—_Jane Eyre, Kenelm
Chillingly, Tricotrin_, and _A Bow of Orange Ribbon_. Mamie
occasionally recommended to Aileen some latest effusion of this
character; and Aileen, finding her judgment good, was constrained to
admire her.
In this crisis it was to the home of the Calligans that Aileen turned
in thought. If her father really was not nice to her, and she had to
leave home for a time, she could go to the Calligans. They would
receive her and say nothing. They were not sufficiently well known to
the other members of the Butler family to have the latter suspect that
she had gone there. She might readily disappear into the privacy of
Cherry Street and not be seen or heard of for weeks. It is an
interesting fact to contemplate that the Calligans, like the various
members of the Butler family, never suspected Aileen of the least
tendency toward a wayward existence. Hence her flight from her own
family, if it ever came, would be laid more to the door of a
temperamental pettishness than anything else.
On the other hand, in so far as the Butler family as a unit was
concerned, it needed Aileen more than she needed it. It needed the
light of her countenance to keep it appropriately cheerful, and if she
went away there would be a distinct gulf that would not soon be
overcome.
Butler, senior, for instance, had seen his little daughter grow into
radiantly beautiful womanhood. He had seen her go to school and convent
and learn to play the piano—to him a great accomplishment. Also he had
seen her manner change and become very showy and her knowledge of life
broaden, apparently, and become to him, at least, impressive. Her
smart, dogmatic views about most things were, to him, at least, well
worth listening to. She knew more about books and art than Owen or
Callum, and her sense of social manners was perfect. When she came to
the table—breakfast, luncheon, or dinner—she was to him always a
charming object to see. He had produced Aileen—he congratulated
himself. He had furnished her the money to be so fine. He would
continue to do so. No second-rate upstart of a man should be allowed to
ruin her life. He proposed to take care of her always—to leave her so
much money in a legally involved way that a failure of a husband could
not possibly affect her. “You’re the charming lady this evenin’, I’m
thinkin’,” was one of his pet remarks; and also, “My, but we’re that
fine!” At table almost invariably she sat beside him and looked out for
him. That was what he wanted. He had put her there beside him at his
meals years before when she was a child.
Her mother, too, was inordinately fond of her, and Callum and Owen
appropriately brotherly. So Aileen had thus far at least paid back with
beauty and interest quite as much as she received, and all the family
felt it to be so. When she was away for a day or two the house seemed
glum—the meals less appetizing. When she returned, all were happy and
gay again.
Mrs. Calligan was alone when she arrived and was delighted to see her.
After exchanging the gossip of the day, and not knowing quite how to
proceed in connection with the errand which had brought her, she went
to the piano and played a melancholy air.
“Sure, it’s lovely the way you play, Aileen,” observed Mrs. Calligan
who was unduly sentimental herself. “I love to hear you. I wish you’d
come oftener to see us. You’re so rarely here nowadays.”
“Oh, I’ve been so busy, Mrs. Calligan,” replied Aileen. “I’ve had so
much to do this fall, I just couldn’t. They wanted me to go to Europe;
but I didn’t care to. Oh, dear!” she sighed, and in her playing swept
off with a movement of sad, romantic significance. The door opened and
Mamie came in. Her commonplace face brightened at the sight of Aileen.
“Well, Aileen Butler!” she exclaimed. “Where did you come from? Where
have you been keeping yourself so long?”
Aileen rose to exchange kisses. “Oh, I’ve been very busy, Mamie. I’ve
just been telling your mother. How are you, anyway? How are you getting
along in your work?”
As she stood before her mirror arranging her hair Aileen looked at her
meditatively.
“What’s the matter with you, Aileen, to-day?” Mamie asked. “You look
so—” She stopped to give her a second glance.
“Oh, nothing,” replied Aileen. “I was just thinking.” She went to one
of the windows which looked into the little yard, meditating on whether
she could endure living here for any length of time. The house was so
small, the furnishings so very simple.
“Well, whatever can it be?” commented Mamie. “I never saw you act this
way before. Can’t you tell me? What is it?”
“No, I don’t think I can—not now, anyhow.” Aileen paused. “Do you
suppose your mother would object,” she asked, suddenly, “if I came here
and stayed a little while? I want to get away from home for a time for
a certain reason.”
“Why, Aileen Butler, how you talk!” exclaimed her friend. “Object! You
know she’d be delighted, and so would I. Oh, dear—can you come? But
what makes you want to leave home?”
“That’s just what I can’t tell you—not now, anyhow. Not you, so much,
but your mother. You know, I’m afraid of what she’d think,” replied
Aileen. “But, you mustn’t ask me yet, anyhow. I want to think. Oh,
dear! But I want to come, if you’ll let me. Will you speak to your
mother, or shall I?”
Aileen looked at her solemnly, and understood well enough why she was
so enthusiastic—both she and her mother. Both wanted her presence to
brighten their world. “But neither of you must tell anybody that I’m
here, do you hear? I don’t want any one to know—particularly no one of
my family. I’ve a reason, and a good one, but I can’t tell you what it
is—not now, anyhow. You’ll promise not to tell any one.”
“Oh, of course,” replied Mamie eagerly. “But you’re not going to run
away for good, are you, Aileen?” she concluded curiously and gravely.
“Oh, I don’t know; I don’t know what I’ll do yet. I only know that I
want to get away for a while, just now—that’s all.” She paused, while
Mamie stood before her, agape.
Aileen hesitated because even now she was not positive whether she
should do this, but finally they went down the stairs together, Aileen
lingering behind a little as they neared the bottom. Mamie burst in
upon her mother with: “Oh, mama, isn’t it lovely? Aileen’s coming to
stay with us for a while. She doesn’t want any one to know, and she’s
coming right away.” Mrs. Calligan, who was holding a sugarbowl in her
hand, turned to survey her with a surprised but smiling face. She was
immediately curious as to why Aileen should want to come—why leave
home. On the other hand, her feeling for Aileen was so deep that she
was greatly and joyously intrigued by the idea. And why not? Was not
the celebrated Edward Butler’s daughter a woman grown, capable of
regulating her own affairs, and welcome, of course, as the honored
member of so important a family. It was very flattering to the
Calligans to think that she would want to come under any circumstances.
“I don’t see how your parents can let you go, Aileen; but you’re
certainly welcome here as long as you want to stay, and that’s forever,
if you want to.” And Mrs. Calligan beamed on her welcomingly. The idea
of Aileen Butler asking to be permitted to come here! And the hearty,
comprehending manner in which she said this, and Mamie’s enthusiasm,
caused Aileen to breathe a sigh of relief. The matter of the expense of
her presence to the Calligans came into her mind.
“I want to pay you, of course,” she said to Mrs. Calligan, “if I come.”
“Well, we’ll not talk about that now, anyhow,” replied Mrs. Calligan.
“You can come when you like and stay as long as you like. Reach me some
clean napkins, Mamie.” Aileen remained for luncheon, and left soon
afterward to keep her suggested appointment with Cowperwood, feeling
satisfied that her main problem had been solved. Now her way was clear.
She could come here if she wanted to. It was simply a matter of
collecting a few necessary things or coming without bringing anything.
Perhaps Frank would have something to suggest.
Aileen in the bosom of her family, smart and well-cared for, was one
thing. Aileen out in the world dependent on him was another. He had
never imagined that she would be compelled to leave before he was
prepared to take her; and if she did now, it might stir up
complications which would be anything but pleasant to contemplate.
Still he was fond of her, very, and would do anything to make her
happy. He could support her in a very respectable way even now, if he
did not eventually go to prison, and even there he might manage to make
some shift for her. It would be so much better, though, if he could
persuade her to remain at home until he knew exactly what his fate was
to be. He never doubted but that some day, whatever happened, within a
reasonable length of time, he would be rid of all these complications
and well-to-do again, in which case, if he could get a divorce, he
wanted to marry Aileen. If not, he would take her with him anyhow, and
from this point of view it might be just as well as if she broke away
from her family now. But from the point of view of present
complications—the search Butler would make—it might be dangerous. He
might even publicly charge him with abduction. He therefore decided to
persuade Aileen to stay at home, drop meetings and communications for
the time being, and even go abroad. He would be all right until she
came back and so would she—common sense ought to rule in this case.
With all this in mind he set out to keep the appointment she suggested
in her letter, nevertheless feeling it a little dangerous to do so.
“Very well,” he concluded. “You know what you’re doing. I don’t want to
advise you against your will. If I were you, though, I’d take your
father’s advice and go away for a while. He’ll get over this then, and
I’ll still be here. I can write you occasionally, and you can write
me.”
The moment Cowperwood said this Aileen’s brow clouded. Her love for him
was so great that there was something like a knife thrust in the merest
hint at an extended separation. Her Frank here and in trouble—on trial
maybe and she away! Never! What could he mean by suggesting such a
thing? Could it be that he didn’t care for her as much as she did for
him? Did he really love her? she asked herself. Was he going to desert
her just when she was going to do the thing which would bring them
nearer together? Her eyes clouded, for she was terribly hurt.
“Why, how you talk!” she exclaimed. “You know I won’t leave
Philadelphia now. You certainly don’t expect me to leave you.”
Cowperwood saw it all very clearly. He was too shrewd not to. He was
immensely fond of her. Good heaven, he thought, he would not hurt her
feelings for the world!
“Honey,” he said, quickly, when he saw her eyes, “you don’t understand.
I want you to do what you want to do. You’ve planned this out in order
to be with me; so now you do it. Don’t think any more about me or
anything I’ve said. I was merely thinking that it might make matters
worse for both of us; but I don’t believe it will. You think your
father loves you so much that after you’re gone he’ll change his mind.
Very good; go. But we must be very careful, sweet—you and I—really we
must. This thing is getting serious. If you should go and your father
should charge me with abduction—take the public into his confidence and
tell all about this, it would be serious for both of us—as much for you
as for me, for I’d be convicted sure then, just on that account, if
nothing else. And then what? You’d better not try to see me often for
the present—not any oftener than we can possibly help. If we had used
common sense and stopped when your father got that letter, this
wouldn’t have happened. But now that it has happened, we must be as
wise as we can, don’t you see? So, think it over, and do what you think
best and then write me and whatever you do will be all right with me—do
you hear?” He drew her to him and kissed her. “You haven’t any money,
have you?” he concluded wisely.
Aileen, deeply moved by all he had just said, was none the less
convinced once she had meditated on it a moment, that her course was
best. Her father loved her too much. He would not do anything to hurt
her publicly and so he would not attack Cowperwood through her openly.
More than likely, as she now explained to Frank, he would plead with
her to come back. And he, listening, was compelled to yield. Why argue?
She would not leave him anyhow.
He went down in his pocket for the first time since he had known Aileen
and produced a layer of bills. “Here’s two hundred dollars, sweet,” he
said, “until I see or hear from you. I’ll see that you have whatever
you need; and now don’t think that I don’t love you. You know I do. I’m
crazy about you.”
Aileen protested that she did not need so much—that she did not really
need any—she had some at home; but he put that aside. He knew that she
must have money.
“Don’t talk, honey,” he said. “I know what you need.” She had been so
used to receiving money from her father and mother in comfortable
amounts from time to time that she thought nothing of it. Frank loved
her so much that it made everything right between them. She softened in
her mood and they discussed the matter of letters, reaching the
conclusion that a private messenger would be safest. When finally they
parted, Aileen, from being sunk in the depths by his uncertain
attitude, was now once more on the heights. She decided that he did
love her, and went away smiling. She had her Frank to fall back on—she
would teach her father. Cowperwood shook his head, following her with
his eyes. She represented an additional burden, but give her up, he
certainly could not. Tear the veil from this illusion of affection and
make her feel so wretched when he cared for her so much? No. There was
really nothing for him to do but what he had done. After all, he
reflected, it might not work out so badly. Any detective work that
Butler might choose to do would prove that she had not run to him. If
at any moment it became necessary to bring common sense into play to
save the situation from a deadly climax, he could have the Butlers
secretly informed as to Aileen’s whereabouts. That would show he had
little to do with it, and they could try to persuade Aileen to come
home again. Good might result—one could not tell. He would deal with
the evils as they arose. He drove quickly back to his office, and
Aileen returned to her home determined to put her plan into action. Her
father had given her some little time in which to decide—possibly he
would give her longer—but she would not wait. Having always had her
wish granted in everything, she could not understand why she was not to
have her way this time. It was about five o’clock now. She would wait
until all the members of the family were comfortably seated at the
dinner-table, which would be about seven o’clock, and then slip out.
Chapter XXXIX
In the meanwhile the day of Cowperwood’s trial was drawing near. He was
under the impression that an attempt was going to be made to convict
him whether the facts warranted it or not. He did not see any way out
of his dilemma, however, unless it was to abandon everything and leave
Philadelphia for good, which was impossible. The only way to guard his
future and retain his financial friends was to stand trial as quickly
as possible, and trust them to assist him to his feet in the future in
case he failed. He discussed the possibilities of an unfair trial with
Steger, who did not seem to think that there was so much to that. In
the first place, a jury could not easily be suborned by any one. In the
next place, most judges were honest, in spite of their political
cleavage, and would go no further than party bias would lead them in
their rulings and opinions, which was, in the main, not so far. The
particular judge who was to sit in this case, one Wilbur Payderson, of
the Court of Quarter Sessions, was a strict party nominee, and as such
beholden to Mollenhauer, Simpson, and Butler; but, in so far as Steger
had ever heard, he was an honest man.
“What I can’t understand,” said Steger, “is why these fellows should be
so anxious to punish you, unless it is for the effect on the State at
large. The election’s over. I understand there’s a movement on now to
get Stener out in case he is convicted, which he will be. They have to
try him. He won’t go up for more than a year, or two or three, and if
he does he’ll be pardoned out in half the time or less. It would be the
same in your case, if you were convicted. They couldn’t keep you in and
let him out. But it will never get that far—take my word for it. We’ll
win before a jury, or we’ll reverse the judgment of conviction before
the State Supreme Court, certain. Those five judges up there are not
going to sustain any such poppycock idea as this.”
Steger actually believed what he said, and Cowperwood was pleased. Thus
far the young lawyer had done excellently well in all of his cases.
Still, he did not like the idea of being hunted down by Butler. It was
a serious matter, and one of which Steger was totally unaware.
Cowperwood could never quite forget that in listening to his lawyer’s
optimistic assurances.
The actual beginning of the trial found almost all of the inhabitants
of this city of six hundred thousand “keyed up.” None of the women of
Cowperwood’s family were coming into court. He had insisted that there
should be no family demonstration for the newspapers to comment upon.
His father was coming, for he might be needed as a witness. Aileen had
written him the afternoon before saying she had returned from West
Chester and wishing him luck. She was so anxious to know what was to
become of him that she could not stay away any longer and had
returned—not to go to the courtroom, for he did not want her to do
that, but to be as near as possible when his fate was decided,
adversely or otherwise. She wanted to run and congratulate him if he
won, or to console with him if he lost. She felt that her return would
be likely to precipitate a collision with her father, but she could not
help that.
He ran down the steps and walked out on Girard Avenue to his former car
line, where he boarded a car. He was thinking of Aileen and how keenly
she was feeling for him, and what a mockery his married life now was,
and whether he would face a sensible jury, and so on and so forth. If
he didn’t—if he didn’t—this day was crucial!
He stepped off the car at Third and Market and hurried to his office.
Steger was already there. “Well, Harper,” observed Cowperwood,
courageously, “today’s the day.”
The Court of Quarter Sessions, Part I, where this trial was to take
place, was held in famous Independence Hall, at Sixth and Chestnut
Streets, which was at this time, as it had been for all of a century
before, the center of local executive and judicial life. It was a low
two-story building of red brick, with a white wooden central tower of
old Dutch and English derivation, compounded of the square, the circle,
and the octagon. The total structure consisted of a central portion and
two T-shaped wings lying to the right and left, whose small,
oval-topped old-fashioned windows and doors were set with those
many-paned sashes so much admired by those who love what is known as
Colonial architecture. Here, and in an addition known as State House
Row (since torn down), which extended from the rear of the building
toward Walnut Street, were located the offices of the mayor, the chief
of police, the city treasurer, the chambers of council, and all the
other important and executive offices of the city, together with the
four branches of Quarter Sessions, which sat to hear the growing docket
of criminal cases. The mammoth city hall which was subsequently
completed at Broad and Market Streets was then building.
Judge Wilbur Payderson, a lean herring of a man, who had sat in this
case originally as the examining judge when Cowperwood had been
indicted by the grand jury, and who had bound him over for trial at
this term, was a peculiarly interesting type of judge, as judges go. He
was so meager and thin-blooded that he was arresting for those
qualities alone. Technically, he was learned in the law; actually, so
far as life was concerned, absolutely unconscious of that subtle
chemistry of things that transcends all written law and makes for the
spirit and, beyond that, the inutility of all law, as all wise judges
know. You could have looked at his lean, pedantic body, his frizzled
gray hair, his fishy, blue-gray eyes, without any depth of speculation
in them, and his nicely modeled but unimportant face, and told him that
he was without imagination; but he would not have believed you—would
have fined you for contempt of court. By the careful garnering of all
his little opportunities, the furbishing up of every meager advantage;
by listening slavishly to the voice of party, and following as nearly
as he could the behests of intrenched property, he had reached his
present state. It was not very far along, at that. His salary was only
six thousand dollars a year. His little fame did not extend beyond the
meager realm of local lawyers and judges. But the sight of his name
quoted daily as being about his duties, or rendering such and such a
decision, was a great satisfaction to him. He thought it made him a
significant figure in the world. “Behold I am not as other men,” he
often thought, and this comforted him. He was very much flattered when
a prominent case came to his calendar; and as he sat enthroned before
the various litigants and lawyers he felt, as a rule, very significant
indeed. Now and then some subtlety of life would confuse his really
limited intellect; but in all such cases there was the letter of the
law. He could hunt in the reports to find out what really thinking men
had decided. Besides, lawyers everywhere are so subtle. They put the
rules of law, favorable or unfavorable, under the judge’s thumb and
nose. “Your honor, in the thirty-second volume of the Revised Reports
of Massachusetts, page so and so, line so and so, in Arundel versus
Bannerman, you will find, etc.” How often have you heard that in a
court of law? The reasoning that is left to do in most cases is not
much. And the sanctity of the law is raised like a great banner by
which the pride of the incumbent is strengthened.
Payderson was one. He fairly revered property and power. To him Butler
and Mollenhauer and Simpson were great men—reasonably sure to be right
always because they were so powerful. This matter of Cowperwood’s and
Stener’s defalcation he had long heard of. He knew by associating with
one political light and another just what the situation was. The party,
as the leaders saw it, had been put in a very bad position by
Cowperwood’s subtlety. He had led Stener astray—more than an ordinary
city treasurer should have been led astray—and, although Stener was
primarily guilty as the original mover in the scheme, Cowperwood was
more so for having led him imaginatively to such disastrous lengths.
Besides, the party needed a scapegoat—that was enough for Payderson, in
the first place. Of course, after the election had been won, and it
appeared that the party had not suffered so much, he did not understand
quite why it was that Cowperwood was still so carefully included in the
Proceedings; but he had faith to believe that the leaders had some just
grounds for not letting him off. From one source and another he learned
that Butler had some private grudge against Cowperwood. What it was no
one seemed to know exactly. The general impression was that Cowperwood
had led Butler into some unwholesome financial transactions. Anyhow, it
was generally understood that for the good of the party, and in order
to teach a wholesome lesson to dangerous subordinates—it had been
decided to allow these several indictments to take their course.
Cowperwood was to be punished quite as severely as Stener for the moral
effect on the community. Stener was to be sentenced the maximum
sentence for his crime in order that the party and the courts should
appear properly righteous. Beyond that he was to be left to the mercy
of the governor, who could ease things up for him if he chose, and if
the leaders wished. In the silly mind of the general public the various
judges of Quarter Sessions, like girls incarcerated in
boarding-schools, were supposed in their serene aloofness from life not
to know what was going on in the subterranean realm of politics; but
they knew well enough, and, knowing particularly well from whence came
their continued position and authority, they were duly grateful.
Chapter XL
When Cowperwood came into the crowded courtroom with his father and
Steger, quite fresh and jaunty (looking the part of the shrewd
financier, the man of affairs), every one stared. It was really too
much to expect, most of them thought, that a man like this would be
convicted. He was, no doubt, guilty; but, also, no doubt, he had ways
and means of evading the law. His lawyer, Harper Steger, looked very
shrewd and canny to them. It was very cold, and both men wore long,
dark, bluish-gray overcoats, cut in the latest mode. Cowperwood was
given to small boutonnieres in fair weather, but to-day he wore none.
His tie, however, was of heavy, impressive silk, of lavender hue, set
with a large, clear, green emerald. He wore only the thinnest of
watch-chains, and no other ornament of any kind. He always looked
jaunty and yet reserved, good-natured, and yet capable and
self-sufficient. Never had he looked more so than he did to-day.
“You know,” he said to Steger, “I feel sorry for George. He’s such a
fool. Still I did all I could.”
Cowperwood also watched Mrs. Stener out of the tail of his eye—an
undersized, peaked, and sallow little woman, whose clothes fitted her
abominably. It was just like Stener to marry a woman like that, he
thought. The scrubby matches of the socially unelect or unfit always
interested, though they did not always amuse, him. Mrs. Stener had no
affection for Cowperwood, of course, looking on him, as she did, as the
unscrupulous cause of her husband’s downfall. They were now quite poor
again, about to move from their big house into cheaper quarters; and
this was not pleasing for her to contemplate.
During the long and tedious arrangement of the day’s docket and while
the various minor motions of lawyers were being considered, this
courtroom scene still retained interest for Cowperwood. He was so eager
to win, so incensed at the outcome of untoward events which had brought
him here. He was always intensely irritated, though he did not show it,
by the whole process of footing delays and queries and quibbles, by
which legally the affairs of men were too often hampered. Law, if you
had asked him, and he had accurately expressed himself, was a mist
formed out of the moods and the mistakes of men, which befogged the sea
of life and prevented plain sailing for the little commercial and
social barques of men; it was a miasma of misinterpretation where the
ills of life festered, and also a place where the accidentally wounded
were ground between the upper and the nether millstones of force or
chance; it was a strange, weird, interesting, and yet futile battle of
wits where the ignorant and the incompetent and the shrewd and the
angry and the weak were made pawns and shuttlecocks for men—lawyers,
who were playing upon their moods, their vanities, their desires, and
their necessities. It was an unholy and unsatisfactory disrupting and
delaying spectacle, a painful commentary on the frailties of life, and
men, a trick, a snare, a pit and gin. In the hands of the strong, like
himself when he was at his best, the law was a sword and a shield, a
trap to place before the feet of the unwary; a pit to dig in the path
of those who might pursue. It was anything you might choose to make of
it—a door to illegal opportunity; a cloud of dust to be cast in the
eyes of those who might choose, and rightfully, to see; a veil to be
dropped arbitrarily between truth and its execution, justice and its
judgment, crime and punishment. Lawyers in the main were intellectual
mercenaries to be bought and sold in any cause. It amused him to hear
the ethical and emotional platitudes of lawyers, to see how readily
they would lie, steal, prevaricate, misrepresent in almost any cause
and for any purpose. Great lawyers were merely great unscrupulous
subtleties, like himself, sitting back in dark, close-woven lairs like
spiders and awaiting the approach of unwary human flies. Life was at
best a dark, inhuman, unkind, unsympathetic struggle built of cruelties
and the law, and its lawyers were the most despicable representatives
of the whole unsatisfactory mess. Still he used law as he would use any
other trap or weapon to rid him of a human ill; and as for lawyers, he
picked them up as he would any club or knife wherewith to defend
himself. He had no particular respect for any of them—not even Harper
Steger, though he liked him. They were tools to be used—knives, keys,
clubs, anything you will; but nothing more. When they were through they
were paid and dropped—put aside and forgotten. As for judges, they were
merely incompetent lawyers, at a rule, who were shelved by some
fortunate turn of chance, and who would not, in all likelihood, be as
efficient as the lawyers who pleaded before them if they were put in
the same position. He had no respect for judges—he knew too much about
them. He knew how often they were sycophants, political climbers,
political hacks, tools, time-servers, judicial door-mats lying before
the financially and politically great and powerful who used them as
such. Judges were fools, as were most other people in this dusty,
shifty world. Pah! His inscrutable eyes took them all in and gave no
sign. His only safety lay, he thought, in the magnificent subtley of
his own brain, and nowhere else. You could not convince Cowperwood of
any great or inherent virtue in this mortal scheme of things. He knew
too much; he knew himself.
When the judge finally cleared away the various minor motions pending,
he ordered his clerk to call the case of the City of Philadelphia
versus Frank A. Cowperwood, which was done in a clear voice. Both
Dennis Shannon, the new district attorney, and Steger, were on their
feet at once. Steger and Cowperwood, together with Shannon and Strobik,
who had now come in and was standing as the representative of the State
of Pennsylvania—the complainant—had seated themselves at the long table
inside the railing which inclosed the space before the judge’s desk.
Steger proposed to Judge Payderson, for effect’s sake more than
anything else, that this indictment be quashed, but was overruled.
A jury to try the case was now quickly impaneled—twelve men out of the
usual list called to serve for the month—and was then ready to be
challenged by the opposing counsel. The business of impaneling a jury
was a rather simple thing so far as this court was concerned. It
consisted in the mandarin-like clerk taking the names of all the jurors
called to serve in this court for the month—some fifty in all—and
putting them, each written on a separate slip of paper, in a whirling
drum, spinning it around a few times, and then lifting out the first
slip which his hand encountered, thus glorifying chance and settling on
who should be juror No. 1. His hand reaching in twelve times drew out
the names of the twelve jurymen, who as their names were called, were
ordered to take their places in the jury-box.
“You don’t,” replied Steger. “I’ll challenge him. We have the right to
fifteen peremptory challenges on a case like this, and so has the
prosecution.”
When the jury-box was finally full, the two lawyers waited for the
clerk to bring them the small board upon which slips of paper bearing
the names of the twelve jurors were fastened in rows in order of their
selection—jurors one, two, and three being in the first row; four,
five, and six in the second, and so on. It being the prerogative of the
attorney for the prosecution to examine and challenge the jurors first,
Shannon arose, and, taking the board, began to question them as to
their trades or professions, their knowledge of the case before the
court, and their possible prejudice for or against the prisoner.
It was the business of both Steger and Shannon to find men who knew a
little something of finance and could understand a peculiar situation
of this kind without any of them (looking at it from Steger’s point of
view) having any prejudice against a man’s trying to assist himself by
reasonable means to weather a financial storm or (looking at it from
Shannon’s point of view) having any sympathy with such means, if they
bore about them the least suspicion of chicanery, jugglery, or
dishonest manipulation of any kind. As both Shannon and Steger in due
course observed for themselves in connection with this jury, it was
composed of that assorted social fry which the dragnets of the courts,
cast into the ocean of the city, bring to the surface for purposes of
this sort. It was made up in the main of managers, agents, tradesmen,
editors, engineers, architects, furriers, grocers, traveling salesmen,
authors, and every other kind of working citizen whose experience had
fitted him for service in proceedings of this character. Rarely would
you have found a man of great distinction; but very frequently a group
of men who were possessed of no small modicum of that interesting
quality known as hard common sense.
Throughout all this Cowperwood sat quietly examining the men. A young
florist, with a pale face, a wide speculative forehead, and anemic
hands, struck him as being sufficiently impressionable to his personal
charm to be worth while. He whispered as much to Steger. There was a
shrewd Jew, a furrier, who was challenged because he had read all of
the news of the panic and had lost two thousand dollars in
street-railway stocks. There was a stout wholesale grocer, with red
cheeks, blue eyes, and flaxen hair, who Cowperwood said he thought was
stubborn. He was eliminated. There was a thin, dapper manager of a
small retail clothing store, very anxious to be excused, who declared,
falsely, that he did not believe in swearing by the Bible. Judge
Payderson, eyeing him severely, let him go. There were some ten more in
all—men who knew of Cowperwood, men who admitted they were prejudiced,
men who were hidebound Republicans and resentful of this crime, men who
knew Stener—who were pleasantly eliminated.
“We have direct and positive evidence of all that we have thus far
contended, gentlemen,” Mr. Shannon concluded violently. “This is not a
matter of hearsay or theory, but of fact. You will be shown by direct
testimony which cannot be shaken just how it was done. If, after you
have heard all this, you still think this man is innocent—that he did
not commit the crimes with which he is charged—it is your business to
acquit him. On the other hand, if you think the witnesses whom we shall
put on the stand are telling the truth, then it is your business to
convict him, to find a verdict for the people as against the defendant.
I thank you for your attention.”
The examination now came down to the matter of the particular check for
sixty thousand dollars which Albert Stires had handed Cowperwood on the
afternoon—late—of October 9, 1871. Shannon showed Stener the check
itself. Had he ever seen it? Yes. Where? In the office of District
Attorney Pettie on October 20th, or thereabouts last. Was that the
first time he had seen it? Yes. Had he ever heard about it before then?
Yes. When? On October 10th last. Would he kindly tell the jury in his
own way just how and under what circumstances he first heard of it
then? Stener twisted uncomfortably in his chair. It was a hard thing to
do. It was not a pleasant commentary on his own character and degree of
moral stamina, to say the least. However, he cleared his throat again
and began a description of that small but bitter section of his life’s
drama in which Cowperwood, finding himself in a tight place and about
to fail, had come to him at his office and demanded that he loan him
three hundred thousand dollars more in one lump sum.
There was considerable bickering just at this point between Steger and
Shannon, for the former was very anxious to make it appear that Stener
was lying out of the whole cloth about this. Steger got in his
objection at this point, and created a considerable diversion from the
main theme, because Stener kept saying he “thought” or he “believed.”
“Your honor,” insisted Shannon, “I am doing the best I can to have the
witness tell a plain, straightforward story, and I think that it is
obvious that he is doing so.”
If any one imagines that all this was done without many vehement
objections and exceptions made and taken by Steger, and subsequently
when he was cross-examining Stener, by Shannon, he errs greatly. At
times the chamber was coruscating with these two gentlemen’s bitter
wrangles, and his honor was compelled to hammer his desk with his
gavel, and to threaten both with contempt of court, in order to bring
them to a sense of order. Indeed while Payderson was highly incensed,
the jury was amused and interested.
“You gentlemen will have to stop this, or I tell you now that you will
both be heavily fined. This is a court of law, not a bar-room. Mr.
Steger, I expect you to apologize to me and your colleague at once. Mr.
Shannon, I must ask that you use less aggressive methods. Your manner
is offensive to me. It is not becoming to a court of law. I will not
caution either of you again.”
“What did he say to you,” asked Shannon of Stener, after one of these
troublesome interruptions, “on that occasion, October 9th last, when he
came to you and demanded the loan of an additional three hundred
thousand dollars? Give his words as near as you can remember—exactly,
if possible.”
“Now, as near as you can remember, Mr. Stener, I wish you would tell
the jury what else it was that Mr. Cowperwood said on that occasion. He
certainly didn’t stop with the remark that you would be ruined and go
to the penitentiary. Wasn’t there other language that was employed on
that occasion?”
“He said, as far as I can remember,” replied Stener, “that there were a
lot of political schemers who were trying to frighten me, that if I
didn’t give him three hundred thousand dollars we would both be ruined,
and that I might as well be tried for stealing a sheep as a lamb.”
“How did he say it, exactly? What were his exact words?” Shannon
demanded, emphatically, pointing a forceful forefinger at Stener in
order to key him up to a clear memory of what had transpired.
“Pure pyrotechnics, your honor,” said Steger, rising to his feet on the
instant. “All intended to prejudice the minds of the jury. Acting. I
wish you would caution the counsel for the prosecution to confine
himself to the evidence in hand, and not act for the benefit of his
case.”
“Objection overruled. Neither counsel for the prosecution nor for the
defense is limited to a peculiar routine of expression.”
Steger himself was ready to smile, but he did not dare to.
Cowperwood fearing the force of such testimony and regretting it, still
looked at Stener, pityingly. The feebleness of the man; the weakness of
the man; the pass to which his cowardice had brought them both!
When Shannon was through bringing out this unsatisfactory data, Steger
took Stener in hand; but he could not make as much out of him as he
hoped. In so far as this particular situation was concerned, Stener was
telling the exact truth; and it is hard to weaken the effect of the
exact truth by any subtlety of interpretation, though it can,
sometimes, be done. With painstaking care Steger went over all the
ground of Stener’s long relationship with Cowperwood, and tried to make
it appear that Cowperwood was invariably the disinterested agent—not
the ringleader in a subtle, really criminal adventure. It was hard to
do, but he made a fine impression. Still the jury listened with
skeptical minds. It might not be fair to punish Cowperwood for seizing
with avidity upon a splendid chance to get rich quick, they thought;
but it certainly was not worth while to throw a veil of innocence over
such palpable human cupidity. Finally, both lawyers were through with
Stener for the time being, anyhow, and then Albert Stires was called to
the stand.
He was the same thin, pleasant, alert, rather agreeable soul that he
had been in the heyday of his clerkly prosperity—a little paler now,
but not otherwise changed. His small property had been saved for him by
Cowperwood, who had advised Steger to inform the Municipal Reform
Association that Stires’ bondsmen were attempting to sequestrate it for
their own benefit, when actually it should go to the city if there were
any real claim against him—which there was not. That watchful
organization had issued one of its numerous reports covering this
point, and Albert had had the pleasure of seeing Strobik and the others
withdraw in haste. Naturally he was grateful to Cowperwood, even though
once he had been compelled to cry in vain in his presence. He was
anxious now to do anything he could to help the banker, but his
naturally truthful disposition prevented him from telling anything
except the plain facts, which were partly beneficial and partly not.
Up to now both Steger and Cowperwood felt that they were doing fairly
well, and that they need not be surprised if they won their case.
Chapter XLII
The trial moved on. One witness for the prosecution after another
followed until the State had built up an arraignment that satisfied
Shannon that he had established Cowperwood’s guilt, whereupon he
announced that he rested. Steger at once arose and began a long
argument for the dismissal of the case on the ground that there was no
evidence to show this, that and the other, but Judge Payderson would
have none of it. He knew how important the matter was in the local
political world.
“I don’t think you had better go into all that now, Mr. Steger,” he
said, wearily, after allowing him to proceed a reasonable distance. “I
am familiar with the custom of the city, and the indictment as here
made does not concern the custom of the city. Your argument is with the
jury, not with me. I couldn’t enter into that now. You may renew your
motion at the close of the defendants’ case. Motion denied.”
“We’ll just have to take our chances with the jury,” he announced.
Steger then approached the jury, and, having outlined the case briefly
from his angle of observation, continued by telling them what he was
sure the evidence would show from his point of view.
He then put on Arthur Rivers, who had acted for Cowperwood on ’change
as special agent during the panic, to testify to the large quantities
of city loan he had purchased to stay the market; and then after him,
Cowperwood’s brothers, Edward and Joseph, who testified to instructions
received from Rivers as to buying and selling city loan on that
occasion—principally buying.
He now decided to have Cowperwood take the stand, and at the mention of
his name in this connection the whole courtroom bristled.
The jury looked at him, and believed all except this matter of the
sixty-thousand-dollar check. When it came to that he explained it all
plausibly enough. When he had gone to see Stener those several last
days, he had not fancied that he was really going to fail. He had asked
Stener for some money, it is true—not so very much, all things
considered—one hundred and fifty thousand dollars; but, as Stener
should have testified, he (Cowperwood) was not disturbed in his manner.
Stener had merely been one resource of his. He was satisfied at that
time that he had many others. He had not used the forceful language or
made the urgent appeal which Stener said he had, although he had
pointed out to Stener that it was a mistake to become panic-stricken,
also to withhold further credit. It was true that Stener was his
easiest, his quickest resource, but not his only one. He thought, as a
matter of fact, that his credit would be greatly extended by his
principal money friends if necessary, and that he would have ample time
to patch up his affairs and keep things going until the storm should
blow over. He had told Stener of his extended purchase of city loan to
stay the market on the first day of the panic, and of the fact that
sixty thousand dollars was due him. Stener had made no objection. It
was just possible that he was too mentally disturbed at the time to pay
close attention. After that, to his, Cowperwood’s, surprise, unexpected
pressure on great financial houses from unexpected directions had
caused them to be not willingly but unfortunately severe with him. This
pressure, coming collectively the next day, had compelled him to close
his doors, though he had not really expected to up to the last moment.
His call for the sixty-thousand-dollar check at the time had been
purely fortuitous. He needed the money, of course, but it was due him,
and his clerks were all very busy. He merely asked for and took it
personally to save time. Stener knew if it had been refused him he
would have brought suit. The matter of depositing city loan
certificates in the sinking-fund, when purchased for the city, was
something to which he never gave any personal attention whatsoever. His
bookkeeper, Mr. Stapley, attended to all that. He did not know, as a
matter of fact, that they had not been deposited. (This was a barefaced
lie. He did know.) As for the check being turned over to the Girard
National Bank, that was fortuitous. It might just as well have been
turned over to some other bank if the conditions had been different.
He was through finally, and the effect on the jury of his testimony and
his personality was peculiar. Philip Moultrie, juror No. 1, decided
that Cowperwood was lying. He could not see how it was possible that he
could not know the day before that he was going to fail. He must have
known, he thought. Anyhow, the whole series of transactions between him
and Stener seemed deserving of some punishment, and all during this
testimony he was thinking how, when he got in the jury-room, he would
vote guilty. He even thought of some of the arguments he would use to
convince the others that Cowperwood was guilty. Juror No. 2, on the
contrary, Simon Glassberg, a clothier, thought he understood how it all
came about, and decided to vote for acquittal. He did not think
Cowperwood was innocent, but he did not think he deserved to be
punished. Juror No. 3, Fletcher Norton, an architect, thought
Cowperwood was guilty, but at the same time that he was too talented to
be sent to prison. Juror No. 4, Charles Hillegan, an Irishman, a
contractor, and a somewhat religious-minded person, thought Cowperwood
was guilty and ought to be punished. Juror No. 5, Philip Lukash, a coal
merchant, thought he was guilty. Juror No. 6, Benjamin Fraser, a mining
expert, thought he was probably guilty, but he could not be sure.
Uncertain what he would do, juror No. 7, J. J. Bridges, a broker in
Third Street, small, practical, narrow, thought Cowperwood was shrewd
and guilty and deserved to be punished. He would vote for his
punishment. Juror No. 8, Guy E. Tripp, general manager of a small
steamboat company, was uncertain. Juror No. 9, Joseph Tisdale, a
retired glue manufacturer, thought Cowperwood was probably guilty as
charged, but to Tisdale it was no crime. Cowperwood was entitled to do
as he had done under the circumstances. Tisdale would vote for his
acquittal. Juror No. 10, Richard Marsh, a young florist, was for
Cowperwood in a sentimental way. He had, as a matter of fact, no real
convictions. Juror No. 11, Richard Webber, a grocer, small financially,
but heavy physically, was for Cowperwood’s conviction. He thought him
guilty. Juror No. 12, Washington B. Thomas, a wholesale flour merchant,
thought Cowperwood was guilty, but believed in a recommendation to
mercy after pronouncing him so. Men ought to be reformed, was his
slogan.
Chapter XLIII
Since it is the privilege of the lawyer for the defense to address the
jury first, Steger bowed politely to his colleague and came forward.
Putting his hands on the jury-box rail, he began in a very quiet,
modest, but impressive way:
“Why is it then that Mr. Stener charges Mr. Cowperwood with larcenously
securing and feloniously disposing of a check for sixty thousand
dollars for certificates which he had a right to buy, and which it has
not been contested here that he did buy? The reason lies just
here—listen—just here. At the time my client asked for the check and
took it away with him and deposited it in his own bank to his own
account, he failed, so the prosecution insists, to put the sixty
thousand dollars’ worth of certificates for which he had received the
check, in the sinking-fund; and having failed to do that, and being
compelled by the pressure of financial events the same day to suspend
payment generally, he thereby, according to the prosecution and the
anxious leaders of the Republican party in the city, became an
embezzler, a thief, a this or that—anything you please so long as you
find a substitute for George W. Stener and the indifferent leaders of
the Republican party in the eyes of the people.”
And here Mr. Steger proceeded boldly and defiantly to outline the
entire political situation as it had manifested itself in connection
with the Chicago fire, the subsequent panic and its political
consequences, and to picture Cowperwood as the unjustly maligned agent,
who before the fire was valuable and honorable enough to suit any of
the political leaders of Philadelphia, but afterward, and when
political defeat threatened, was picked upon as the most available
scapegoat anywhere within reach.
And it took him a half hour to do that. And afterward but only after he
had pointed to Stener as the true henchman and stalking horse, who had,
in turn, been used by political forces above him to accomplish certain
financial results, which they were not willing to have ascribed to
themselves, he continued with:
“But now, in the light of all this, only see how ridiculous all this
is! How silly! Frank A. Cowperwood had always been the agent of the
city in these matters for years and years. He worked under certain
rules which he and Mr. Stener had agreed upon in the first place, and
which obviously came from others, who were above Mr. Stener, since they
were hold-over customs and rules from administrations, which had been
long before Mr. Stener ever appeared on the scene as city treasurer.
One of them was that he could carry all transactions over until the
first of the month following before he struck a balance. That is, he
need not pay any money over for anything to the city treasurer, need
not send him any checks or deposit any money or certificates in the
sinking-fund until the first of the month because—now listen to this
carefully, gentlemen; it is important—because his transactions in
connection with city loan and everything else that he dealt in for the
city treasurer were so numerous, so swift, so uncalculated beforehand,
that he had to have a loose, easy system of this kind in order to do
his work properly—to do business at all. Otherwise he could not very
well have worked to the best advantage for Mr. Stener, or for any one
else. It would have meant too much bookkeeping for him—too much for the
city treasurer. Mr. Stener has testified to that in the early part of
his story. Albert Stires has indicated that that was his understanding
of it. Well, then what? Why, just this. Would any jury suppose, would
any sane business man believe that if such were the case Mr. Cowperwood
would be running personally with all these items of deposit, to the
different banks or the sinking-fund or the city treasurer’s office, or
would be saying to his head bookkeeper, ‘Here, Stapley, here is a check
for sixty thousand dollars. See that the certificates of loan which
this represents are put in the sinking-fund to-day’? And why not? What
a ridiculous supposition any other supposition is! As a matter of
course and as had always been the case, Mr. Cowperwood had a system.
When the time came, this check and these certificates would be
automatically taken care of. He handed his bookkeeper the check and
forgot all about it. Would you imagine a banker with a vast business of
this kind doing anything else?”
Mr. Steger paused for breath and inquiry, and then, having satisfied
himself that his point had been sufficiently made, he continued:
“Of course the answer is that he knew he was going to fail. Well, Mr.
Cowperwood’s reply is that he didn’t know anything of the sort. He has
personally testified here that it was only at the last moment before it
actually happened that he either thought or knew of such an occurrence.
Why, then, this alleged refusal to let him have the check to which he
was legally entitled? I think I know. I think I can give a reason if
you will hear me out.”
Steger shifted his position and came at the jury from another
intellectual angle:
“It was simply because Mr. George W. Stener at that time, owing to a
recent notable fire and a panic, imagined for some reason—perhaps
because Mr. Cowperwood cautioned him not to become frightened over
local developments generally—that Mr. Cowperwood was going to close his
doors; and having considerable money on deposit with him at a low rate
of interest, Mr. Stener decided that Mr. Cowperwood must not have any
more money—not even the money that was actually due him for services
rendered, and that had nothing whatsoever to do with the money loaned
him by Mr. Stener at two and one-half per cent. Now isn’t that a
ridiculous situation? But it was because Mr. George W. Stener was
filled with his own fears, based on a fire and a panic which had
absolutely nothing to do with Mr. Cowperwood’s solvency in the
beginning that he decided not to let Frank A. Cowperwood have the money
that was actually due him, because he, Stener, was criminally using the
city’s money to further his own private interests (through Mr.
Cowperwood as a broker), and in danger of being exposed and possibly
punished. Now where, I ask you, does the good sense of that decision
come in? Is it apparent to you, gentlemen? Was Mr. Cowperwood still an
agent for the city at the time he bought the loan certificates as here
testified? He certainly was. If so, was he entitled to that money? Who
is going to stand up here and deny it? Where is the question then, as
to his right or his honesty in this matter? How does it come in here at
all? I can tell you. It sprang solely from one source and from nowhere
else, and that is the desire of the politicians of this city to find a
scapegoat for the Republican party.
“Now you may think I am going rather far afield for an explanation of
this very peculiar decision to prosecute Mr. Cowperwood, an agent of
the city, for demanding and receiving what actually belonged to him.
But I’m not. Consider the position of the Republican party at that
time. Consider the fact that an exposure of the truth in regard to the
details of a large defalcation in the city treasury would have a very
unsatisfactory effect on the election about to be held. The Republican
party had a new city treasurer to elect, a new district attorney. It
had been in the habit of allowing its city treasurers the privilege of
investing the funds in their possession at a low rate of interest for
the benefit of themselves and their friends. Their salaries were small.
They had to have some way of eking out a reasonable existence. Was Mr.
George Stener responsible for this custom of loaning out the city
money? Not at all. Was Mr. Cowperwood? Not at all. The custom had been
in vogue long before either Mr. Cowperwood or Mr. Stener came on the
scene. Why, then, this great hue and cry about it now? The entire
uproar sprang solely from the fear of Mr. Stener at this juncture, the
fear of the politicians at this juncture, of public exposure. No city
treasurer had ever been exposed before. It was a new thing to face
exposure, to face the risk of having the public’s attention called to a
rather nefarious practice of which Mr. Stener was taking advantage,
that was all. A great fire and a panic were endangering the security
and well-being of many a financial organization in the city—Mr.
Cowperwood’s among others. It meant many possible failures, and many
possible failures meant one possible failure. If Frank A. Cowperwood
failed, he would fail owing the city of Philadelphia five hundred
thousand dollars, borrowed from the city treasurer at the very low rate
of interest of two and one-half per cent. Anything very detrimental to
Mr. Cowperwood in that? Had he gone to the city treasurer and asked to
be loaned money at two and one-half per cent.? If he had, was there
anything criminal in it from a business point of view? Isn’t a man
entitled to borrow money from any source he can at the lowest possible
rate of interest? Did Mr. Stener have to loan it to Mr. Cowperwood if
he did not want to? As a matter of fact didn’t he testify here to-day
that he personally had sent for Mr. Cowperwood in the first place? Why,
then, in Heaven’s name, this excited charge of larceny, larceny as
bailee, embezzlement, embezzlement on a check, etc., etc.?
“Once more, gentlemen, listen. I’ll tell you why. The men who stood
behind Stener, and whose bidding he was doing, wanted to make a
political scapegoat of some one—of Frank Algernon Cowperwood, if they
couldn’t get any one else. That’s why. No other reason under God’s blue
sky, not one. Why, if Mr. Cowperwood needed more money just at that
time to tide him over, it would have been good policy for them to have
given it to him and hushed this matter up. It would have been
illegal—though not any more illegal than anything else that has ever
been done in this connection—but it would have been safer. Fear,
gentlemen, fear, lack of courage, inability to meet a great crisis when
a great crisis appears, was all that really prevented them from doing
this. They were afraid to place confidence in a man who had never
heretofore betrayed their trust and from whose loyalty and great
financial ability they and the city had been reaping large profits. The
reigning city treasurer of the time didn’t have the courage to go on in
the face of fire and panic and the rumors of possible failure, and
stick by his illegal guns; and so he decided to draw in his horns as
testified here to-day—to ask Mr. Cowperwood to return all or at least a
big part of the five hundred thousand dollars he had loaned him, and
which Cowperwood had been actually using for his, Stener’s benefit, and
to refuse him in addition the money that was actually due him for an
authorized purchase of city loan. Was Cowperwood guilty as an agent in
any of these transactions? Not in the least. Was there any suit pending
to make him return the five hundred thousand dollars of city money
involved in his present failure? Not at all. It was simply a case of
wild, silly panic on the part of George W. Stener, and a strong desire
on the part of the Republican party leaders, once they discovered what
the situation was, to find some one outside of Stener, the party
treasurer, upon whom they could blame the shortage in the treasury. You
heard what Mr. Cowperwood testified to here in this case to-day—that he
went to Mr. Stener to forfend against any possible action of this kind
in the first place. And it was because of this very warning that Mr.
Stener became wildly excited, lost his head, and wanted Mr. Cowperwood
to return him all his money, all the five hundred thousand dollars he
had loaned him at two and one-half per cent. Isn’t that silly financial
business at the best? Wasn’t that a fine time to try to call a
perfectly legal loan?
“What nonsense! Why didn’t he know? The books were there, open to him.
Mr. Stires told him the first thing the next morning. Mr. Cowperwood
thought nothing of it, for he was entitled to it, and could collect it
in any court of law having jurisdiction in such cases, failure or no
failure. It is silly for Mr. Stener to say he would have stopped
payment. Such a claim was probably an after-thought of the next morning
after he had talked with his friends, the politicians, and was all a
part, a trick, a trap, to provide the Republican party with a scapegoat
at this time. Nothing more and nothing less; and you may be sure no one
knew it better than the people who were most anxious to see Mr.
Cowperwood convicted.”
Steger suddenly turned from the jury-box and walked to his seat beside
Cowperwood, while Shannon arose, calm, forceful, vigorous, much
younger.
As between man and man, Shannon was not particularly opposed to the
case Steger had made out for Cowperwood, nor was he opposed to
Cowperwood’s having made money as he did. As a matter of fact, Shannon
actually thought that if he had been in Cowperwood’s position he would
have done exactly the same thing. However, he was the newly elected
district attorney. He had a record to make; and, besides, the political
powers who were above him were satisfied that Cowperwood ought to be
convicted for the looks of the thing. Therefore he laid his hands
firmly on the rail at first, looked the jurors steadily in the eyes for
a time, and, having framed a few thoughts in his mind began:
He paused and gazed at the jury, adjusting his sleeves as he did so,
and looking as though he knew for certain that he was on the trail of a
slippery, elusive criminal who was in a fair way to foist himself upon
an honorable and decent community and an honorable and innocent jury as
an honest man.
Then he continued:
“Now, gentlemen, what are the facts? You can see for yourselves exactly
how this whole situation has come about. You are sensible men. I don’t
need to tell you. Here are two men, one elected treasurer of the city
of Philadelphia, sworn to guard the interests of the city and to
manipulate its finances to the best advantage, and the other called in
at a time of uncertain financial cogitation to assist in unraveling a
possibly difficult financial problem; and then you have a case of a
quiet, private financial understanding being reached, and of subsequent
illegal dealings in which one man who is shrewder, wiser, more versed
in the subtle ways of Third Street leads the other along over seemingly
charming paths of fortunate investment into an accidental but none the
less criminal mire of failure and exposure and public calumny and what
not. And then they get to the place where the more vulnerable
individual of the two—the man in the most dangerous position, the city
treasurer of Philadelphia, no less—can no longer reasonably or, let us
say, courageously, follow the other fellow; and then you have such a
spectacle as was described here this afternoon in the witness-chair by
Mr. Stener—that is, you have a vicious, greedy, unmerciful financial
wolf standing over a cowering, unsophisticated commercial lamb, and
saying to him, his white, shiny teeth glittering all the while, ‘If you
don’t advance me the money I ask for—the three hundred thousand dollars
I now demand—you will be a convict, your children will be thrown in the
street, you and your wife and your family will be in poverty again, and
there will be no one to turn a hand for you.’ That is what Mr. Stener
says Mr. Cowperwood said to him. I, for my part, haven’t a doubt in the
world that he did. Mr. Steger, in his very guarded references to his
client, describes him as a nice, kind, gentlemanly agent, a broker
merely on whom was practically forced the use of five hundred thousand
dollars at two and a half per cent. when money was bringing from ten to
fifteen per cent. in Third Street on call loans, and even more. But I
for one don’t choose to believe it. The thing that strikes me as
strange in all of this is that if he was so nice and kind and gentle
and remote—a mere hired and therefore subservient agent—how is it that
he could have gone to Mr. Stener’s office two or three days before the
matter of this sixty-thousand-dollar check came up and say to him, as
Mr. Stener testifies under oath that he did say to him, ‘If you don’t
give me three hundred thousand dollars’ worth more of the city’s money
at once, to-day, I will fail, and you will be a convict. You will go to
the penitentiary.’? That’s what he said to him. ‘I will fail and you
will be a convict. They can’t touch me, but they will arrest you. I am
an agent merely.’ Does that sound like a nice, mild, innocent,
well-mannered agent, a hired broker, or doesn’t it sound like a hard,
defiant, contemptuous master—a man in control and ready to rule and win
by fair means or foul?
“George W. Stener was a poor man, comparatively a very poor man, when
he first became city treasurer. All he had was a small real-estate and
insurance business which brought him in, say, twenty-five hundred
dollars a year. He had a wife and four children to support, and he had
never had the slightest taste of what for him might be called luxury or
comfort. Then comes Mr. Cowperwood—at his request, to be sure, but on
an errand which held no theory of evil gains in Mr. Stener’s mind at
the time—and proposes his grand scheme of manipulating all the city
loan to their mutual advantage. Do you yourselves think, gentlemen,
from what you have seen of George W. Stener here on the witness-stand,
that it was he who proposed this plan of ill-gotten wealth to that
gentleman over there?”
He pointed to Cowperwood.
“Does he look to you like a man who would be able to tell that
gentleman anything about finance or this wonderful manipulation that
followed? I ask you, does he look clever enough to suggest all the
subtleties by which these two subsequently made so much money? Why, the
statement of this man Cowperwood made to his creditors at the time of
his failure here a few weeks ago showed that he considered himself to
be worth over one million two hundred and fifty thousand dollars, and
he is only a little over thirty-four years old to-day. How much was he
worth at the time he first entered business relations with the ex-city
treasurer? Have you any idea? I can tell. I had the matter looked up
almost a month ago on my accession to office. Just a little over two
hundred thousand dollars, gentlemen—just a little over two hundred
thousand dollars. Here is an abstract from the files of Dun & Company
for that year. Now you can see how rapidly our Caesar has grown in
wealth since then. You can see how profitable these few short years
have been to him. Was George W. Stener worth any such sum up to the
time he was removed from his office and indicted for embezzlement? Was
he? I have here a schedule of his liabilities and assets made out at
the time. You can see it for yourselves, gentlemen. Just two hundred
and twenty thousand dollars measured the sum of all his property three
weeks ago; and it is an accurate estimate, as I have reason to know.
Why was it, do you suppose, that Mr. Cowperwood grew so fast in wealth
and Mr. Stener so slowly? They were partners in crime. Mr. Stener was
loaning Mr. Cowperwood vast sums of the city’s money at two per cent.
when call-rates for money in Third Street were sometimes as high as
sixteen and seventeen per cent. Don’t you suppose that Mr. Cowperwood
sitting there knew how to use this very cheaply come-by money to the
very best advantage? Does he look to you as though he didn’t? You have
seen him on the witness-stand. You have heard him testify. Very suave,
very straightforward-seeming, very innocent, doing everything as a
favor to Mr. Stener and his friends, of course, and yet making a
million in a little over six years and allowing Mr. Stener to make one
hundred and sixty thousand dollars or less, for Mr. Stener had some
little money at the time this partnership was entered into—a few
thousand dollars.”
“Why [continued Mr. Shannon, turning once more to the jury], think of
the colossal, wolfish nerve that would permit a man to say to Albert
Stires that he had just purchased sixty thousand dollars’ worth
additional of city loan, and that he would then and there take the
check for it! Had he actually purchased this city loan as he said he
had? Who can tell? Could any human being wind through all the mazes of
the complicated bookkeeping system which he ran, and actually tell? The
best answer to that is that if he did purchase the certificates he
intended that it should make no difference to the city, for he made no
effort to put the certificates in the sinking-fund, where they
belonged. His counsel says, and he says, that he didn’t have to until
the first of the month, although the law says that he must do it at
once, and he knew well enough that legally he was bound to do it. His
counsel says, and he says, that he didn’t know he was going to fail.
Hence there was no need of worrying about it. I wonder if any of you
gentlemen really believed that? Had he ever asked for a check like that
so quick before in his life? In all the history of these nefarious
transactions was there another incident like that? You know there
wasn’t. He had never before, on any occasion, asked personally for a
check for anything in this office, and yet on this occasion he did it.
Why? Why should he ask for it this time? A few hours more, according to
his own statement, wouldn’t have made any difference one way or the
other, would it? He could have sent a boy for it, as usual. That was
the way it had always been done before. Why anything different now?
I’ll tell you why! [Shannon suddenly shouted, varying his voice
tremendously.] I’ll tell you why! He knew that he was a ruined man! He
knew that his last semi-legitimate avenue of escape—the favor of George
W. Stener—had been closed to him! He knew that honestly, by open
agreement, he could not extract another single dollar from the treasury
of the city of Philadelphia. He knew that if he left the office without
this check and sent a boy for it, the aroused city treasurer would have
time to inform his clerks, and that then no further money could be
obtained. That’s why! That’s why, gentlemen, if you really want to
know.
He turned away grandly, and the jury stirred—so did the idle spectators
in the court. Judge Payderson sighed a sigh of relief. It was now quite
dark, and the flaring gas forms in the court were all brightly lighted.
Outside one could see that it was snowing. The judge stirred among his
papers wearily, and turning to the jurors solemnly, began his customary
explanation of the law, after which they filed out to the jury-room.
Cowperwood turned to his father who now came over across the
fast-emptying court, and said:
“It would take all of five days, Frank,” Steger said, “but Jaspers
isn’t a bad sort. He’d be reasonable. Of course if we’re lucky you
won’t have to visit him. You will have to go with this bailiff now,
though. Then if things come out right we’ll go home. Say, I’d like to
win this case,” he said. “I’d like to give them the laugh and see you
do it. I consider you’ve been pretty badly treated, and I think I made
that perfectly clear. I can reverse this verdict on a dozen grounds if
they happen to decide against you.”
He and Cowperwood and the latter’s father now stalked off with the
sheriff’s subordinate—a small man by the name of “Eddie” Zanders, who
had approached to take charge. They entered a small room called the pen
at the back of the court, where all those on trial whose liberty had
been forfeited by the jury’s leaving the room had to wait pending its
return. It was a dreary, high-ceiled, four-square place, with a window
looking out into Chestnut Street, and a second door leading off into
somewhere—one had no idea where. It was dingy, with a worn wooden
floor, some heavy, plain, wooden benches lining the four sides, no
pictures or ornaments of any kind. A single two-arm gas-pipe descended
from the center of the ceiling. It was permeated by a peculiarly stale
and pungent odor, obviously redolent of all the flotsam and jetsam of
life—criminal and innocent—that had stood or sat in here from time to
time, waiting patiently to learn what a deliberating fate held in
store.
“Not as nice as it might be,” he said, “but you won’t mind waiting a
little while. The jury won’t be long, I fancy.”
“That may not help me,” he replied, walking to the window. Afterward he
added: “What must be, must be.”
His father winced. Suppose Frank was on the verge of a long prison
term, which meant an atmosphere like this? Heavens! For a moment, he
trembled, then for the first time in years he made a silent prayer.
Chapter XLIV
Meanwhile the great argument had been begun in the jury-room, and all
the points that had been meditatively speculated upon in the jury-box
were now being openly discussed.
So, finally, at ten minutes after twelve that night, they were ready to
return a verdict; and Judge Payderson, who, because of his interest in
the case and the fact that he lived not so far away, had decided to
wait up this long, was recalled. Steger and Cowperwood were sent for.
The court-room was fully lighted. The bailiff, the clerk, and the
stenographer were there. The jury filed in, and Cowperwood, with Steger
at his right, took his position at the gate which gave into the railed
space where prisoners always stand to hear the verdict and listen to
any commentary of the judge. He was accompanied by his father, who was
very nervous.
For the first time in his life he felt as though he were walking in his
sleep. Was this the real Frank Cowperwood of two months before—so
wealthy, so progressive, so sure? Was this only December 5th or 6th now
(it was after midnight)? Why was it the jury had deliberated so long?
What did it mean? Here they were now, standing and gazing solemnly
before them; and here now was Judge Payderson, mounting the steps of
his rostrum, his frizzled hair standing out in a strange, attractive
way, his familiar bailiff rapping for order. He did not look at
Cowperwood—it would not be courteous—but at the jury, who gazed at him
in return. At the words of the clerk, “Gentlemen of the jury, have you
agreed upon a verdict?” the foreman spoke up, “We have.”
How had they come to do this? Because he had taken a check for sixty
thousand dollars which did not belong to him? But in reality it did.
Good Lord, what was sixty thousand dollars in the sum total of all the
money that had passed back and forth between him and George W. Stener?
Nothing, nothing! A mere bagatelle in its way; and yet here it had
risen up, this miserable, insignificant check, and become a mountain of
opposition, a stone wall, a prison-wall barring his further progress.
It was astonishing. He looked around him at the court-room. How large
and bare and cold it was! Still he was Frank A. Cowperwood. Why should
he let such queer thoughts disturb him? His fight for freedom and
privilege and restitution was not over yet. Good heavens! It had only
begun. In five days he would be out again on bail. Steger would take an
appeal. He would be out, and he would have two long months in which to
make an additional fight. He was not down yet. He would win his
liberty. This jury was all wrong. A higher court would say so. It would
reverse their verdict, and he knew it. He turned to Steger, where the
latter was having the clerk poll the jury, in the hope that some one
juror had been over-persuaded, made to vote against his will.
“Is that your verdict?” he heard the clerk ask of Philip Moultrie,
juror No. 1.
“Is that your verdict?” The clerk was pointing to Simon Glassberg.
“Yes, sir.”
“Yes.”
So it went through the whole jury. All the men answered firmly and
clearly, though Steger thought it might barely be possible that one
would have changed his mind. The judge thanked them and told them that
in view of their long services this night, they were dismissed for the
term. The only thing remaining to be done now was for Steger to
persuade Judge Payderson to grant a stay of sentence pending the
hearing of a motion by the State Supreme Court for a new trial.
It was a rough and blowy night when Cowperwood started for this
institution under duress. The wind was driving the snow before it in
curious, interesting whirls. Eddie Zanders, the sheriff’s deputy on
guard at the court of Quarter Sessions, accompanied him and his father
and Steger. Zanders was a little man, dark, with a short, stubby
mustache, and a shrewd though not highly intelligent eye. He was
anxious first to uphold his dignity as a deputy sheriff, which was a
very important position in his estimation, and next to turn an honest
penny if he could. He knew little save the details of his small world,
which consisted of accompanying prisoners to and from the courts and
the jails, and seeing that they did not get away. He was not unfriendly
to a particular type of prisoner—the well-to-do or moderately
prosperous—for he had long since learned that it paid to be so.
To-night he offered a few sociable suggestions—viz., that it was rather
rough, that the jail was not so far but that they could walk, and that
Sheriff Jaspers would, in all likelihood, be around or could be
aroused. Cowperwood scarcely heard. He was thinking of his mother and
his wife and of Aileen.
When the jail was reached he was led to the central portion, as it was
here that the sheriff, Adlai Jaspers, had his private office. Jaspers
had recently been elected to office, and was inclined to conform to all
outward appearances, in so far as the proper conduct of his office was
concerned, without in reality inwardly conforming. Thus it was
generally known among the politicians that one way he had of fattening
his rather lean salary was to rent private rooms and grant special
privileges to prisoners who had the money to pay for the same. Other
sheriffs had done it before him. In fact, when Jaspers was inducted
into office, several prisoners were already enjoying these privileges,
and it was not a part of his scheme of things to disturb them. The
rooms that he let to the “right parties,” as he invariably put it, were
in the central portion of the jail, where were his own private living
quarters. They were unbarred, and not at all cell-like. There was no
particular danger of escape, for a guard stood always at his private
door instructed “to keep an eye” on the general movements of all the
inmates. A prisoner so accommodated was in many respects quite a free
person. His meals were served to him in his room, if he wished. He
could read or play cards, or receive guests; and if he had any favorite
musical instrument, that was not denied him. There was just one rule
that had to be complied with. If he were a public character, and any
newspaper men called, he had to be brought down-stairs into the private
interviewing room in order that they might not know that he was not
confined in a cell like any other prisoner.
“A bad night, isn’t it?” observed Jaspers, turning up the gas and
preparing to go through the routine of registering his prisoner. Steger
came over and held a short, private conversation with him in his
corner, over his desk which resulted presently in the sheriff’s face
lighting up.
“That’s all right, Mr. Cowperwood,” said Jaspers, getting up. “I guess
I can make you comfortable, after a fashion. We’re not running a hotel
here, as you know”—he chuckled to himself—“but I guess I can make you
comfortable. John,” he called to a sleepy factotum, who appeared from
another room, rubbing his eyes, “is the key to Number Six down here?”
“Yes, sir.”
Cowperwood walked briskly to the window, which gave out on the lawn in
front, now embedded in snow, and said he thought this was all right.
Both his father and Steger were willing and anxious to confer with him
for hours, if he wished; but there was nothing to say. He did not wish
to talk.
“Let Ed bring in some fresh linen in the morning and a couple of suits
of clothes, and I will be all right. George can get my things
together.” He was referring to a family servant who acted as valet and
in other capacities. “Tell Lillian not to worry. I’m all right. I’d
rather she would not come here so long as I’m going to be out in five
days. If I’m not, it will be time enough then. Kiss the kids for me.”
And he smiled good-naturedly.
“I don’t think you need worry about what the outcome of my appeal will
be, Frank. I’ll get a certificate of reasonable doubt, and that’s as
good as a stay of two months, perhaps longer. I don’t suppose the bail
will be more than thirty thousand dollars at the outside. You’ll be out
again in five or six days, whatever happens.”
Cowperwood said that he hoped so, and suggested that they drop matters
for the night. After a few fruitless parleys his father and Steger
finally said good night, leaving him to his own private reflections. He
was tired, however, and throwing off his clothes, tucked himself in his
mediocre bed, and was soon fast asleep.
Chapter XLV
Say what one will about prison life in general, modify it ever so much
by special chambers, obsequious turnkeys, a general tendency to make
one as comfortable as possible, a jail is a jail, and there is no
getting away from that. Cowperwood, in a room which was not in any way
inferior to that of the ordinary boarding-house, was nevertheless
conscious of the character of that section of this real prison which
was not yet his portion. He knew that there were cells there, probably
greasy and smelly and vermin-infested, and that they were enclosed by
heavy iron bars, which would have as readily clanked on him as on those
who were now therein incarcerated if he had not had the price to pay
for something better. So much for the alleged equality of man, he
thought, which gave to one man, even within the grim confines of the
machinery of justice, such personal liberty as he himself was now
enjoying, and to another, because he chanced to lack wit or presence or
friends or wealth, denied the more comfortable things which money would
buy.
The morning after the trial, on waking, he stirred curiously, and then
it suddenly came to him that he was no longer in the free and
comfortable atmosphere of his own bedroom, but in a jail-cell, or
rather its very comfortable substitute, a sheriff’s rented bedroom. He
got up and looked out the window. The ground outside and Passayunk
Avenue were white with snow. Some wagons were silently lumbering by. A
few Philadelphians were visible here and there, going to and fro on
morning errands. He began to think at once what he must do, how he must
act to carry on his business, to rehabilitate himself; and as he did so
he dressed and pulled the bell-cord, which had been indicated to him,
and which would bring him an attendant who would build him a fire and
later bring him something to eat. A shabby prison attendant in a blue
uniform, conscious of Cowperwood’s superiority because of the room he
occupied, laid wood and coal in the grate and started a fire, and later
brought him his breakfast, which was anything but prison fare, though
poor enough at that.
She took her jewels, some underwear, a couple of dresses which she
thought would be serviceable, and a few other things, and packed them
in the most capacious portmanteau she had. Shoes and stockings came
into consideration, and, despite her efforts, she found that she could
not get in all that she wished. Her nicest hat, which she was
determined to take, had to be carried outside. She made a separate
bundle of it, which was not pleasant to contemplate. Still she decided
to take it. She rummaged in a little drawer where she kept her money
and jewels, and found the three hundred and fifty dollars and put it in
her purse. It wasn’t much, as Aileen could herself see, but Cowperwood
would help her. If he did not arrange to take care of her, and her
father would not relent, she would have to get something to do. Little
she knew of the steely face the world presents to those who have not
been practically trained and are not economically efficient. She did
not understand the bitter reaches of life at all. She waited, humming
for effect, until she heard her father go downstairs to dinner on this
tenth day of December, then leaned over the upper balustrade to make
sure that Owen, Callum, Norah, and her mother were at the table, and
that Katy, the housemaid, was not anywhere in sight. Then she slipped
into her father’s den, and, taking a note from inside her dress, laid
it on his desk, and went out. It was addressed to “Father,” and read:
Dear Father,—I just cannot do what you want me to. I have made up my
mind that I love Mr. Cowperwood too much, so I am going away. Don’t
look for me with him. You won’t find me where you think. I am not going
to him; I will not be there. I am going to try to get along by myself
for a while, until he wants me and can marry me. I’m terribly sorry;
but I just can’t do what you want. I can’t ever forgive you for the way
you acted to me. Tell mama and Norah and the boys good-by for me.
Aileen
She stole downstairs and out into the vestibule, opening the outer door
and looking out into the street. The lamps were already flaring in the
dark, and a cool wind was blowing. Her portmanteau was heavy, but she
was quite strong. She walked briskly to the corner, which was some
fifty feet away, and turned south, walking rather nervously and
irritably, for this was a new experience for her, and it all seemed so
undignified, so unlike anything she was accustomed to doing. She put
her bag down on a street corner, finally, to rest. A boy whistling in
the distance attracted her attention, and as he drew near she called to
him: “Boy! Oh, boy!”
“Yes, ma’am,” he replied politely, adjusting a frowsy cap over one ear.
“Carry this bag for me,” said Aileen, and he picked it up and marched
off.
In due time she arrived at the Calligans’, and amid much excitement was
installed in the bosom of her new home. She took her situation with
much nonchalance, once she was properly placed, distributing her toilet
articles and those of personal wear with quiet care. The fact that she
was no longer to have the services of Kathleen, the maid who had served
her and her mother and Norah jointly, was odd, though not trying. She
scarcely felt that she had parted from these luxuries permanently, and
so made herself comfortable.
Mamie Calligan and her mother were adoring slaveys, so she was not
entirely out of the atmosphere which she craved and to which she was
accustomed.
Chapter XLVI
Meanwhile, in the Butler home the family was assembling for dinner.
Mrs. Butler was sitting in rotund complacency at the foot of the table,
her gray hair combed straight back from her round, shiny forehead. She
had on a dark-gray silk dress, trimmed with gray-and-white striped
ribbon. It suited her florid temperament admirably. Aileen had dictated
her mother’s choice, and had seen that it had been properly made. Norah
was refreshingly youthful in a pale-green dress, with red-velvet cuffs
and collar. She looked young, slender, gay. Her eyes, complexion and
hair were fresh and healthy. She was trifling with a string of coral
beads which her mother had just given her.
“Oh, look, Callum,” she said to her brother opposite her, who was
drumming idly on the table with his knife and fork. “Aren’t they
lovely? Mama gave them to me.”
“Mama does more for you than I would. You know what you’d get from me,
don’t you?”
“What?”
He looked at her teasingly. For answer Norah made a face at him. Just
then Owen came in and took his place at the table. Mrs. Butler saw
Norah’s grimace.
“Well, that’ll win no love from your brother, ye can depend on that,”
she commented.
“Lord, what a day!” observed Owen, wearily, unfolding his napkin. “I’ve
had my fill of work for once.”
“Well, ye must ate a good, hearty meal now, and that’ll refresh ye,”
observed his mother, genially and feelingly. “Thompson”—she was
referring to the family grocer—“brought us the last of his beans. You
must have some of those.”
“Sure, beans’ll fix it, whatever it is, Owen,” joked Callum. “Mother’s
got the answer.”
“You’d better eat some yourself, smarty. My, but you’re gay! I suppose
you’re going out to see somebody. That’s why.”
“Right you are, Norah. Smart girl, you. Five or six. Ten to fifteen
minutes each. I’d call on you if you were nicer.”
“You would if you got the chance,” mocked Norah. “I’d have you know I
wouldn’t let you. I’d feel very bad if I couldn’t get somebody better
than you.”
“It’s colder,” remarked Owen, “much colder. We’ll soon see real winter
now.”
Old John began to offer the various dishes in order; but when all had
been served Aileen had not yet come.
“See where Aileen is, John,” observed Mrs. Butler, interestedly. “The
meal will be gettin’ cold.”
Old John returned with the news that Aileen was not in her room.
The conversation drifted from a new water-works that was being planned
to the new city hall, then nearing completion; Cowperwood’s financial
and social troubles, and the state of the stock market generally; a new
gold-mine in Arizona; the departure of Mrs. Mollenhauer the following
Tuesday for Europe, with appropriate comments by Norah and Callum; and
a Christmas ball that was going to be given for charity.
So Aileen was gone. The old man stared at each word as if it had been
written in fire. She said she had not gone with Cowperwood. It was
possible, just the same, that he had run away from Philadelphia and
taken her with him. This was the last straw. This ended it. Aileen
lured away from home—to where—to what? Butler could scarcely believe,
though, that Cowperwood had tempted her to do this. He had too much at
stake; it would involve his own and Butler’s families. The papers would
be certain to get it quickly. He got up, crumpling the paper in his
hand, and turned about at a noise. His wife was coming in. He pulled
himself together and shoved the letter in his pocket.
“Aileen’s not in her room,” she said, curiously. “She didn’t say
anything to you about going out, did she?”
“That’s odd,” observed Mrs. Butler, doubtfully. “She must have gone out
after somethin’. It’s a wonder she wouldn’t tell somebody.”
The old man, when he learned that Cowperwood was in and would see him,
determined to make his contact with the financier as short and
effective as possible. He moved the least bit when he heard
Cowperwood’s step, as light and springy as ever.
“Ye can take that away from in front of me, for one thing,” said
Butler, grimly referring to his hand. “I have no need of it. It’s my
daughter I’ve come to talk to ye about, and I want plain answers. Where
is she?”
“Ye can tell me where she is, that I know. And ye can make her come
back to her home, where she belongs. It was bad fortune that ever
brought ye across my doorstep; but I’ll not bandy words with ye here.
Ye’ll tell me where my daughter is, and ye’ll leave her alone from now,
or I’ll—” The old man’s fists closed like a vise, and his chest heaved
with suppressed rage. “Ye’ll not be drivin’ me too far, man, if ye’re
wise,” he added, after a time, recovering his equanimity in part. “I
want no truck with ye. I want my daughter.”
“I’ll not come up to your room,” Butler said, “and ye’ll not get out of
Philadelphy with her if that’s what ye’re plannin’. I can see to that.
Ye think ye have the upper hand of me, I see, and ye’re anxious to make
something of it. Well, ye’re not. It wasn’t enough that ye come to me
as a beggar, cravin’ the help of me, and that I took ye in and helped
ye all I could—ye had to steal my daughter from me in the bargain. If
it wasn’t for the girl’s mother and her sister and her
brothers—dacenter men than ever ye’ll know how to be—I’d brain ye where
ye stand. Takin’ a young, innocent girl and makin’ an evil woman out of
her, and ye a married man! It’s a God’s blessin’ for ye that it’s me,
and not one of me sons, that’s here talkin’ to ye, or ye wouldn’t be
alive to say what ye’d do.”
The old man was grim but impotent in his rage.
Butler saw that Cowperwood had the advantage. He might as well go up.
Otherwise it was plain he would get no information.
Cowperwood led the way quite amicably, and, having entered his private
office, closed the door behind him.
“And ye think because she doesn’t complain that it’s all right, do ye?”
he asked, sarcastically.
“From my point of view, yes; from yours no. You have one view of life,
Mr. Butler, and I have another.”
“To tell you the truth, Mr. Butler,” he said, “I did not want Aileen to
leave your home at all; and she will tell you so, if you ever talk to
her about it. I did my best to persuade her not to, and when she
insisted on going the only thing I could do was to be sure she would be
comfortable wherever she went. She was greatly outraged to think you
should have put detectives on her trail. That, and the fact that you
wanted to send her away somewhere against her will, was the principal
reasons for her leaving. I assure you I did not want her to go. I think
you forget sometimes, Mr. Butler, that Aileen is a grown woman, and
that she has a will of her own. You think I control her to her great
disadvantage. As a matter of fact, I am very much in love with her, and
have been for three or four years; and if you know anything about love
you know that it doesn’t always mean control. I’m not doing Aileen any
injustice when I say that she has had as much influence on me as I have
had on her. I love her, and that’s the cause of all the trouble. You
come and insist that I shall return your daughter to you. As a matter
of fact, I don’t know whether I can or not. I don’t know that she would
go if I wanted her to. She might turn on me and say that I didn’t care
for her any more. That is not true, and I would not want her to feel
that way. She is greatly hurt, as I told you, by what you did to her,
and the fact that you want her to leave Philadelphia. You can do as
much to remedy that as I can. I could tell you where she is, but I do
not know that I want to. Certainly not until I know what your attitude
toward her and this whole proposition is to be.”
He paused and looked calmly at the old contractor, who eyed him grimly
in return.
Butler looked at Cowperwood with shrewd, calculating eyes. The man had
some merit, but much unconscionable evil in him. Butler knew very well
how he had taken the check, and a good many other things in connection
with it. The manner in which he had played his cards to-night was on a
par with the way he had run to him on the night of the fire. He was
just shrewd and calculating and heartless.
“I’ll make ye no promise,” he said. “Tell me where my daughter is, and
I’ll think the matter over. Ye have no claim on me now, and I owe ye no
good turn. But I’ll think it over, anyhow.”
“That’s quite all right,” replied Cowperwood. “That’s all I can expect.
But what about Aileen? Do you expect her to leave Philadelphia?”
“Not if she settles down and behaves herself: but there must be an end
of this between you and her. She’s disgracin’ her family and ruinin’
her soul in the bargain. And that’s what you are doin’ with yours.
It’ll be time enough to talk about anything else when you’re a free
man. More than that I’ll not promise.”
Cowperwood, satisfied that this move on Aileen’s part had done her a
real service if it had not aided him especially, was convinced that it
would be a good move for her to return to her home at once. He could
not tell how his appeal to the State Supreme Court would eventuate. His
motion for a new trial which was now to be made under the privilege of
the certificate of reasonable doubt might not be granted, in which case
he would have to serve a term in the penitentiary. If he were compelled
to go to the penitentiary she would be safer—better off in the bosom of
her family. His own hands were going to be exceedingly full for the
next two months until he knew how his appeal was coming out. And after
that—well, after that he would fight on, whatever happened.
During all the time that Cowperwood had been arguing his case in this
fashion he had been thinking how he could adjust this compromise so as
to retain the affection of Aileen and not offend her sensibilities by
urging her to return. He knew that she would not agree to give up
seeing him, and he was not willing that she should. Unless he had a
good and sufficient reason, he would be playing a wretched part by
telling Butler where she was. He did not intend to do so until he saw
exactly how to do it—the way that would make it most acceptable to
Aileen. He knew that she would not long be happy where she was. Her
flight was due in part to Butler’s intense opposition to himself and in
part to his determination to make her leave Philadelphia and behave;
but this last was now in part obviated. Butler, in spite of his words,
was no longer a stern Nemesis. He was a melting man—very anxious to
find his daughter, very willing to forgive her. He was whipped,
literally beaten, at his own game, and Cowperwood could see it in the
old man’s eyes. If he himself could talk to Aileen personally and
explain just how things were, he felt sure he could make her see that
it would be to their mutual advantage, for the present at least, to
have the matter amicably settled. The thing to do was to make Butler
wait somewhere—here, possibly—while he went and talked to her. When she
learned how things were she would probably acquiesce.
“The best thing that I can do under the circumstances,” he said, after
a time, “would be to see Aileen in two or three days, and ask her what
she wishes to do. I can explain the matter to her, and if she wants to
go back, she can. I will promise to tell her anything that you say.”
“Very well,” grunted Butler, who was now walking up and down with his
hands behind his back. “But for Heaven’s sake be quick about it.
There’s no time to lose.” He was thinking of Mrs. Butler. Cowperwood
called the servant, ordered his runabout, and told George to see that
his private office was not disturbed. Then, as Butler strolled to and
fro in this, to him, objectionable room, Cowperwood drove rapidly away.
Chapter XLVII
“Miss Butler is here, I believe,” he said. “Will you tell her that
there is some one here from her father?” Although Aileen had instructed
that her presence here was not to be divulged even to the members of
her family the force of Cowperwood’s presence and the mention of
Butler’s name cost Mrs. Calligan her presence of mind. “Wait a moment,”
she said; “I’ll see.”
She stepped back, and Cowperwood promptly stepped in, taking off his
hat with the air of one who was satisfied that Aileen was there. “Say
to her that I only want to speak to her for a few moments,” he called,
as Mrs. Calligan went up-stairs, raising his voice in the hope that
Aileen might hear. She did, and came down promptly. She was very much
astonished to think that he should come so soon, and fancied, in her
vanity, that there must be great excitement in her home. She would have
greatly grieved if there had not been.
The Calligans would have been pleased to hear, but Cowperwood was
cautious. As she came down the stairs he put his finger to his lips in
sign for silence, and said, “This is Miss Butler, I believe.”
“Yes,” replied Aileen, with a secret smile. Her one desire was to kiss
him. “What’s the trouble darling?” she asked, softly.
Cowperwood called his servant to take charge of the vehicle, and Butler
stalked solemnly out.
“Ye might have talked with me once more, Aileen,” he said, “before ye
left. Yer mother would be in a terrible state if she knew ye were gone.
She doesn’t know yet. Ye’ll have to say ye stayed somewhere to dinner.”
“It’s a sore heart I have, Aileen. I hope ye’ll think over your ways
and do better. I’ll not say anythin’ more now.”
Aileen returned to her room, decidedly triumphant in her mood for the
moment, and things went on apparently in the Butler household as
before. But those who imagine that this defeat permanently altered the
attitude of Butler toward Cowperwood are mistaken.
In the meanwhile between the day of his temporary release and the
hearing of his appeal which was two months off, Cowperwood was going on
doing his best to repair his shattered forces. He took up his work
where he left off; but the possibility of reorganizing his business was
distinctly modified since his conviction. Because of his action in
trying to protect his largest creditors at the time of his failure, he
fancied that once he was free again, if ever he got free, his credit,
other things being equal, would be good with those who could help him
most—say, Cooke & Co., Clark & Co., Drexel & Co., and the Girard
National Bank—providing his personal reputation had not been too badly
injured by his sentence. Fortunately for his own hopefulness of mind,
he failed fully to realize what a depressing effect a legal decision of
this character, sound or otherwise, had on the minds of even his most
enthusiastic supporters.
His best friends in the financial world were by now convinced that his
was a sinking ship. A student of finance once observed that nothing is
so sensitive as money, and the financial mind partakes largely of the
quality of the thing in which it deals. There was no use trying to do
much for a man who might be going to prison for a term of years.
Something might be done for him possibly in connection with the
governor, providing he lost his case before the Supreme Court and was
actually sentenced to prison; but that was two months off, or more, and
they could not tell what the outcome of that would be. So Cowperwood’s
repeated appeals for assistance, extension of credit, or the acceptance
of some plan he had for his general rehabilitation, were met with the
kindly evasions of those who were doubtful. They would think it over.
They would see about it. Certain things were standing in the way. And
so on, and so forth, through all the endless excuses of those who do
not care to act. In these days he went about the money world in his
customary jaunty way, greeting all those whom he had known there many
years and pretending, when asked, to be very hopeful, to be doing very
well; but they did not believe him, and he really did not care whether
they did or not. His business was to persuade or over-persuade any one
who could really be of assistance to him, and at this task he worked
untiringly, ignoring all others.
“Why, hello, Frank,” his friends would call, on seeing him. “How are
you getting on?”
One of the things militating against him was the continued opposition
of Butler and the politicians. Somehow—no one could have said exactly
why—the general political feeling was that the financier and the former
city treasurer would lose their appeals and eventually be sentenced
together. Stener, in spite of his original intention to plead guilty
and take his punishment without comment, had been persuaded by some of
his political friends that it would be better for his future’s sake to
plead not guilty and claim that his offense had been due to custom,
rather than to admit his guilt outright and so seem not to have had any
justification whatsoever. This he did, but he was convicted
nevertheless. For the sake of appearances, a trumped-up appeal was made
which was now before the State Supreme Court.
Then, too, due to one whisper and another, and these originating with
the girl who had written Butler and Cowperwood’s wife, there was at
this time a growing volume of gossip relating to the alleged relations
of Cowperwood with Butler’s daughter, Aileen. There had been a house in
Tenth Street. It had been maintained by Cowperwood for her. No wonder
Butler was so vindictive. This, indeed, explained much. And even in the
practical, financial world, criticism was now rather against Cowperwood
than his enemies. For, was it not a fact, that at the inception of his
career, he had been befriended by Butler? And what a way to reward that
friendship! His oldest and firmest admirers wagged their heads. For
they sensed clearly that this was another illustration of that innate
“I satisfy myself” attitude which so regulated Cowperwood’s conduct. He
was a strong man, surely—and a brilliant one. Never had Third Street
seen a more pyrotechnic, and yet fascinating and financially
aggressive, and at the same time, conservative person. Yet might one
not fairly tempt Nemesis by a too great daring and egotism? Like Death,
it loves a shining mark. He should not, perhaps, have seduced Butler’s
daughter; unquestionably he should not have so boldly taken that check,
especially after his quarrel and break with Stener. He was a little too
aggressive. Was it not questionable whether—with such a record—he could
be restored to his former place here? The bankers and business men who
were closest to him were decidedly dubious.
But in so far as Cowperwood and his own attitude toward life was
concerned, at this time—the feeling he had—“to satisfy myself”—when
combined with his love of beauty and love and women, still made him
ruthless and thoughtless. Even now, the beauty and delight of a girl
like Aileen Butler were far more important to him than the good-will of
fifty million people, if he could evade the necessity of having their
good-will. Previous to the Chicago fire and the panic, his star had
been so rapidly ascending that in the helter-skelter of great and
favorable events he had scarcely taken thought of the social
significance of the thing he was doing. Youth and the joy of life were
in his blood. He felt so young, so vigorous, so like new grass looks
and feels. The freshness of spring evenings was in him, and he did not
care. After the crash, when one might have imagined he would have seen
the wisdom of relinquishing Aileen for the time being, anyhow, he did
not care to. She represented the best of the wonderful days that had
gone before. She was a link between him and the past and a still-to-be
triumphant future.
Finally he hit upon a man who he thought would do. He did not amount to
much—had a small business; but he was honest, and he liked Cowperwood.
His name was Wingate—Stephen Wingate—and he was eking out a not too
robust existence in South Third Street as a broker. He was forty-five
years of age, of medium height, fairly thick-set, not at all
unprepossessing, and rather intelligent and active, but not too
forceful and pushing in spirit. He really needed a man like Cowperwood
to make him into something, if ever he was to be made. He had a seat on
’change, and was well thought of; respected, but not so very
prosperous. In times past he had asked small favors of Cowperwood—the
use of small loans at a moderate rate of interest, tips, and so forth;
and Cowperwood, because he liked him and felt a little sorry for him,
had granted them. Now Wingate was slowly drifting down toward a none
too successful old age, and was as tractable as such a man would
naturally be. No one for the time being would suspect him of being a
hireling of Cowperwood’s, and the latter could depend on him to execute
his orders to the letter. He sent for him and had a long conversation
with him. He told him just what the situation was, what he thought he
could do for him as a partner, how much of his business he would want
for himself, and so on, and found him agreeable.
Chapter XLVIII
By the time the State Supreme Court came to pass upon Cowperwood’s plea
for a reversal of the lower court and the granting of a new trial, the
rumor of his connection with Aileen had spread far and wide. As has
been seen, it had done and was still doing him much damage. It
confirmed the impression, which the politicians had originally tried to
create, that Cowperwood was the true criminal and Stener the victim.
His semi-legitimate financial subtlety, backed indeed by his financial
genius, but certainly on this account not worse than that being
practiced in peace and quiet and with much applause in many other
quarters—was now seen to be Machiavellian trickery of the most
dangerous type. He had a wife and two children; and without knowing
what his real thoughts had been the fruitfully imaginative public
jumped to the conclusion that he had been on the verge of deserting
them, divorcing Lillian, and marrying Aileen. This was criminal enough
in itself, from the conservative point of view; but when taken in
connection with his financial record, his trial, conviction, and
general bankruptcy situation, the public was inclined to believe that
he was all the politicians said he was. He ought to be convicted. The
Supreme Court ought not to grant his prayer for a new trial. It is thus
that our inmost thoughts and intentions burst at times via no known
material agency into public thoughts. People know, when they cannot
apparently possibly know why they know. There is such a thing as
thought-transference and transcendentalism of ideas.
It reached, for one thing, the ears of the five judges of the State
Supreme Court and of the Governor of the State.
“The defendant, Frank A. Cowperwood, asks that the finding of the jury
in the lower court (the State of Pennsylvania vs. Frank A. Cowperwood)
be reversed and a new trial granted. This court cannot see that any
substantial injustice has been done the defendant. [Here followed a
rather lengthy resume of the history of the case, in which it was
pointed out that the custom and precedent of the treasurer’s office, to
say nothing of Cowperwood’s easy method of doing business with the city
treasury, could have nothing to do with his responsibility for failure
to observe both the spirit and the letter of the law.] The obtaining of
goods under color of legal process [went on Judge Smithson, speaking
for the majority] may amount to larceny. In the present case it was the
province of the jury to ascertain the felonious intent. They have
settled that against the defendant as a question of fact, and the court
cannot say that there was not sufficient evidence to sustain the
verdict. For what purpose did the defendant get the check? He was upon
the eve of failure. He had already hypothecated for his own debts the
loan of the city placed in his hands for sale—he had unlawfully
obtained five hundred thousand dollars in cash as loans; and it is
reasonable to suppose that he could obtain nothing more from the city
treasury by any ordinary means. Then it is that he goes there, and, by
means of a falsehood implied if not actual, obtains sixty thousand
dollars more. The jury has found the intent with which this was done.”
It was in these words that Cowperwood’s appeal for a new trial was
denied by the majority.
“It is plain from the evidence in the case that Mr. Cowperwood did not
receive the check without authority as agent to do so, and it has not
been clearly demonstrated that within his capacity as agent he did not
perform or intend to perform the full measure of the obligation which
the receipt of this check implied. It was shown in the trial that as a
matter of policy it was understood that purchases for the sinking-fund
should not be known or understood in the market or by the public in
that light, and that Mr. Cowperwood as agent was to have an absolutely
free hand in the disposal of his assets and liabilities so long as the
ultimate result was satisfactory. There was no particular time when the
loan was to be bought, nor was there any particular amount mentioned at
any time to be purchased. Unless the defendant intended at the time he
received the check fraudulently to appropriate it he could not be
convicted even on the first count. The verdict of the jury does not
establish this fact; the evidence does not show conclusively that it
could be established; and the same jury, upon three other counts, found
the defendant guilty without the semblance of shadow of evidence. How
can we say that their conclusions upon the first count are unerring
when they so palpably erred on the other counts? It is the opinion of
the minority that the verdict of the jury in charging larceny on the
first count is not valid, and that that verdict should be set aside and
a new trial granted.”
He set his teeth and his gray eyes fairly snapped their determination.
“It depends on how you’d like to have it, Frank. I could get a stay of
sentence for a week maybe, or ten days, if it will do you any good.
Shannon won’t make any objection to that, I’m sure. There’s only one
hitch. Jaspers will be around here tomorrow looking for you. It’s his
duty to take you into custody again, once he’s notified that your
appeal has been denied. He’ll be wanting to lock you up unless you pay
him, but we can fix that. If you do want to wait, and want any time
off, I suppose he’ll arrange to let you out with a deputy; but I’m
afraid you’ll have to stay there nights. They’re pretty strict about
that since that Albertson case of a few years ago.”
Steger referred to the case of a noted bank cashier who, being let out
of the county jail at night in the alleged custody of a deputy, was
permitted to escape. There had been emphatic and severe condemnation of
the sheriff’s office at the time, and since then, repute or no repute,
money or no money, convicted criminals were supposed to stay in the
county jail at night at least.
“I don’t know, Frank, I’m sure; I’ll see. I’ll go around and talk to
him to-night. Perhaps a hundred dollars will make him relax the rigor
of his rules that much.”
Steger arose also. “I’ll see both these people, and then I’ll call
around at your house. You’ll be in, will you, after dinner?”
“Yes.”
They slipped on their overcoats and went out into the cold February
day, Cowperwood back to his Third Street office, Steger to see Shannon
and Jaspers.
Chapter XLIX
Steger next visited the county jail, close on to five o’clock, when it
was already dark. Sheriff Jaspers came lolling out from his private
library, where he had been engaged upon the work of cleaning his pipe.
“How are you, Mr. Steger?” he observed, smiling blandly. “How are you?
Glad to see you. Won’t you sit down? I suppose you’re round here again
on that Cowperwood matter. I just received word from the district
attorney that he had lost his case.”
“It’s ag’in’ the law, Mr. Steger, as you know,” he began, cautiously
and complainingly. “I’d like to accommodate him, everything else being
equal, but since that Albertson case three years ago we’ve had to run
this office much more careful, and—”
“It’s a very ticklish business, this, Mr. Steger,” put in the sheriff,
yieldingly, and yet with a slight whimper in his voice. “If anything
were to happen, it would cost me my place all right. I don’t like to do
it under any circumstances, and I wouldn’t, only I happen to know both
Mr. Cowperwood and Mr. Stener, and I like ’em both. I don’ think they
got their rights in this matter, either. I don’t mind making an
exception in this case if Mr. Cowperwood don’t go about too publicly. I
wouldn’t want any of the men in the district attorney’s office to know
this. I don’t suppose he’ll mind if I keep a deputy somewhere near all
the time for looks’ sake. I have to, you know, really, under the law.
He won’t bother him any. Just keep on guard like.” Jaspers looked at
Mr. Steger very flatly and wisely—almost placatingly under the
circumstances—and Steger nodded.
“Quite right, Sheriff, quite right. You’re quite right,” and he drew
out his purse while the sheriff led the way very cautiously back into
his library.
“I’d like to show you the line of law-books I’m fixing up for myself in
here, Mr. Steger,” he observed, genially, but meanwhile closing his
fingers gently on the small roll of ten-dollar bills Steger was handing
him. “We have occasional use for books of that kind here, as you see. I
thought it a good sort of thing to have them around.” He waved one arm
comprehensively at the line of State reports, revised statutes, prison
regulations, etc., the while he put the money in his pocket and Steger
pretended to look.
“A good idea, I think, Sheriff. Very good, indeed. So you think if Mr.
Cowperwood gets around here very early Monday morning, say eight or
eight-thirty, that it will be all right?”
You would not have thought, seeing Cowperwood mount the front steps of
his handsome residence in his neat gray suit and well-cut overcoat on
his return from his office that evening, that he was thinking that this
might be his last night here. His air and walk indicated no weakening
of spirit. He entered the hall, where an early lamp was aglow, and
encountered “Wash” Sims, an old negro factotum, who was just coming up
from the basement, carrying a bucket of coal for one of the fireplaces.
“Mahty cold out, dis evenin’, Mistah Coppahwood,” said Wash, to whom
anything less than sixty degrees was very cold. His one regret was that
Philadelphia was not located in North Carolina, from whence he came.
Cowperwood ascended the stairs, thinking curiously that Wash would soon
be out of a job now, unless Mrs. Cowperwood, out of all the wreck of
other things, chose to retain him, which was not likely. He entered the
sitting-room, and there sat his wife by the oblong center-table, sewing
a hook and eye on one of Lillian, second’s, petticoats. She looked up,
at his step, with the peculiarly uncertain smile she used these
days—indication of her pain, fear, suspicion—and inquired, “Well, what
is new with you, Frank?” Her smile was something like a hat or belt or
ornament which one puts on or off at will.
He did not care to say squarely that he had lost. He knew that she was
sufficiently distressed as it was, and he did not care to be too abrupt
just now.
“You don’t say!” replied Lillian, with surprise and fright in her
voice, and getting up.
She had been so used to a world where prisons were scarcely thought of,
where things went on smoothly from day to day without any noticeable
intrusion of such distressing things as courts, jails, and the like,
that these last few months had driven her nearly mad. Cowperwood had so
definitely insisted on her keeping in the background—he had told her so
very little that she was all at sea anyhow in regard to the whole
procedure. Nearly all that she had had in the way of intelligence had
been from his father and mother and Anna, and from a close and almost
secret scrutiny of the newspapers.
At the time he had gone to the county jail she did not even know
anything about it until his father had come back from the court-room
and the jail and had broken the news to her. It had been a terrific
blow to her. Now to have this thing suddenly broken to her in this
offhand way, even though she had been expecting and dreading it hourly,
was too much.
“It looks that way, Lillian,” he said, with the first note of real
sympathy he had used in a long while, for he felt sorry for her now. At
the same time he was afraid to go any further along that line, for fear
it might give her a false sense as to his present attitude toward her
which was one essentially of indifference. But she was not so dull but
what she could see that the consideration in his voice had been brought
about by his defeat, which meant hers also. She choked a little—and
even so was touched. The bare suggestion of sympathy brought back the
old days so definitely gone forever. If only they could be brought
back!
“I don’t want you to feel distressed about me, though,” he went on,
before she could say anything to him. “I’m not through with my
fighting. I’ll get out of this. I have to go to prison, it seems, in
order to get things straightened out properly. What I would like you to
do is to keep up a cheerful appearance in front of the rest of the
family—father and mother particularly. They need to be cheered up.” He
thought once of taking her hand, then decided not. She noted mentally
his hesitation, the great difference between his attitude now and that
of ten or twelve years before. It did not hurt her now as much as she
once would have thought. She looked at him, scarcely knowing what to
say. There was really not so much to say.
“Is there anything I can get for you?” she asked, starting forward as
if out of a dream. “Do you want me to do anything? Don’t you think
perhaps you had better leave Philadelphia, Frank? You needn’t go to
prison unless you want to.”
She was a little beside herself, for the first time in her life shocked
out of a deadly calm.
He paused and looked at her for a moment in his direct, examining way,
his hard commercial business judgment restored on the instant.
His wife saw she had made a mistake. It clarified her judgment on the
instant. “I didn’t mean in that way, Frank,” she replied,
apologetically. “You know I didn’t. Of course I know you’re not guilty.
Why should I think you were, of all people?”
She paused, expecting some retort, some further argument—a kind word
maybe. A trace of the older, baffling love, but he had quietly turned
to his desk and was thinking of other things.
At this point the anomaly of her own state came over her again. It was
all so sad and so hopeless. And what was she to do in the future? And
what was he likely to do? She paused half trembling and yet decided,
because of her peculiarly nonresisting nature—why trespass on his time?
Why bother? No good would really come of it. He really did not care for
her any more—that was it. Nothing could make him, nothing could bring
them together again, not even this tragedy. He was interested in
another woman—Aileen—and so her foolish thoughts and explanations, her
fear, sorrow, distress, were not important to him. He could take her
agonized wish for his freedom as a comment on his probable guilt, a
doubt of his innocence, a criticism of him! She turned away for a
minute, and he started to leave the room.
“Oh, Frank!” she had it on her lips to cry, but before she could utter
it he had bustled down the steps and was gone. She turned back to the
table, her left hand to her mouth, her eyes in a queer, hazy,
melancholy mist. Could it be, she thought, that life could really come
to this—that love could so utterly, so thoroughly die? Ten years
before—but, oh, why go back to that? Obviously it could, and thoughts
concerning that would not help now. Twice now in her life her affairs
had seemed to go to pieces—once when her first husband had died, and
now when her second had failed her, had fallen in love with another and
was going to be sent off to prison. What was it about her that caused
such things? Was there anything wrong with her? What was she going to
do? Where go? She had no idea, of course, for how long a term of years
he would be sent away. It might be one year or it might be five years,
as the papers had said. Good heavens! The children could almost come to
forget him in five years. She put her other hand to her mouth, also,
and then to her forehead, where there was a dull ache. She tried to
think further than this, but somehow, just now, there was no further
thought. Suddenly quite outside of her own volition, with no thought
that she was going to do such a thing, her bosom began to heave, her
throat contracted in four or five short, sharp, aching spasms, her eyes
burned, and she shook in a vigorous, anguished, desperate, almost one
might have said dry-eyed, cry, so hot and few were the tears. She could
not stop for the moment, just stood there and shook, and then after a
while a dull ache succeeded, and she was quite as she had been before.
“Why cry?” she suddenly asked herself, fiercely—for her. “Why break
down in this stormy, useless way? Would it help?”
Chapter L
The arrival of Steger with the information that no move of any kind
would be made by the sheriff until Monday morning, when Cowperwood
could present himself, eased matters. This gave him time to think—to
adjust home details at his leisure. He broke the news to his father and
mother in a consoling way and talked with his brothers and father about
getting matters immediately adjusted in connection with the smaller
houses to which they were now shortly to be compelled to move. There
was much conferring among the different members of this collapsing
organization in regard to the minor details; and what with his
conferences with Steger, his seeing personally Davison, Leigh, Avery
Stone, of Jay Cooke & Co., George Waterman (his old-time employer Henry
was dead), ex-State Treasurer Van Nostrand, who had gone out with the
last State administration, and others, he was very busy. Now that he
was really going into prison, he wanted his financial friends to get
together and see if they could get him out by appealing to the
Governor. The division of opinion among the judges of the State Supreme
Court was his excuse and strong point. He wanted Steger to follow this
up, and he spared no pains in trying to see all and sundry who might be
of use to him—Edward Tighe, of Tighe & Co., who was still in business
in Third Street; Newton Targool; Arthur Rivers; Joseph Zimmerman, the
dry-goods prince, now a millionaire; Judge Kitchen; Terrence Relihan,
the former representative of the money element at Harrisburg; and many
others.
And, afterwards there was really nothing else to do, unless it was to
see Aileen once more, and this, in the midst of his other complications
and obligations, seemed all but impossible at times—and yet he did
achieve that, too—so eager was he to be soothed and comforted by the
ignorant and yet all embracing volume of her love. Her eyes these days!
The eager, burning quest of him and his happiness that blazed in them.
To think that he should be tortured so—her Frank! Oh, she knew—whatever
he said, and however bravely and jauntily he talked. To think that her
love for him should have been the principal cause of his being sent to
jail, as she now believed. And the cruelty of her father! And the
smallness of his enemies—that fool Stener, for instance, whose pictures
she had seen in the papers. Actually, whenever in the presence of her
Frank, she fairly seethed in a chemic agony for him—her strong,
handsome lover—the strongest, bravest, wisest, kindest, handsomest man
in the world. Oh, didn’t she know! And Cowperwood, looking in her eyes
and realizing this reasonless, if so comforting fever for him, smiled
and was touched. Such love! That of a dog for a master; that of a
mother for a child. And how had he come to evoke it? He could not say,
but it was beautiful.
And so, now, in these last trying hours, he wished to see her much—and
did—meeting her at least four times in the month in which he had been
free, between his conviction and the final dismissal of his appeal. He
had one last opportunity of seeing her—and she him—just before his
entrance into prison this last time—on the Saturday before the Monday
of his sentence. He had not come in contact with her since the decision
of the Supreme Court had been rendered, but he had had a letter from
her sent to a private mail-box, and had made an appointment for
Saturday at a small hotel in Camden, which, being across the river, was
safer, in his judgment, than anything in Philadelphia. He was a little
uncertain as to how she would take the possibility of not seeing him
soon again after Monday, and how she would act generally once he was
where she could not confer with him as often as she chose. And in
consequence, he was anxious to talk to her. But on this occasion, as he
anticipated, and even feared, so sorry for her was he, she was not less
emphatic in her protestations than she had ever been; in fact, much
more so. When she saw him approaching in the distance, she went forward
to meet him in that direct, forceful way which only she could attempt
with him, a sort of mannish impetuosity which he both enjoyed and
admired, and slipping her arms around his neck, said: “Honey, you
needn’t tell me. I saw it in the papers the other morning. Don’t you
mind, honey. I love you. I’ll wait for you. I’ll be with you yet, if it
takes a dozen years of waiting. It doesn’t make any difference to me if
it takes a hundred, only I’m so sorry for you, sweetheart. I’ll be with
you every day through this, darling, loving you with all my might.”
She caressed him while he looked at her in that quiet way which
betokened at once his self-poise and yet his interest and satisfaction
in her. He couldn’t help loving Aileen, he thought who could? She was
so passionate, vibrant, desireful. He couldn’t help admiring her
tremendously, now more than ever, because literally, in spite of all
his intellectual strength, he really could not rule her. She went at
him, even when he stood off in a calm, critical way, as if he were her
special property, her toy. She would talk to him always, and
particularly when she was excited, as if he were just a baby, her pet;
and sometimes he felt as though she would really overcome him mentally,
make him subservient to her, she was so individual, so sure of her
importance as a woman.
“Oh, yes, it is, too, honey. I know. Oh, my poor Frank! But I’ll see
you. I know how to manage, whatever happens. How often do they let
visitors come out to see the prisoners there?”
“Only once in three months, pet, so they say, but I think we can fix
that after I get there; only do you think you had better try to come
right away, Aileen? You know what the feeling now is. Hadn’t you better
wait a while? Aren’t you in danger of stirring up your father? He might
cause a lot of trouble out there if he were so minded.”
“But you’re not your father, honey; and you don’t want him to know.”
“I know I don’t, but they don’t need to know who I am. I can go heavily
veiled. I don’t think that the warden knows my father. He may. Anyhow,
he doesn’t know me; and he wouldn’t tell on me if he did if I talked to
him.”
“Honey, you’re about the best and the worst there is when it comes to a
woman,” he observed, affectionately, pulling her head down to kiss her,
“but you’ll have to listen to me just the same. I have a lawyer,
Steger—you know him. He’s going to take up this matter with the warden
out there—is doing it today. He may be able to fix things, and he may
not. I’ll know to-morrow or Sunday, and I’ll write you. But don’t go
and do anything rash until you hear. I’m sure I can cut that visiting
limit in half, and perhaps down to once a month or once in two weeks
even. They only allow me to write one letter in three months”—Aileen
exploded again—“and I’m sure I can have that made different—some; but
don’t write me until you hear, or at least don’t sign any name or put
any address in. They open all mail and read it. If you see me or write
me you’ll have to be cautious, and you’re not the most cautious person
in the world. Now be good, will you?”
They talked much more—of his family, his court appearance Monday,
whether he would get out soon to attend any of the suits still pending,
or be pardoned. Aileen still believed in his future. She had read the
opinions of the dissenting judges in his favor, and that of the three
agreed judges against him. She was sure his day was not over in
Philadelphia, and that he would some time reestablish himself and then
take her with him somewhere else. She was sorry for Mrs. Cowperwood,
but she was convinced that she was not suited to him—that Frank needed
some one more like herself, some one with youth and beauty and
force—her, no less. She clung to him now in ecstatic embraces until it
was time to go. So far as a plan of procedure could have been adjusted
in a situation so incapable of accurate adjustment, it had been done.
She was desperately downcast at the last moment, as was he, over their
parting; but she pulled herself together with her usual force and faced
the dark future with a steady eye.
Chapter LI
Monday came and with it his final departure. All that could be done had
been done. Cowperwood said his farewells to his mother and father, his
brothers and sister. He had a rather distant but sensible and
matter-of-fact talk with his wife. He made no special point of saying
good-by to his son or his daughter; when he came in on Thursday,
Friday, Saturday, and Sunday evenings, after he had learned that he was
to depart Monday, it was with the thought of talking to them a little
in an especially affectionate way. He realized that his general moral
or unmoral attitude was perhaps working them a temporary injustice.
Still he was not sure. Most people did fairly well with their lives,
whether coddled or deprived of opportunity. These children would
probably do as well as most children, whatever happened—and then,
anyhow, he had no intention of forsaking them financially, if he could
help it. He did not want to separate his wife from her children, nor
them from her. She should keep them. He wanted them to be comfortable
with her. He would like to see them, wherever they were with her,
occasionally. Only he wanted his own personal freedom, in so far as she
and they were concerned, to go off and set up a new world and a new
home with Aileen. So now on these last days, and particularly this last
Sunday night, he was rather noticeably considerate of his boy and girl,
without being too openly indicative of his approaching separation from
them.
They were in the senior Cowperwood’s sitting-room, where they had all
rather consciously gathered on this occasion.
Lillian, second, who was on the other side of the big library table
from her father, paused to survey him and her brother with interest.
Both had been carefully guarded against any real knowledge of their
father’s affairs or his present predicament. He was going away on a
journey for about a month or so they understood. Lillian was reading in
a Chatterbox book which had been given her the previous Christmas.
“Aw, who wants to run races with you, anyhow?” returned Frank, junior,
sourly. “You couldn’t run if I did want to run with you.”
Cowperwood smiled, and laid his hand affectionately on his son’s head.
“You’ll be all right, Frank,” he volunteered, pinching his ear lightly.
“Don’t worry—just make an effort.”
The boy did not respond as warmly as he hoped. Later in the evening
Mrs. Cowperwood noticed that her husband squeezed his daughter’s slim
little waist and pulled her curly hair gently. For the moment she was
jealous of her daughter.
“Going to be the best kind of a girl while I’m away?” he said to her,
privately.
“That’s right,” he returned, and leaned over and kissed her mouth
tenderly. “Button Eyes,” he said.
Mrs. Cowperwood sighed after he had gone. “Everything for the children,
nothing for me,” she thought, though the children had not got so vastly
much either in the past.
Cowperwood’s attitude toward his mother in this final hour was about as
tender and sympathetic as any he could maintain in this world. He
understood quite clearly the ramifications of her interests, and how
she was suffering for him and all the others concerned. He had not
forgotten her sympathetic care of him in his youth; and if he could
have done anything to have spared her this unhappy breakdown of her
fortunes in her old age, he would have done so. There was no use crying
over spilled milk. It was impossible at times for him not to feel
intensely in moments of success or failure; but the proper thing to do
was to bear up, not to show it, to talk little and go your way with an
air not so much of resignation as of self-sufficiency, to whatever was
awaiting you. That was his attitude on this morning, and that was what
he expected from those around him—almost compelled, in fact, by his own
attitude.
“Well, mother,” he said, genially, at the last moment—he would not let
her nor his wife nor his sister come to court, maintaining that it
would make not the least difference to him and would only harrow their
own feelings uselessly—“I’m going now. Don’t worry. Keep up your
spirits.”
He slipped his arm around his mother’s waist, and she gave him a long,
unrestrained, despairing embrace and kiss.
“Go on, Frank,” she said, choking, when she let him go. “God bless you.
I’ll pray for you.” He paid no further attention to her. He didn’t
dare.
To his sister he said: “Good-by, Anna. Don’t let the others get too
down-hearted.”
“I’ll see you three afterward,” he said to his father and brothers; and
so, dressed in the very best fashion of the time, he hurried down into
the reception-hall, where Steger was waiting, and was off. His family,
hearing the door close on him, suffered a poignant sense of desolation.
They stood there for a moment, his mother crying, his father looking as
though he had lost his last friend but making a great effort to seem
self-contained and equal to his troubles, Anna telling Lillian not to
mind, and the latter staring dumbly into the future, not knowing what
to think. Surely a brilliant sun had set on their local scene, and in a
very pathetic way.
Chapter LII
When Cowperwood reached the jail, Jaspers was there, glad to see him
but principally relieved to feel that nothing had happened to mar his
own reputation as a sheriff. Because of the urgency of court matters
generally, it was decided to depart for the courtroom at nine o’clock.
Eddie Zanders was once more delegated to see that Cowperwood was
brought safely before Judge Payderson and afterward taken to the
penitentiary. All of the papers in the case were put in his care to be
delivered to the warden.
“I didn’t suppose from what I’ve heard that Mr. Cowperwood would want
to meet Stener here, so I’ve kept ’em apart. George just left a minute
ago with another deputy.”
“That’s good. That’s the way it ought to be,” replied Steger. He was
glad for Cowperwood’s sake that the sheriff had so much tact. Evidently
George and the sheriff were getting along in a very friendly way, for
all the former’s bitter troubles and lack of means.
The Cowperwood party walked, the distance not being great, and as they
did so they talked of rather simple things to avoid the more serious.
Cowperwood, the elder, had heard this over and over, but he was never
tired of hearing it. It was like some simple croon with which babies
are hushed to sleep. The snow on the ground, which was enduring
remarkably well for this time of year, the fineness of the day, which
had started out to be clear and bright, the hope that the courtroom
might not be full, all held the attention of the father and his two
sons. Cowperwood, senior, even commented on some sparrows fighting over
a piece of bread, marveling how well they did in winter, solely to ease
his mind. Cowperwood, walking on ahead with Steger and Zanders, talked
of approaching court proceedings in connection with his business and
what ought to be done.
When they reached the court the same little pen in which Cowperwood had
awaited the verdict of his jury several months before was waiting to
receive him.
Cowperwood, senior, and his other sons sought places in the courtroom
proper. Eddie Zanders remained with his charge. Stener and a deputy by
the name of Wilkerson were in the room; but he and Cowperwood pretended
now not to see each other. Frank had no objection to talking to his
former associate, but he could see that Stener was diffident and
ashamed. So he let the situation pass without look or word of any kind.
After some three-quarters of an hour of dreary waiting the door leading
into the courtroom proper opened and a bailiff stepped in.
There were six, all told, including Cowperwood and Stener. Two of them
were confederate housebreakers who had been caught red-handed at their
midnight task.
“How is it this man comes before me?” asked Payderson, peevishly, when
he noted the value of the property Ackerman was supposed to have
stolen.
“Well, Ackerman,” inquired his honor, severely, “did you or did you not
steal this piece of lead pipe as charged here—four dollars and eighty
cents’ worth?”
“Well, don’t you know it’s wrong to do anything like that? Didn’t you
know when you reached through that fence and pulled that pipe over to
you that you were stealing? Didn’t you?”
“Of course you did. Of course you did. That’s just it. You knew you
were stealing, and still you took it. Has the man to whom this negro
sold the lead pipe been apprehended yet?” the judge inquired sharply of
the district attorney. “He should be, for he’s more guilty than this
negro, a receiver of stolen goods.”
“Yes, sir,” replied the assistant. “His case is before Judge Yawger.”
The audience grinned, and his honor made a wry face to prevent his own
grim grin.
“I’m going to let you go only so long as you don’t steal anything
else,” he thundered. “The moment you steal anything else, back you come
to this court, and then you go to the penitentiary for a year and
whatever more time you deserve. Do you understand that? Now, I want you
to walk straight out of this court and behave yourself. Don’t ever
steal anything. Get something to do! Don’t steal, do you hear? Don’t
touch anything that doesn’t belong to you! Don’t come back here! If you
do, I’ll send you to the penitentiary, sure.”
It was that of the two housebreakers whom Cowperwood had been and was
still studying with much curiosity. In all his life before he had never
witnessed a sentencing scene of any kind. He had never been in police
or criminal courts of any kind—rarely in any of the civil ones. He was
glad to see the negro go, and gave Payderson credit for having some
sense and sympathy—more than he had expected.
He wondered now whether by any chance Aileen was here. He had objected
to her coming, but she might have done so. She was, as a matter of
fact, in the extreme rear, pocketed in a crowd near the door, heavily
veiled, but present. She had not been able to resist the desire to know
quickly and surely her beloved’s fate—to be near him in his hour of
real suffering, as she thought. She was greatly angered at seeing him
brought in with a line of ordinary criminals and made to wait in this,
to her, shameful public manner, but she could not help admiring all the
more the dignity and superiority of his presence even here. He was not
even pale, as she saw, just the same firm, calm soul she had always
known him to be. If he could only see her now; if he would only look so
she could lift her veil and smile! He didn’t, though; he wouldn’t. He
didn’t want to see her here. But she would tell him all about it when
she saw him again just the same.
The two burglars were quickly disposed of by the judge, with a sentence
of one year each, and they were led away, uncertain, and apparently not
knowing what to think of their crime or their future.
“Name?” asked the bailiff, for the benefit of the court stenographer.
“Residence?”
“Occupation?”
Steger stood close beside him, very dignified, very forceful, ready to
make a final statement for the benefit of the court and the public when
the time should come. Aileen, from her position in the crowd near the
door, was for the first time in her life biting her fingers nervously
and there were great beads of perspiration on her brow. Cowperwood’s
father was tense with excitement and his two brothers looked quickly
away, doing their best to hide their fear and sorrow.
“If the court pleases, my client, Mr. Cowperwood, the prisoner at the
bar, is neither guilty in his own estimation, nor in that of two-fifths
of the Pennsylvania State Supreme Court—the court of last resort in
this State,” he exclaimed, loudly and clearly, so that all might hear.
One of the interested listeners and spectators at this point was Edward
Malia Butler, who had just stepped in from another courtroom where he
had been talking to a judge. An obsequious court attendant had warned
him that Cowperwood was about to be sentenced. He had really come here
this morning in order not to miss this sentence, but he cloaked his
motive under the guise of another errand. He did not know that Aileen
was there, nor did he see her.
“If your case points no other moral,” he went on, after a moment,
toying with the briefs, “it will at least teach the lesson much needed
at the present time, that the treasury of the city is not to be invaded
and plundered with impunity under the thin disguise of a business
transaction, and that there is still a power in the law to vindicate
itself and to protect the public.
Cowperwood’s father, on hearing this, bowed his head to hide his tears.
Aileen bit her lower lip and clenched her hands to keep down her rage
and disappointment and tears. Four years and three months! That would
make a terrible gap in his life and hers. Still, she could wait. It was
better than eight or ten years, as she had feared it might be. Perhaps
now, once this was really over and he was in prison, the Governor would
pardon him.
The judge now moved to pick up the papers in connection with Stener’s
case, satisfied that he had given the financiers no chance to say he
had not given due heed to their plea in Cowperwood’s behalf and yet
certain that the politicians would be pleased that he had so nearly
given Cowperwood the maximum while appearing to have heeded the pleas
for mercy. Cowperwood saw through the trick at once, but it did not
disturb him. It struck him as rather weak and contemptible. A bailiff
came forward and started to hurry him away.
The name, of George W. Stener had been called by the clerk and
Cowperwood did not quite understand why he was being detained, but he
soon learned. It was that he might hear the opinion of the court in
connection with his copartner in crime. The latter’s record was taken.
Roger O’Mara, the Irish political lawyer who had been his counsel all
through his troubles, stood near him, but had nothing to say beyond
asking the judge to consider Stener’s previously honorable career.
“In my opinion, the public is much to blame for your offense and others
of a similar character. Heretofore, official fraud has been regarded
with too much indifference. What we need is a higher and purer
political morality—a state of public opinion which would make the
improper use of public money a thing to be execrated. It was the lack
of this which made your offense possible. Beyond that I see nothing of
extenuation in your case.” Judge Payderson paused for emphasis. He was
coming to his finest flight, and he wanted it to sink in.
“The people had confided to you the care of their money,” he went on,
solemnly. “It was a high, a sacred trust. You should have guarded the
door of the treasury even as the cherubim protected the Garden of Eden,
and should have turned the flaming sword of impeccable honesty against
every one who approached it improperly. Your position as the
representative of a great community warranted that.
“In view of all the facts in your case the court can do no less than
impose a major penalty. The seventy-fourth section of the Criminal
Procedure Act provides that no convict shall be sentenced by the court
of this commonwealth to either of the penitentiaries thereof, for any
term which shall expire between the fifteenth of November and the
fifteenth day of February of any year, and this provision requires me
to abate three months from the maximum of time which I would affix in
your case—namely, five years. The sentence of the court is, therefore,
that you pay a fine of five thousand dollars to the commonwealth for
the use of the county”—Payderson knew well enough that Stener could
never pay that sum—“and that you undergo imprisonment in the State
Penitentiary for the Eastern District, by separate and solitary
confinement at labor, for the period of four years and nine months, and
that you stand committed until this sentence is complied with.” He laid
down the briefs and rubbed his chin reflectively while both Cowperwood
and Stener were hurried out. Butler was the first to leave after the
sentence—quite satisfied. Seeing that all was over so far as she was
concerned, Aileen stole quickly out; and after her, in a few moments,
Cowperwood’s father and brothers. They were to await him outside and go
with him to the penitentiary. The remaining members of the family were
at home eagerly awaiting intelligence of the morning’s work, and Joseph
Cowperwood was at once despatched to tell them.
The day had now become cloudy, lowery, and it looked as if there might
be snow. Eddie Zanders, who had been given all the papers in the case,
announced that there was no need to return to the county jail. In
consequence the five of them—Zanders, Steger, Cowperwood, his father,
and Edward—got into a street-car which ran to within a few blocks of
the prison. Within half an hour they were at the gates of the Eastern
Penitentiary.
Chapter LIII
The prison proper dated from 1822, and it had grown, wing by wing,
until its present considerable size had been reached. Its population
consisted of individuals of all degrees of intelligence and crime, from
murderers to minor practitioners of larceny. It had what was known as
the “Pennsylvania System” of regulation for its inmates, which was
nothing more nor less than solitary confinement for all concerned—a
life of absolute silence and separate labor in separate cells.
Cowperwood, who had looked up, shocked and disturbed by the man’s
disheveled appearance, had called back, quite without stopping to
think:
“Naw, I can’t.”
“Look out you don’t get locked up yourself sometime, you little runt,”
the man had replied, savagely, only half recovered from his debauch of
the day before.
He had not thought of this particular scene in years, but now suddenly
it came back to him. Here he was on his way to be locked up in this
dull, somber prison, and it was snowing, and he was being cut out of
human affairs as much as it was possible for him to be cut out.
“Well, good-by for the present,” he said, shaking hands. “I’ll be all
right and I’ll get out soon. Wait and see. Tell Lillian not to worry.”
He stepped inside, and the gate clanked solemnly behind him. Zanders
led the way through a dark, somber hall, wide and high-ceiled, to a
farther gate, where a second gateman, trifling with a large key,
unlocked a barred door at his bidding. Once inside the prison yard,
Zanders turned to the left into a small office, presenting his prisoner
before a small, chest-high desk, where stood a prison officer in
uniform of blue. The latter, the receiving overseer of the prison—a
thin, practical, executive-looking person with narrow gray eyes and
light hair, took the paper which the sheriff’s deputy handed him and
read it. This was his authority for receiving Cowperwood. In his turn
he handed Zanders a slip, showing that he had so received the prisoner;
and then Zanders left, receiving gratefully the tip which Cowperwood
pressed in his hand.
“I’m much obliged to you for your courtesy, Mr. Zanders,” he said, then
turned to his new master with the air of a man who is determined to
make a good impression. He was now in the hands of petty officials, he
knew, who could modify or increase his comfort at will. He wanted to
impress this man with his utter willingness to comply and obey—his
sense of respect for his authority—without in any way demeaning
himself. He was depressed but efficient, even here in the clutch of
that eventual machine of the law, the State penitentiary, which he had
been struggling so hard to evade.
The receiving overseer, Roger Kendall, though thin and clerical, was a
rather capable man, as prison officials go—shrewd, not particularly
well educated, not over-intelligent naturally, not over-industrious,
but sufficiently energetic to hold his position. He knew something
about convicts—considerable—for he had been dealing with them for
nearly twenty-six years. His attitude toward them was cold, cynical,
critical.
He did not permit any of them to come into personal contact with him,
but he saw to it that underlings in his presence carried out the
requirements of the law.
“You will have to take off your clothes and take a bath,” said Kendall
to Cowperwood, eyeing him curiously. “I don’t suppose you need one, but
it’s the rule.”
When he started to take off his coat, however, Kendall put up his hand
delayingly and tapped a bell. There now issued from an adjoining room
an assistant, a prison servitor, a weird-looking specimen of the genus
“trusty.” He was a small, dark, lopsided individual, one leg being
slightly shorter, and therefore one shoulder lower, than the other. He
was hollow-chested, squint-eyed, and rather shambling, but spry enough
withal. He was dressed in a thin, poorly made, baggy suit of striped
jeans, the prison stripes of the place, showing a soft roll-collar
shirt underneath, and wearing a large, wide-striped cap, peculiarly
offensive in its size and shape to Cowperwood. He could not help
thinking how uncanny the man’s squint eyes looked under its straight
outstanding visor. The trusty had a silly, sycophantic manner of
raising one hand in salute. He was a professional “second-story man,”
“up” for ten years, but by dint of good behavior he had attained to the
honor of working about this office without the degrading hood customary
for prisoners to wear over the cap. For this he was properly grateful.
He now considered his superior with nervous dog-like eyes, and looked
at Cowperwood with a certain cunning appreciation of his lot and a show
of initial mistrust.
“You will have to take everything you have out of your pockets,”
Kendall now informed Cowperwood. Ordinarily he would have said, “Search
the prisoner.”
“This way,” said the latter, addressing Cowperwood, and preceding him
into an adjoining room, where three closets held three old-fashioned,
iron-bodied, wooden-top bath-tubs, with their attendant shelves for
rough crash towels, yellow soap, and the like, and hooks for clothes.
“Get in there,” said the trusty, whose name was Thomas Kuby, pointing
to one of the tubs.
“That’s right,” replied the attendant, somewhat placated. “What did you
bring?”
“Yuh got off easy,” commented Kuby. “I’m up for ten. A rube judge did
that to me.”
“That’s too bad,” he answered; and the convict realized clearly that
this man was really not one of them, or he would not have said anything
like that. Kuby went to the two hydrants opening into the bath-tub and
turned them on. Cowperwood had been undressing the while, and now stood
naked, but not ashamed, in front of this eighth-rate intelligence.
“Don’t forget to wash your head, too,” said Kuby, and went away.
Cowperwood stood there while the water ran, meditating on his fate. It
was strange how life had dealt with him of late—so severely. Unlike
most men in his position, he was not suffering from a consciousness of
evil. He did not think he was evil. As he saw it, he was merely
unfortunate. To think that he should be actually in this great, silent
penitentiary, a convict, waiting here beside this cheap iron bathtub,
not very sweet or hygienic to contemplate, with this crackbrained
criminal to watch over him!
He stepped into the tub and washed himself briskly with the biting
yellow soap, drying himself on one of the rough, only partially
bleached towels. He looked for his underwear, but there was none. At
this point the attendant looked in again. “Out here,” he said,
inconsiderately.
Cowperwood did so, The former adjusted the weights and scanned the
record carefully.
“Feet level, back to the wall,” urged the attendant. “So. Height, five
feet nine and ten-sixteenths,” he called. The clerk in the corner noted
it. He now produced a tape-measure and began measuring Cowperwood’s
arms, legs, chest, waist, hips, etc. He called out the color of his
eyes, his hair, his mustache, and, looking into his mouth, exclaimed,
“Teeth, all sound.”
After Cowperwood had once more given his address, age, profession,
whether he knew any trade, etc.—which he did not—he was allowed to
return to the bathroom, and put on the clothing which the prison
provided for him—first the rough, prickly underwear, then the cheap
soft roll-collar, white-cotton shirt, then the thick bluish-gray cotton
socks of a quality such as he had never worn in his life, and over
these a pair of indescribable rough-leather clogs, which felt to his
feet as though they were made of wood or iron—oily and heavy. He then
drew on the shapeless, baggy trousers with their telltale stripes, and
over his arms and chest the loose-cut shapeless coat and waistcoat. He
felt and knew of course that he looked very strange, wretched. And as
he stepped out into the overseer’s room again he experienced a peculiar
sense of depression, a gone feeling which before this had not assailed
him and which now he did his best to conceal. This, then, was what
society did to the criminal, he thought to himself. It took him and
tore away from his body and his life the habiliments of his proper
state and left him these. He felt sad and grim, and, try as he would—he
could not help showing it for a moment. It was always his business and
his intention to conceal his real feelings, but now it was not quite
possible. He felt degraded, impossible, in these clothes, and he knew
that he looked it. Nevertheless, he did his best to pull himself
together and look unconcerned, willing, obedient, considerate of those
above him. After all, he said to himself, it was all a play of sorts, a
dream even, if one chose to view it so, a miasma even, from which, in
the course of time and with a little luck one might emerge safely
enough. He hoped so. It could not last. He was only acting a strange,
unfamiliar part on the stage, this stage of life that he knew so well.
Kendall did not waste any time looking at him, however. He merely said
to his assistant, “See if you can find a cap for him,” and the latter,
going to a closet containing numbered shelves, took down a cap—a
high-crowned, straight-visored, shabby, striped affair which Cowperwood
was asked to try on. It fitted well enough, slipping down close over
his ears, and he thought that now his indignities must be about
complete. What could be added? There could be no more of these
disconcerting accoutrements. But he was mistaken. “Now, Kuby, you take
him to Mr. Chapin,” said Kendall.
Kuby understood. He went back into the wash-room and produced what
Cowperwood had heard of but never before seen—a blue-and-white-striped
cotton bag about half the length of an ordinary pillow-case and half
again as wide, which Kuby now unfolded and shook out as he came toward
him. It was a custom. The use of this hood, dating from the earliest
days of the prison, was intended to prevent a sense of location and
direction and thereby obviate any attempt to escape. Thereafter during
all his stay he was not supposed to walk with or talk to or see another
prisoner—not even to converse with his superiors, unless addressed. It
was a grim theory, and yet one definitely enforced here, although as he
was to learn later even this could be modified here.
“You’ll have to put this on,” Kuby said, and opened it in such a way
that it could be put over Cowperwood’s head.
“Never mind,” cautioned the guard, “put your hands down. I’ll get it
over.”
Cowperwood dropped his arms. When it was fully on, it came to about his
chest, giving him little means of seeing anything. He felt very
strange, very humiliated, very downcast. This simple thing of a
blue-and-white striped bag over his head almost cost him his sense of
self-possession. Why could not they have spared him this last
indignity, he thought?
“This way,” said his attendant, and he was led out to where he could
not say.
“If you hold it out in front you can see to walk,” said his guide; and
Cowperwood pulled it out, thus being able to discern his feet and a
portion of the floor below. He was thus conducted—seeing nothing in his
transit—down a short walk, then through a long corridor, then through a
room of uniformed guards, and finally up a narrow flight of iron steps,
leading to the overseer’s office on the second floor of one of the
two-tier blocks. There, he heard the voice of Kuby saying: “Mr. Chapin,
here’s another prisoner for you from Mr. Kendall.”
“You hain’t got far to go now,” the voice said, “and then I’ll take
that bag off,” and Cowperwood felt for some reason a sense of sympathy,
perhaps—as though he would choke. The further steps were not many.
A cell door was reached and unlocked by the inserting of a great iron
key. It was swung open, and the same big hand guided him through. A
moment later the bag was pulled easily from his head, and he saw that
he was in a narrow, whitewashed cell, rather dim, windowless, but
lighted from the top by a small skylight of frosted glass three and one
half feet long by four inches wide. For a night light there was a
tin-bodied lamp swinging from a hook near the middle of one of the side
walls. A rough iron cot, furnished with a straw mattress and two pairs
of dark blue, probably unwashed blankets, stood in one corner. There
was a hydrant and small sink in another. A small shelf occupied the
wall opposite the bed. A plain wooden chair with a homely round back
stood at the foot of the bed, and a fairly serviceable broom was
standing in one corner. There was an iron stool or pot for excreta,
giving, as he could see, into a large drain-pipe which ran along the
inside wall, and which was obviously flushed by buckets of water being
poured into it. Rats and other vermin infested this, and it gave off an
unpleasant odor which filled the cell. The floor was of stone.
Cowperwood’s clear-seeing eyes took it all in at a glance. He noted the
hard cell door, which was barred and cross-barred with great round rods
of steel, and fastened with a thick, highly polished lock. He saw also
that beyond this was a heavy wooden door, which could shut him in even
more completely than the iron one. There was no chance for any clear,
purifying sunlight here. Cleanliness depended entirely on whitewash,
soap and water and sweeping, which in turn depended on the prisoners
themselves.
That worthy, by way of easy introduction, now went over to the bed and
seated himself on it. He pointed to the hard wooden chair, which
Cowperwood drew out and sat on.
“Well, now you’re here, hain’t yuh?” he asked, and answered himself
quite genially, for he was an unlettered man, generously disposed, of
long experience with criminals, and inclined to deal kindly with kindly
temperament and a form of religious belief—Quakerism—had inclined him
to be merciful, and yet his official duties, as Cowperwood later found
out, seemed to have led him to the conclusion that most criminals were
innately bad. Like Kendall, he regarded them as weaklings and
ne’er-do-wells with evil streaks in them, and in the main he was not
mistaken. Yet he could not help being what he was, a fatherly, kindly
old man, having faith in those shibboleths of the weak and
inexperienced mentally—human justice and human decency.
To old Chapin the situation was more or less puzzling. This was the
famous Frank A. Cowperwood whom he had read about, the noted banker and
treasury-looter. He and his co-partner in crime, Stener, were destined
to serve, as he had read, comparatively long terms here. Five hundred
thousand dollars was a large sum of money in those days, much more than
five million would have been forty years later. He was awed by the
thought of what had become of it—how Cowperwood managed to do all the
things the papers had said he had done. He had a little formula of
questions which he usually went through with each new prisoner—asking
him if he was sorry now for the crime he had committed, if he meant to
do better with a new chance, if his father and mother were alive, etc.;
and by the manner in which they answered these questions—simply,
regretfully, defiantly, or otherwise—he judged whether they were being
adequately punished or not. Yet he could not talk to Cowperwood as he
now saw or as he would to the average second-story burglar,
store-looter, pickpocket, and plain cheap thief and swindler. And yet
he scarcely knew how else to talk.
“Well, now,” he went on, “I don’t suppose you ever thought you’d get to
a place like this, did you, Mr. Cowperwood?”
He saw that old Chapin wanted to moralize a little, and he was only too
glad to fall in with his mood. He would soon be alone with no one to
talk to perhaps, and if a sympathetic understanding could be reached
with this man now, so much the better. Any port in a storm; any straw
to a drowning man.
“Well,” continued the old man after a time, after he had made a few
more solemn, owl-like, and yet well-intentioned remarks, “now here’s
your bed, and there’s your chair, and there’s your wash-stand, and
there’s your water-closet. Now keep ’em all clean and use ’em right.”
(You would have thought he was making Cowperwood a present of a
fortune.) “You’re the one’s got to make up your bed every mornin’ and
keep your floor swept and your toilet flushed and your cell clean.
There hain’t anybody here’ll do that for yuh. You want to do all them
things the first thing in the mornin’ when you get up, and afterward
you’ll get sumpin’ to eat, about six-thirty. You’re supposed to get up
at five-thirty.”
“Well, the rules here are that your wife or your friends kin come to
see you once in three months, and your lawyer—you gotta lawyer hain’t
yuh?”
The old man was really above taking small tips in the shape of money.
He was a hold-over from a much more severe and honest regime, but
subsequent presents or constant flattery were not amiss in making him
kindly and generous. Cowperwood read him accurately.
“Then when you have been here two weeks,” added Chapin, rather
ruminatively (he had forgot to state this to Cowperwood before), “the
warden ’ll come and git yuh and give yuh yer regular cell summers
down-stairs. Yuh kin make up yer mind by that time what y’u’d like tuh
do, what y’u’d like to work at. If you behave yourself proper, more’n
like they’ll give yuh a cell with a yard. Yuh never can tell.”
He went out, locking the door with a solemn click; and Cowperwood stood
there, a little more depressed than he had been, because of this latest
intelligence. Only two weeks, and then he would be transferred from
this kindly old man’s care to another’s, whom he did not know and with
whom he might not fare so well.
“If ever you want me for anything—if ye’re sick or sumpin’ like that,”
Chapin now returned to say, after he had walked a few paces away, “we
have a signal here of our own. Just hang your towel out through these
here bars. I’ll see it, and I’ll stop and find out what yuh want, when
I’m passin’.”
The old man walked away, and Cowperwood heard his steps dying down the
cement-paved hall. He stood and listened, his ears being greeted
occasionally by a distant cough, a faint scraping of some one’s feet,
the hum or whir of a machine, or the iron scratch of a key in a lock.
None of the noises was loud. Rather they were all faint and far away.
He went over and looked at the bed, which was not very clean and
without linen, and anything but wide or soft, and felt it curiously. So
here was where he was to sleep from now on—he who so craved and
appreciated luxury and refinement. If Aileen or some of his rich
friends should see him here. Worse, he was sickened by the thought of
possible vermin. How could he tell? How would he do? The one chair was
abominable. The skylight was weak. He tried to think of himself as
becoming accustomed to the situation, but he re-discovered the offal
pot in one corner, and that discouraged him. It was possible that rats
might come up here—it looked that way. No pictures, no books, no scene,
no person, no space to walk—just the four bare walls and silence, which
he would be shut into at night by the thick door. What a horrible fate!
So he cogitated while the hours slipped by. It was nearly five o’clock
before Steger was able to return, and then only for a little while. He
had been arranging for Cowperwood’s appearance on the following
Thursday, Friday, and Monday in his several court proceedings. When he
was gone, however, and the night fell and Cowperwood had to trim his
little, shabby oil-lamp and to drink the strong tea and eat the rough,
poor bread made of bran and white flour, which was shoved to him
through the small aperture in the door by the trencher trusty, who was
accompanied by the overseer to see that it was done properly, he really
felt very badly. And after that the center wooden door of his cell was
presently closed and locked by a trusty who slammed it rudely and said
no word. Nine o’clock would be sounded somewhere by a great bell, he
understood, when his smoky oil-lamp would have to be put out promptly
and he would have to undress and go to bed. There were punishments, no
doubt, for infractions of these rules—reduced rations, the
strait-jacket, perhaps stripes—he scarcely knew what. He felt
disconsolate, grim, weary. He had put up such a long, unsatisfactory
fight. After washing his heavy stone cup and tin plate at the hydrant,
he took off the sickening uniform and shoes and even the drawers of the
scratching underwear, and stretched himself wearily on the bed. The
place was not any too warm, and he tried to make himself comfortable
between the blankets—but it was of little use. His soul was cold.
“This will never do,” he said to himself. “This will never do. I’m not
sure whether I can stand much of this or not.” Still he turned his face
to the wall, and after several hours sleep eventually came.
Chapter LIV
But this, as he now looked upon it, was almost impossible. It had been
too disarranged and complicated by unfortunate circumstances. He might,
as Steger pointed out to him, string out these bankruptcy proceedings
for years, tiring out one creditor and another, but in the meantime the
properties involved were being seriously damaged. Interest charges on
his unsatisfied loans were making heavy inroads; court costs were
mounting up; and, to cap it all, he had discovered with Steger that
there were a number of creditors—those who had sold out to Butler, and
incidentally to Mollenhauer—who would never accept anything except the
full value of their claims. His one hope now was to save what he could
by compromise a little later, and to build up some sort of profitable
business through Stephen Wingate. The latter was coming in a day or
two, as soon as Steger had made some working arrangement for him with
Warden Michael Desmas who came the second day to have a look at the new
prisoner.
Although Strobik had been one of those who, under pressure from
Mollenhauer, had advised Stener not to let Cowperwood have any more
money, yet here he was pointing out the folly of the victim’s course.
The thought of the inconsistency involved did not trouble him in the
least.
Desmas had never seen Cowperwood before, but in spite of the shabby
uniform, the clog shoes, the cheap shirt, and the wretched cell, he was
impressed. Instead of the weak, anaemic body and the shifty eyes of the
average prisoner, he saw a man whose face and form blazed energy and
power, and whose vigorous erectness no wretched clothes or conditions
could demean. He lifted his head when Desmas appeared, glad that any
form should have appeared at his door, and looked at him with large,
clear, examining eyes—those eyes that in the past had inspired so much
confidence and surety in all those who had known him. Desmas was
stirred. Compared with Stener, whom he knew in the past and whom he had
met on his entry, this man was a force. Say what you will, one vigorous
man inherently respects another. And Desmas was vigorous physically. He
eyed Cowperwood and Cowperwood eyed him. Instinctively Desmas liked
him. He was like one tiger looking at another.
“Yes, sir, I’m the man,” replied Desmas interestedly. “These rooms are
not as comfortable as they might be, are they?” The warden’s even teeth
showed in a friendly, yet wolfish, way.
“They certainly are not, Mr. Desmas,” replied Cowperwood, standing very
erect and soldier-like. “I didn’t imagine I was coming to a hotel,
however.” He smiled.
“They’re not the best wool, that’s true enough,” replied Desmas,
solemnly. “They’re made for the State out here in Pennsylvania
somewhere. I suppose there’s no objection to your wearing your own
underwear if you want to. I’ll see about that. And the sheets, too. We
might let you use them if you have them. We’ll have to go a little slow
about this. There are a lot of people that take a special interest in
showing the warden how to tend to his business.”
During the two weeks in which Cowperwood was in the “manners squad,” in
care of Chapin, he learned nearly as much as he ever learned of the
general nature of prison life; for this was not an ordinary
penitentiary in the sense that the prison yard, the prison squad, the
prison lock-step, the prison dining-room, and prison associated labor
make the ordinary penitentiary. There was, for him and for most of
those confined there, no general prison life whatsoever. The large
majority were supposed to work silently in their cells at the
particular tasks assigned them, and not to know anything of the
remainder of the life which went on around them, the rule of this
prison being solitary confinement, and few being permitted to work at
the limited number of outside menial tasks provided. Indeed, as he
sensed and as old Chapin soon informed him, not more than seventy-five
of the four hundred prisoners confined here were so employed, and not
all of these regularly—cooking, gardening in season, milling, and
general cleaning being the only avenues of escape from solitude. Even
those who so worked were strictly forbidden to talk, and although they
did not have to wear the objectionable hood when actually employed,
they were supposed to wear it in going to and from their work.
Cowperwood saw them occasionally tramping by his cell door, and it
struck him as strange, uncanny, grim. He wished sincerely at times
since old Chapin was so genial and talkative that he were to be under
him permanently; but it was not to be.
His two weeks soon passed—drearily enough in all conscience but they
passed, interlaced with his few commonplace tasks of bed-making,
floor-sweeping, dressing, eating, undressing, rising at five-thirty,
and retiring at nine, washing his several dishes after each meal, etc.
He thought he would never get used to the food. Breakfast, as has been
said, was at six-thirty, and consisted of coarse black bread made of
bran and some white flour, and served with black coffee. Dinner was at
eleven-thirty, and consisted of bean or vegetable soup, with some
coarse meat in it, and the same bread. Supper was at six, of tea and
bread, very strong tea and the same bread—no butter, no milk, no sugar.
Cowperwood did not smoke, so the small allowance of tobacco which was
permitted was without value to him. Steger called in every day for two
or three weeks, and after the second day, Stephen Wingate, as his new
business associate, was permitted to see him also—once every day, if he
wished, Desmas stated, though the latter felt he was stretching a point
in permitting this so soon. Both of these visits rarely occupied more
than an hour, or an hour and a half, and after that the day was long.
He was taken out on several days on a court order, between nine and
five, to testify in the bankruptcy proceedings against him, which
caused the time in the beginning to pass quickly.
It was curious, once he was in prison, safely shut from the world for a
period of years apparently, how quickly all thought of assisting him
departed from the minds of those who had been most friendly. He was
done, so most of them thought. The only thing they could do now would
be to use their influence to get him out some time; how soon, they
could not guess. Beyond that there was nothing. He would really never
be of any great importance to any one any more, or so they thought. It
was very sad, very tragic, but he was gone—his place knew him not.
Only his parents, Aileen, and his wife—the latter with mingled feelings
of resentment and sorrow—really missed him. Aileen, because of her
great passion for him, was suffering most of all. Four years and three
months; she thought. If he did not get out before then she would be
nearing twenty-nine and he would be nearing forty. Would he want her
then? Would she be so attractive? And would nearly five years change
his point of view? He would have to wear a convict suit all that time,
and be known as a convict forever after. It was hard to think about,
but only made her more than ever determined to cling to him, whatever
happened, and to help him all she could.
Indeed the day after his incarceration she drove out and looked at the
grim, gray walls of the penitentiary. Knowing nothing absolutely of the
vast and complicated processes of law and penal servitude, it seemed
especially terrible to her. What might not they be doing to her Frank?
Was he suffering much? Was he thinking of her as she was of him? Oh,
the pity of it all! The pity! The pity of herself—her great love for
him! She drove home, determined to see him; but as he had originally
told her that visiting days were only once in three months, and that he
would have to write her when the next one was, or when she could come,
or when he could see her on the outside, she scarcely knew what to do.
Secrecy was the thing.
The next day, however, she wrote him just the same, describing the
drive she had taken on the stormy afternoon before—the terror of the
thought that he was behind those grim gray walls—and declaring her
determination to see him soon. And this letter, under the new
arrangement, he received at once. He wrote her in reply, giving the
letter to Wingate to mail. It ran:
This last touch was one of pure gloom, the first Cowperwood had ever
introduced into their relationship but conditions had changed him.
Hitherto he had been in the position of the superior being, the one who
was being sought—although Aileen was and had been well worth
seeking—and he had thought that he might escape unscathed, and so grow
in dignity and power until she might not possibly be worthy of him any
longer. He had had that thought. But here, in stripes, it was a
different matter. Aileen’s position, reduced in value as it was by her
long, ardent relationship with him, was now, nevertheless, superior to
his—apparently so. For after all, was she not Edward Butler’s daughter,
and might she, after she had been away from him a while, wish to become
a convict’s bride. She ought not to want to, and she might not want to,
for all he knew; she might change her mind. She ought not to wait for
him. Her life was not yet ruined. The public did not know, so he
thought—not generally anyhow—that she had been his mistress. She might
marry. Why not, and so pass out of his life forever. And would not that
be sad for him? And yet did he not owe it to her, to a sense of fair
play in himself to ask her to give him up, or at least think over the
wisdom of doing so?
He did her the justice to believe that she would not want to give him
up; and in his position, however harmful it might be to her, it was an
advantage, a connecting link with the finest period of his past life,
to have her continue to love him. He could not, however, scribbling
this note in his cell in Wingate’s presence, and giving it to him to
mail (Overseer Chapin was kindly keeping a respectful distance, though
he was supposed to be present), refrain from adding, at the last
moment, this little touch of doubt which, when she read it, struck
Aileen to the heart. She read it as gloom on his part—as great
depression. Perhaps, after all, the penitentiary and so soon, was
really breaking his spirit, and he had held up so courageously so long.
Because of this, now she was madly eager to get to him, to console him,
even though it was difficult, perilous. She must, she said.
There came a day when the two houses in Girard Avenue were the scene of
a sheriffs sale, during which the general public, without let or
hindrance, was permitted to tramp through the rooms and examine the
pictures, statuary, and objects of art generally, which were auctioned
off to the highest bidder. Considerable fame had attached to
Cowperwood’s activities in this field, owing in the first place to the
real merit of what he had brought together, and in the next place to
the enthusiastic comment of such men as Wilton Ellsworth, Fletcher
Norton, Gordon Strake—architects and art dealers whose judgment and
taste were considered important in Philadelphia. All of the lovely
things by which he had set great store—small bronzes, representative of
the best period of the Italian Renaissance; bits of Venetian glass
which he had collected with great care—a full curio case; statues by
Powers, Hosmer, and Thorwaldsen—things which would be smiled at thirty
years later, but which were of high value then; all of his pictures by
representative American painters from Gilbert to Eastman Johnson,
together with a few specimens of the current French and English
schools, went for a song. Art judgment in Philadelphia at this time was
not exceedingly high; and some of the pictures, for lack of
appreciative understanding, were disposed of at much too low a figure.
Strake, Norton, and Ellsworth were all present and bought liberally.
Senator Simpson, Mollenhauer, and Strobik came to see what they could
see. The small-fry politicians were there, en masse. But Simpson, calm
judge of good art, secured practically the best of all that was
offered. To him went the curio case of Venetian glass; one pair of tall
blue-and-white Mohammedan cylindrical vases; fourteen examples of
Chinese jade, including several artists’ water-dishes and a pierced
window-screen of the faintest tinge of green. To Mollenhauer went the
furniture and decorations of the entry-hall and reception-room of Henry
Cowperwood’s house, and to Edward Strobik two of Cowperwood’s
bird’s-eye maple bedroom suites for the most modest of prices. Adam
Davis was present and secured the secretaire of buhl which the elder
Cowperwood prized so highly. To Fletcher Norton went the four Greek
vases—a kylix, a water-jar, and two amphorae—which he had sold to
Cowperwood and which he valued highly. Various objects of art,
including a Sevres dinner set, a Gobelin tapestry, Barye bronzes and
pictures by Detaille, Fortuny, and George Inness, went to Walter Leigh,
Arthur Rivers, Joseph Zimmerman, Judge Kitchen, Harper Steger, Terrence
Relihan, Trenor Drake, Mr. and Mrs. Simeon Jones, W. C. Davison, Frewen
Kasson, Fletcher Norton, and Judge Rafalsky.
Within four days after the sale began the two houses were bare of their
contents. Even the objects in the house at 931 North Tenth Street had
been withdrawn from storage where they had been placed at the time it
was deemed advisable to close this institution, and placed on sale with
the other objects in the two homes. It was at this time that the senior
Cowperwoods first learned of something which seemed to indicate a
mystery which had existed in connection with their son and his wife. No
one of all the Cowperwoods was present during all this gloomy
distribution; and Aileen, reading of the disposition of all the wares,
and knowing their value to Cowperwood, to say nothing of their charm
for her, was greatly depressed; yet she was not long despondent, for
she was convinced that Cowperwood would some day regain his liberty and
attain a position of even greater significance in the financial world.
She could not have said why but she was sure of it.
Chapter LV
The warden and some allied politicians made a good thing out of this
prison industry. It was really not hard labor—the tasks set were simple
and not oppressive, but all of the products were promptly sold, and the
profits pocketed. It was good, therefore, to see all the prisoners
working, and it did them good. Cowperwood was glad of the chance to do
something, for he really did not care so much for books, and his
connection with Wingate and his old affairs were not sufficient to
employ his mind in a satisfactory way. At the same time, he could not
help thinking, if he seemed strange to himself, now, how much stranger
he would seem then, behind these narrow bars working at so commonplace
a task as caning chairs. Nevertheless, he now thanked Desmas for this,
as well as for the sheets and the toilet articles which had just been
brought in.
“That’s all right,” replied the latter, pleasantly and softly, by now
much intrigued by Cowperwood. “I know that there are men and men here,
the same as anywhere. If a man knows how to use these things and wants
to be clean, I wouldn’t be one to put anything in his way.”
The new overseer with whom Cowperwood had to deal was a very different
person from Elias Chapin. His name was Walter Bonhag, and he was not
more than thirty-seven years of age—a big, flabby sort of person with a
crafty mind, whose principal object in life was to see that this prison
situation as he found it should furnish him a better income than his
normal salary provided. A close study of Bonhag would have seemed to
indicate that he was a stool-pigeon of Desmas, but this was really not
true except in a limited way. Because Bonhag was shrewd and
sycophantic, quick to see a point in his or anybody else’s favor,
Desmas instinctively realized that he was the kind of man who could be
trusted to be lenient on order or suggestion. That is, if Desmas had
the least interest in a prisoner he need scarcely say so much to
Bonhag; he might merely suggest that this man was used to a different
kind of life, or that, because of some past experience, it might go
hard with him if he were handled roughly; and Bonhag would strain
himself to be pleasant. The trouble was that to a shrewd man of any
refinement his attentions were objectionable, being obviously offered
for a purpose, and to a poor or ignorant man they were brutal and
contemptuous. He had built up an extra income for himself inside the
prison by selling the prisoners extra allowances of things which he
secretly brought into the prison. It was strictly against the rules, in
theory at least, to bring in anything which was not sold in the
store-room—tobacco, writing paper, pens, ink, whisky, cigars, or
delicacies of any kind. On the other hand, and excellently well for
him, it was true that tobacco of an inferior grade was provided, as
well as wretched pens, ink and paper, so that no self-respecting man,
if he could help it, would endure them. Whisky was not allowed at all,
and delicacies were abhorred as indicating rank favoritism;
nevertheless, they were brought in. If a prisoner had the money and was
willing to see that Bonhag secured something for his trouble, almost
anything would be forthcoming. Also the privilege of being sent into
the general yard as a “trusty,” or being allowed to stay in the little
private yard which some cells possessed, longer than the half-hour
ordinarily permitted, was sold.
The day Cowperwood was installed in his new cell, Bonhag lolled up to
the door, which was open, and said, in a semi-patronizing way, “Got all
your things over yet?” It was his business to lock the door once
Cowperwood was inside it.
“Yes, sir,” replied Cowperwood, who had been shrewd enough to get the
new overseer’s name from Chapin; “this is Mr. Bonhag, I presume?”
“Oh, yes,” said Cowperwood, observantly and shrewdly, “that is the yard
Mr. Desmas spoke of.”
At the mention of the magic name, if Bonhag had been a horse, his ears
would have been seen to lift. For, of course, if Cowperwood was so
friendly with Desmas that the latter had described to him the type of
cell he was to have beforehand, it behooved Bonhag to be especially
careful.
“Yes, that’s it, but it ain’t much,” he observed. “They only allow a
half-hour a day in it. Still it would be all right if a person could
stay out there longer.”
This was his first hint at graft, favoritism; and Cowperwood distinctly
caught the sound of it in his voice.
“That’s too bad,” he said. “I don’t suppose good conduct helps a person
to get more.” He waited to hear a reply, but instead Bonhag continued
with: “I’d better teach you your new trade now. You’ve got to learn to
cane chairs, so the warden says. If you want, we can begin right away.”
But without waiting for Cowperwood to acquiesce, he went off, returning
after a time with three unvarnished frames of chairs and a bundle of
cane strips or withes, which he deposited on the floor. Having so
done—and with a flourish—he now continued: “Now I’ll show you if you’ll
watch me,” and he began showing Cowperwood how the strips were to be
laced through the apertures on either side, cut, and fastened with
little hickory pegs. This done, he brought a forcing awl, a small
hammer, a box of pegs, and a pair of clippers. After several brief
demonstrations with different strips, as to how the geometric forms
were designed, he allowed Cowperwood to take the matter in hand,
watching over his shoulder. The financier, quick at anything, manual or
mental, went at it in his customary energetic fashion, and in five
minutes demonstrated to Bonhag that, barring skill and speed, which
could only come with practice, he could do it as well as another.
“You’ll make out all right,” said Bonhag. “You’re supposed to do ten of
those a day. We won’t count the next few days, though, until you get
your hand in. After that I’ll come around and see how you’re getting
along. You understand about the towel on the door, don’t you?” he
inquired.
And so now he began with: “I see you have your lawyer and your partner
here every day. There ain’t anybody else you’d like to have visit you,
is there? Of course, it’s against the rules to have your wife or sister
or anybody like that, except on visiting days—” And here he paused and
rolled a large and informing eye on Cowperwood—such an eye as was
supposed to convey dark and mysterious things. “But all the rules ain’t
kept around here by a long shot.”
Cowperwood was not the man to lose a chance of this kind. He smiled a
little—enough to relieve himself, and to convey to Bonhag that he was
gratified by the information, but vocally he observed: “I’ll tell you
how it is, Mr. Bonhag. I believe you understand my position better than
most men would, and that I can talk to you. There are people who would
like to come here, but I have been afraid to let them come. I did not
know that it could be arranged. If it could be, I would be very
grateful. You and I are practical men—I know that if any favors are
extended some of those who help to bring them about must be looked
after. If you can do anything to make it a little more comfortable for
me here I will show you that I appreciate it. I haven’t any money on my
person, but I can always get it, and I will see that you are properly
looked after.”
Bonhag’s short, thick ears tingled. This was the kind of talk he liked
to hear. “I can fix anything like that, Mr. Cowperwood,” he replied,
servilely. “You leave it to me. If there’s any one you want to see at
any time, just let me know. Of course I have to be very careful, and so
do you, but that’s all right, too. If you want to stay out in that yard
a little longer in the mornings or get out there afternoons or
evenings, from now on, why, go ahead. It’s all right. I’ll just leave
the door open. If the warden or anybody else should be around, I’ll
just scratch on your door with my key, and you come in and shut it. If
there’s anything you want from the outside I can get it for you—jelly
or eggs or butter or any little thing like that. You might like to fix
up your meals a little that way.”
When Aileen arrived she asked for Mr. Bonhag, and was permitted to go
to the central rotunda, where he was sent for. When he came she
murmured: “I wish to see Mr. Cowperwood, if you please”; and he
exclaimed, “Oh, yes, just come with me.” As he came across the rotunda
floor from his corridor he was struck by the evident youth of Aileen,
even though he could not see her face. This now was something in
accordance with what he had expected of Cowperwood. A man who could
steal five hundred thousand dollars and set a whole city by the ears
must have wonderful adventures of all kinds, and Aileen looked like a
true adventure. He led her to the little room where he kept his desk
and detained visitors, and then bustled down to Cowperwood’s cell,
where the financier was working on one of his chairs and scratching on
the door with his key, called: “There’s a young lady here to see you.
Do you want to let her come inside?”
Aileen saw it. She fairly flung herself in front of him, seized his
head with one hand, his shabby waist with the other, and held him tight
in a grip that he could not have readily released.
She pulled his still shaking body tighter, and with her free hand
caressed his head. She kissed his eyes, his hair, his cheeks. He pulled
himself loose again after a moment, exclaiming, “What the devil’s got
into me?” but she drew him back.
“Never mind, honey darling, don’t you be ashamed to cry. Cry here on my
shoulder. Cry here with me. My baby—my honey pet!”
He quieted down after a few moments, cautioning her against Bonhag, and
regaining his former composure, which he was so ashamed to have lost.
“You’re a great girl, pet,” he said, with a tender and yet apologetic
smile. “You’re all right—all that I need—a great help to me; but don’t
worry any longer about me, dear. I’m all right. It isn’t as bad as you
think. How are you?”
Aileen on her part was not to be soothed so easily. His many woes,
including his wretched position here, outraged her sense of justice and
decency. To think her fine, wonderful Frank should be compelled to come
to this—to cry. She stroked his head, tenderly, while wild, deadly,
unreasoning opposition to life and chance and untoward opposition
surged in her brain. Her father—damn him! Her family—pooh! What did she
care? Her Frank—her Frank. How little all else mattered where he was
concerned. Never, never, never would she desert him—never—come what
might. And now she clung to him in silence while she fought in her
brain an awful battle with life and law and fate and circumstance.
Law—nonsense! People—they were brutes, devils, enemies, hounds! She was
delighted, eager, crazy to make a sacrifice of herself. She would go
anywhere for or with her Frank now. She would do anything for him. Her
family was nothing—life nothing, nothing, nothing. She would do
anything he wished, nothing more, nothing less; anything she could do
to save him, to make his life happier, but nothing for any one else.
Chapter LVI
The days passed. Once the understanding with Bonhag was reached,
Cowperwood’s wife, mother and sister were allowed to appear on
occasions. His wife and the children were now settled in the little
home for which he was paying, and his financial obligations to her were
satisfied by Wingate, who paid her one hundred and twenty five dollars
a month for him. He realized that he owed her more, but he was sailing
rather close to the wind financially, these days. The final collapse of
his old interests had come in March, when he had been legally declared
a bankrupt, and all his properties forfeited to satisfy the claims
against him. The city’s claim of five hundred thousand dollars would
have eaten up more than could have been realized at the time, had not a
pro rata payment of thirty cents on the dollar been declared. Even then
the city never received its due, for by some hocus-pocus it was
declared to have forfeited its rights. Its claims had not been made at
the proper time in the proper way. This left larger portions of real
money for the others.
But day after day secreting himself in his room—a little hall-bedroom
office in his newest home, where to his wife, he pretended that he had
some commercial matters wherewith he was still concerned—and once
inside, the door locked, sitting and brooding on all that had befallen
him—his losses; his good name. Or, after months of this, and because of
the new position secured for him by Wingate—a bookkeeping job in one of
the outlying banks—slipping away early in the morning, and returning
late at night, his mind a gloomy epitome of all that had been or yet
might be.
To see him bustling off from his new but very much reduced home at half
after seven in the morning in order to reach the small bank, which was
some distance away and not accessible by street-car line, was one of
those pathetic sights which the fortunes of trade so frequently offer.
He carried his lunch in a small box because it was inconvenient to
return home in the time allotted for this purpose, and because his new
salary did not permit the extravagance of a purchased one. It was his
one ambition now to eke out a respectable but unseen existence until he
should die, which he hoped would not be long. He was a pathetic figure
with his thin legs and body, his gray hair, and his snow-white
side-whiskers. He was very lean and angular, and, when confronted by a
difficult problem, a little uncertain or vague in his mind. An old
habit which had grown on him in the years of his prosperity of putting
his hand to his mouth and of opening his eyes in an assumption of
surprise, which had no basis in fact, now grew upon him. He really
degenerated, although he did not know it, into a mere automaton. Life
strews its shores with such interesting and pathetic wrecks.
The day that Cowperwood decided to discuss with his wife the weariness
of his present married state and his desire to be free of it was some
four months after he had entered the prison. By that time he had become
inured to his convict life. The silence of his cell and the menial
tasks he was compelled to perform, which had at first been so
distressing, banal, maddening, in their pointless iteration, had now
become merely commonplace—dull, but not painful. Furthermore he had
learned many of the little resources of the solitary convict, such as
that of using his lamp to warm up some delicacy which he had saved from
a previous meal or from some basket which had been sent him by his wife
or Aileen. He had partially gotten rid of the sickening odor of his
cell by persuading Bonhag to bring him small packages of lime; which he
used with great freedom. Also he succeeded in defeating some of the
more venturesome rats with traps; and with Bonhag’s permission, after
his cell door had been properly locked at night, and sealed with the
outer wooden door, he would take his chair, if it were not too cold,
out into the little back yard of his cell and look at the sky, where,
when the nights were clear, the stars were to be seen. He had never
taken any interest in astronomy as a scientific study, but now the
Pleiades, the belt of Orion, the Big Dipper and the North Star, to
which one of its lines pointed, caught his attention, almost his fancy.
He wondered why the stars of the belt of Orion came to assume the
peculiar mathematical relation to each other which they held, as far as
distance and arrangement were concerned, and whether that could
possibly have any intellectual significance. The nebulous
conglomeration of the suns in Pleiades suggested a soundless depth of
space, and he thought of the earth floating like a little ball in
immeasurable reaches of ether. His own life appeared very trivial in
view of these things, and he found himself asking whether it was all
really of any significance or importance. He shook these moods off with
ease, however, for the man was possessed of a sense of grandeur,
largely in relation to himself and his affairs; and his temperament was
essentially material and vital. Something kept telling him that
whatever his present state he must yet grow to be a significant
personage, one whose fame would be heralded the world over—who must
try, try, try. It was not given all men to see far or to do
brilliantly; but to him it was given, and he must be what he was cut
out to be. There was no more escaping the greatness that was inherent
in him than there was for so many others the littleness that was in
them.
“Lillian, there’s something I’ve been wanting to talk with you about
for some time. I should have done it before, but it’s better late than
never. I know that you know that there is something between Aileen
Butler and me, and we might as well have it open and aboveboard. It’s
true I am very fond of her and she is very devoted to me, and if ever I
get out of here I want to arrange it so that I can marry her. That
means that you will have to give me a divorce, if you will; and I want
to talk to you about that now. This can’t be so very much of a surprise
to you, because you must have seen this long while that our
relationship hasn’t been all that it might have been, and under the
circumstances this can’t prove such a very great hardship to you—I am
sure.” He paused, waiting, for Mrs. Cowperwood at first said nothing.
Her thought, when he first broached this, was that she ought to make
some demonstration of astonishment or wrath: but when she looked into
his steady, examining eyes, so free from the illusion of or interest in
demonstrations of any kind, she realized how useless it would be. He
was so utterly matter-of-fact in what seemed to her quite private and
secret affairs—very shameless. She had never been able to understand
quite how he could take the subtleties of life as he did, anyhow.
Certain things which she always fancied should be hushed up he spoke of
with the greatest nonchalance. Her ears tingled sometimes at his
frankness in disposing of a social situation; but she thought this must
be characteristic of notable men, and so there was nothing to be said
about it. Certain men did as they pleased; society did not seem to be
able to deal with them in any way. Perhaps God would, later—she was not
sure. Anyhow, bad as he was, direct as he was, forceful as he was, he
was far more interesting than most of the more conservative types in
whom the social virtues of polite speech and modest thoughts were
seemingly predominate.
“I’ll tell you how it is, Lillian,” he said; “I’m not sure that you are
going to get what I mean exactly, but you and I are not at all well
suited to each other any more.”
“You didn’t seem to think that three or four years ago,” interrupted
his wife, bitterly.
“That’s a nice way to talk to me, and a nice way to treat me!” she
exclaimed dramatically, rising and walking the short space—some two
steps—that lay between the wall and the bed. “I might have known that
you were too young to know your own mind when you married me. Money, of
course, that’s all you think of and your own gratification. I don’t
believe you have any sense of justice in you. I don’t believe you ever
had. You only think of yourself, Frank. I never saw such a man as you.
You have treated me like a dog all through this affair; and all the
while you have been running with that little snip of an Irish thing,
and telling her all about your affairs, I suppose. You let me go on
believing that you cared for me up to the last moment, and then you
suddenly step up and tell me that you want a divorce. I’ll not do it.
I’ll not give you a divorce, and you needn’t think it.”
“Very well,” replied Cowperwood, quietly, getting up. “We needn’t talk
about it any more now. Your time is nearly up, anyhow.” (Twenty minutes
was supposed to be the regular allotment for visitors.) “Perhaps you’ll
change your mind sometime.”
She gathered up her muff and the shawl-strap in which she had carried
her gifts, and turned to go. It had been her custom to kiss Cowperwood
in a make-believe way up to this time, but now she was too angry to
make this pretense. And yet she was sorry, too—sorry for herself and,
she thought, for him.
“Hard words break no bones,” he said to himself, as his wife went out.
“A man’s never done till he’s done. I’ll show some of these people
yet.” Of Bonhag, who came to close the cell door, he asked whether it
was going to rain, it looked so dark in the hall.
“It’s sure to before night,” replied Bonhag, who was always wondering
over Cowperwood’s tangled affairs as he heard them retailed here and
there.
Chapter LVII
Her mother and brothers did not understand it at all at first. (Mrs.
Butler never understood.) But not long after Cowperwood’s incarceration
Callum and Owen became aware of what the trouble was. Once, when Owen
was coming away from a reception at one of the houses where his growing
financial importance made him welcome, he heard one of two men whom he
knew casually, say to the other, as they stood at the door adjusting
their coats, “You saw where this fellow Cowperwood got four years,
didn’t you?”
“Yes,” replied the other. “A clever devil that—wasn’t he? I knew that
girl he was in with, too—you know who I mean. Miss Butler—wasn’t that
her name?”
Owen was not sure that he had heard right. He did not get the
connection until the other guest, opening the door and stepping out,
remarked: “Well, old Butler got even, apparently. They say he sent him
up.”
Owen’s brow clouded. A hard, contentious look came into his eyes. He
had much of his father’s force. What in the devil were they talking
about? What Miss Butler did they have in mind? Could this be Aileen or
Norah, and how could Cowperwood come to be in with either of them? It
could not possibly be Norah, he reflected; she was very much infatuated
with a young man whom he knew, and was going to marry him. Aileen had
been most friendly with the Cowperwoods, and had often spoken well of
the financier. Could it be she? He could not believe it. He thought
once of overtaking the two acquaintances and demanding to know what
they meant, but when he came out on the step they were already some
distance down the street and in the opposite direction from that in
which he wished to go. He decided to ask his father about this.
On demand, old Butler confessed at once, but insisted that his son keep
silent about it.
“I wish I’d have known,” said Owen, grimly. “I’d have shot the dirty
dog.”
“Aisy, aisy,” said Butler. “Yer own life’s worth more than his, and
ye’d only be draggin’ the rest of yer family in the dirt with him. He’s
had somethin’ to pay him for his dirty trick, and he’ll have more. Just
ye say nothin’ to no one. Wait. He’ll be wantin’ to get out in a year
or two. Say nothin’ to her aither. Talkin’ won’t help there. She’ll
come to her sinses when he’s been away long enough, I’m thinkin’.” Owen
had tried to be civil to his sister after that, but since he was a
stickler for social perfection and advancement, and so eager to get up
in the world himself, he could not understand how she could possibly
have done any such thing. He resented bitterly the stumbling-block she
had put in his path. Now, among other things, his enemies would have
this to throw in his face if they wanted to—and they would want to,
trust life for that.
Callum reached his knowledge of the matter in quite another manner, but
at about the same time. He was a member of an athletic club which had
an attractive building in the city, and a fine country club, where he
went occasionally to enjoy the swimming-pool and the Turkish bath
connected with it. One of his friends approached him there in the
billiard-room one evening and said, “Say, Butler, you know I’m a good
friend of yours, don’t you?”
“Well, you know,” said the young individual, whose name was Richard
Pethick, looking at Callum with a look of almost strained affection, “I
wouldn’t come to you with any story that I thought would hurt your
feelings or that you oughtn’t to know about, but I do think you ought
to know about this.” He pulled at a high white collar which was choking
his neck.
“Well, I don’t like to say anything,” replied Pethick, “but that fellow
Hibbs is saying things around here about your sister.”
Some of the stern fighting ability of his father showed in his slender,
rather refined young face.
But Callum by now was not so easily restrained. His face was quite
pale, and he was moving toward the old English grill-room, where Hibbs
happened to be, consuming a brandy-and-soda with a friend of about his
own age. Callum entered and called him.
Hibbs, hearing his voice and seeing him in the door, arose and came
over. He was an interesting youth of the collegiate type, educated at
Princeton. He had heard the rumor concerning Aileen from various
sources—other members of the club, for one—and had ventured to repeat
it in Pethick’s presence.
“What’s that you were just saying about my sister?” asked Callum,
grimly, looking Hibbs in the eye.
“Why—I—” hesitated Hibbs, who sensed trouble and was eager to avoid it.
He was not exceptionally brave and looked it. His hair was
straw-colored, his eyes blue, and his cheeks pink. “Why—nothing in
particular. Who said I was talking about her?” He looked at Pethick,
whom he knew to be the tale-bearer, and the latter exclaimed,
excitedly:
“Now don’t you try to deny it, Hibbs. You know I heard you?”
“Well, what did you say?” interrupted Callum, grimly, transferring the
conversation to himself. “That’s just what I want to know.”
“Why,” stammered Hibbs, nervously, “I don’t think I’ve said anything
that anybody else hasn’t said. I just repeated that some one said that
your sister had been very friendly with Mr. Cowperwood. I didn’t say
any more than I have heard other people say around here.”
“Oh, you didn’t, did you?” exclaimed Callum, withdrawing his hand from
his pocket and slapping Hibbs in the face. He repeated the blow with
his left hand, fiercely. “Perhaps that’ll teach you to keep my sister’s
name out of your mouth, you pup!”
Hibbs’s arms flew up. He was not without pugilistic training, and he
struck back vigorously, striking Callum once in the chest and once in
the neck. In an instant the two rooms of this suite were in an uproar.
Tables and chairs were overturned by the energy of men attempting to
get to the scene of action. The two combatants were quickly separated;
sides were taken by the friends of each, excited explanations attempted
and defied. Callum was examining the knuckles of his left hand, which
were cut from the blow he had delivered. He maintained a gentlemanly
calm. Hibbs, very much flustered and excited, insisted that he had been
most unreasonably used. The idea of attacking him here. And, anyhow, as
he maintained now, Pethick had been both eavesdropping and lying about
him. Incidentally, the latter was protesting to others that he had done
the only thing which an honorable friend could do. It was a nine days’
wonder in the club, and was only kept out of the newspapers by the most
strenuous efforts on the part of the friends of both parties. Callum
was so outraged on discovering that there was some foundation for the
rumor at the club in a general rumor which prevailed that he tendered
his resignation, and never went there again.
“I wish to heaven you hadn’t struck that fellow,” counseled Owen, when
the incident was related to him. “It will only make more talk. She
ought to leave this place; but she won’t. She’s struck on that fellow
yet, and we can’t tell Norah and mother. We will never hear the last of
this, you and I—believe me.”
“Well, she won’t,” replied Owen. “Father has tried making her, and she
won’t go. Just let things stand. He’s in the penitentiary now, and
that’s probably the end of him. The public seem to think that father
put him there, and that’s something. Maybe we can persuade her to go
after a while. I wish to God we had never had sight of that fellow. If
ever he comes out, I’ve a good notion to kill him.”
In this divided world it was that Butler eventually found himself, all
at sea as to what to think or what to do. He had brooded so long now,
for months, and as yet had found no solution. And finally, in a form of
religious despair, sitting at his desk, in his business chair, he had
collapsed—a weary and disconsolate man of seventy. A lesion of the left
ventricle was the immediate physical cause, although brooding over
Aileen was in part the mental one. His death could not have been laid
to his grief over Aileen exactly, for he was a very large
man—apoplectic and with sclerotic veins and arteries. For a great many
years now he had taken very little exercise, and his digestion had been
considerably impaired thereby. He was past seventy, and his time had
been reached. They found him there the next morning, his hands folded
in his lap, his head on his bosom, quite cold.
He was buried with honors out of St. Timothy’s Church, the funeral
attended by a large body of politicians and city officials, who
discussed secretly among themselves whether his grief over his daughter
had anything to do with his end. All his good deeds were remembered, of
course, and Mollenhauer and Simpson sent great floral emblems in
remembrance. They were very sorry that he was gone, for they had been a
cordial three. But gone he was, and that ended their interest in the
matter. He left all of his property to his wife in one of the shortest
wills ever recorded locally.
There was no misconstruing this. A private paper drawn secretly for her
sometime before by Butler, explained how the property should be
disposed of by her at her death. It was Butler’s real will masquerading
as hers, and she would not have changed it for worlds; but he wanted
her left in undisturbed possession of everything until she should die.
Aileen’s originally assigned portion had never been changed. According
to her father’s will, which no power under the sun could have made Mrs.
Butler alter, she was left $250,000 to be paid at Mrs. Butler’s death.
Neither this fact nor any of the others contained in the paper were
communicated by Mrs. Butler, who retained it to be left as her will.
Aileen often wondered, but never sought to know, what had been left
her. Nothing she fancied—but felt that she could not help this.
Butler’s death led at once to a great change in the temper of the home.
After the funeral the family settled down to a seemingly peaceful
continuance of the old life; but it was a matter of seeming merely. The
situation stood with Callum and Owen manifesting a certain degree of
contempt for Aileen, which she, understanding, reciprocated. She was
very haughty. Owen had plans of forcing her to leave after Butler’s
death, but he finally asked himself what was the use. Mrs. Butler, who
did not want to leave the old home, was very fond of Aileen, so therein
lay a reason for letting her remain. Besides, any move to force her out
would have entailed an explanation to her mother, which was not deemed
advisable. Owen himself was interested in Caroline Mollenhauer, whom he
hoped some day to marry—as much for her prospective wealth as for any
other reason, though he was quite fond of her. In the January following
Butler’s death, which occurred in August, Norah was married very
quietly, and the following spring Callum embarked on a similar venture.
“If ever you get on your feet, Frank,” he said, “you can remember me if
you want to, but I don’t think you’ll want to. It’s been nothing but
lose, lose, lose for you through me. I’ll undertake this matter of
getting that appeal to the Governor without any charge on my part.
Anything I can do for you from now on is free gratis for nothing.”
So when it was finally decided to pardon Stener, which was in the early
part of March, 1873—Cowperwood’s pardon was necessarily but gingerly
included. A delegation, consisting of Strobik, Harmon, and Winpenny,
representing, as it was intended to appear, the unanimous wishes of the
council and the city administration, and speaking for Mollenhauer and
Simpson, who had given their consent, visited the Governor at
Harrisburg and made the necessary formal representations which were
intended to impress the public. At the same time, through the agency of
Steger, Davison, and Walter Leigh, the appeal in behalf of Cowperwood
was made. The Governor, who had had instructions beforehand from
sources quite superior to this committee, was very solemn about the
whole procedure. He would take the matter under advisement. He would
look into the history of the crimes and the records of the two men. He
could make no promises—he would see. But in ten days, after allowing
the petitions to gather considerable dust in one of his pigeonholes and
doing absolutely nothing toward investigating anything, he issued two
separate pardons in writing. One, as a matter of courtesy, he gave into
the hands of Messrs. Strobik, Harmon, and Winpenny, to bear personally
to Mr. Stener, as they desired that he should. The other, on Steger’s
request, he gave to him. The two committees which had called to receive
them then departed; and the afternoon of that same day saw Strobik,
Harmon, and Winpenny arrive in one group, and Steger, Wingate, and
Walter Leigh in another, at the prison gate, but at different hours.
Chapter LVIII
This matter of the pardon of Cowperwood, the exact time of it, was kept
a secret from him, though the fact that he was to be pardoned soon, or
that he had a very excellent chance of being, had not been
denied—rather had been made much of from time to time. Wingate had kept
him accurately informed as to the progress being made, as had Steger;
but when it was actually ascertained, from the Governor’s private
secretary, that a certain day would see the pardon handed over to them,
Steger, Wingate, and Walter Leigh had agreed between themselves that
they would say nothing, taking Cowperwood by surprise. They even went
so far—that is, Steger and Wingate did—as to indicate to Cowperwood
that there was some hitch to the proceedings and that he might not now
get out so soon. Cowperwood was somewhat depressed, but properly
stoical; he assured himself that he could wait, and that he would be
all right sometime. He was rather surprised therefore, one Friday
afternoon, to see Wingate, Steger, and Leigh appear at his cell door,
accompanied by Warden Desmas.
The warden was quite pleased to think that Cowperwood should finally be
going out—he admired him so much—and decided to come along to the cell,
to see how he would take his liberation. On the way Desmas commented on
the fact that he had always been a model prisoner. “He kept a little
garden out there in that yard of his,” he confided to Walter Leigh. “He
had violets and pansies and geraniums out there, and they did very
well, too.”
“Very,” replied the warden. “You can tell that by looking at him.”
The four looked in through the barred door where he was working,
without being observed, having come up quite silently.
Cowperwood glanced over his shoulder and got up. He had been thinking,
as always these days, of what he would do when he did get out.
Cowperwood surveyed his friends with a level gaze. He had not expected
this so soon after what had been told him. He was not one to be very
much interested in the practical joke or the surprise, but this pleased
him—the sudden realization that he was free. Still, he had anticipated
it so long that the charm of it had been discounted to a certain
extent. He had been unhappy here, and he had not. The shame and
humiliation of it, to begin with, had been much. Latterly, as he had
become inured to it all, the sense of narrowness and humiliation had
worn off. Only the consciousness of incarceration and delay irked him.
Barring his intense desire for certain things—success and vindication,
principally—he found that he could live in his narrow cell and be
fairly comfortable. He had long since become used to the limy smell
(used to defeat a more sickening one), and to the numerous rats which
he quite regularly trapped. He had learned to take an interest in
chair-caning, having become so proficient that he could seat twenty in
a day if he chose, and in working in the little garden in spring,
summer, and fall. Every evening he had studied the sky from his narrow
yard, which resulted curiously in the gift in later years of a great
reflecting telescope to a famous university. He had not looked upon
himself as an ordinary prisoner, by any means—had not felt himself to
be sufficiently punished if a real crime had been involved. From Bonhag
he had learned the history of many criminals here incarcerated, from
murderers up and down, and many had been pointed out to him from time
to time. He had been escorted into the general yard by Bonhag, had seen
the general food of the place being prepared, had heard of Stener’s
modified life here, and so forth. It had finally struck him that it was
not so bad, only that the delay to an individual like himself was
wasteful. He could do so much now if he were out and did not have to
fight court proceedings. Courts and jails! He shook his head when he
thought of the waste involved in them.
He stepped out into the hall, with scarcely a farewell glance, and to
Bonhag, who was grieving greatly over the loss of so profitable a
customer, he said: “I wish you would see that some of these things are
sent over to my house, Walter. You’re welcome to the chair, that clock,
this mirror, those pictures—all of these things in fact, except my
linen, razors, and so forth.”
In another minute they were at the outer gate, where Cowperwood shook
the warden finally by the hand. Then entering a carriage outside the
large, impressive, Gothic entrance, the gates were locked behind them
and they were driven away.
He was thinking of Aileen and his children and his mother and father
and of his whole future. Life was going to broaden out for him
considerably from now on, he was sure of it. He had learned so much
about taking care of himself in those thirteen months. He was going to
see Aileen, and find how she felt about things in general, and then he
was going to resume some such duties as he had had in his own concern,
with Wingate & Co. He was going to secure a seat on ’change again,
through his friends; and, to escape the effect of the prejudice of
those who might not care to do business with an ex-convict, he was
going to act as general outside man, and floor man on ’charge, for
Wingate & Co. His practical control of that could not be publicly
proved. Now for some important development in the market—some slump or
something. He would show the world whether he was a failure or not.
They let him down in front of his wife’s little cottage, and he entered
briskly in the gathering gloom.
Furthermore, Wingate & Co. were prospering, and had been for some time,
a fact which redounded to his credit with those who knew. Ostensibly he
lived with his wife in a small house on North Twenty-first Street. In
reality he occupied a bachelor apartment on North Fifteenth Street, to
which Aileen occasionally repaired. The difference between himself and
his wife had now become a matter of common knowledge in the family,
and, although there were some faint efforts made to smooth the matter
over, no good resulted. The difficulties of the past two years had so
inured his parents to expect the untoward and exceptional that,
astonishing as this was, it did not shock them so much as it would have
years before. They were too much frightened by life to quarrel with its
weird developments. They could only hope and pray for the best.
The Butler family, on the other hand, what there was of it, had become
indifferent to Aileen’s conduct. She was ignored by her brothers and
Norah, who now knew all; and her mother was so taken up with religious
devotions and brooding contemplation of her loss that she was not as
active in her observation of Aileen’s life as she might have been.
Besides, Cowperwood and his mistress were more circumspect in their
conduct than they had ever been before. Their movements were more
carefully guarded, though the result was the same. Cowperwood was
thinking of the West—of reaching some slight local standing here in
Philadelphia, and then, with perhaps one hundred thousand dollars in
capital, removing to the boundless prairies of which he had heard so
much—Chicago, Fargo, Duluth, Sioux City, places then heralded in
Philadelphia and the East as coming centers of great life—and taking
Aileen with him. Although the problem of marriage with her was
insoluble unless Mrs. Cowperwood should formally agree to give him up—a
possibility which was not manifest at this time, neither he nor Aileen
were deterred by that thought. They were going to build a future
together—or so they thought, marriage or no marriage. The only thing
which Cowperwood could see to do was to take Aileen away with him, and
to trust to time and absence to modify his wife’s point of view.
The project which fascinated him most was one that related to the
development of the territory then lying almost unexplored between the
extreme western shore of Lake Superior, where Duluth now stands, and
that portion of the Pacific Ocean into which the Columbia River
empties—the extreme northern one-third of the United States. Here, if a
railroad were built, would spring up great cities and prosperous towns.
There were, it was suspected, mines of various metals in the region of
the Rockies which this railroad would traverse, and untold wealth to be
reaped from the fertile corn and wheat lands. Products brought only so
far east as Duluth could then be shipped to the Atlantic, via the Great
Lakes and the Erie Canal, at a greatly reduced cost. It was a vision of
empire, not unlike the Panama Canal project of the same period, and one
that bade fair apparently to be as useful to humanity. It had aroused
the interest and enthusiasm of Cooke. Because of the fact that the
government had made a grant of vast areas of land on either side of the
proposed track to the corporation that should seriously undertake it
and complete it within a reasonable number of years, and because of the
opportunity it gave him of remaining a distinguished public figure, he
had eventually shouldered the project. It was open to many objections
and criticisms; but the genius which had been sufficient to finance the
Civil War was considered sufficient to finance the Northern Pacific
Railroad. Cooke undertook it with the idea of being able to put the
merits of the proposition before the people direct—not through the
agency of any great financial corporation—and of selling to the
butcher, the baker, and the candlestick-maker the stock or shares that
he wished to dispose of.
It was a brilliant chance. His genius had worked out the sale of great
government loans during the Civil War to the people direct in this
fashion. Why not Northern Pacific certificates? For several years he
conducted a pyrotechnic campaign, surveying the territory in question,
organizing great railway-construction corps, building hundreds of miles
of track under most trying conditions, and selling great blocks of his
stock, on which interest of a certain percentage was guaranteed. If it
had not been that he knew little of railroad-building, personally, and
that the project was so vast that it could not well be encompassed by
one man, even so great a man it might have proved successful, as under
subsequent management it did. However, hard times, the war between
France and Germany, which tied up European capital for the time being
and made it indifferent to American projects, envy, calumny, a certain
percentage of mismanagement, all conspired to wreck it. On September
18, 1873, at twelve-fifteen noon, Jay Cooke & Co. failed for
approximately eight million dollars and the Northern Pacific for all
that had been invested in it—some fifty million dollars more.
One can imagine what the result was—the most important financier and
the most distinguished railway enterprise collapsing at one and the
same time. “A financial thunderclap in a clear sky,” said the
Philadelphia Press. “No one could have been more surprised,” said the
Philadelphia Inquirer, “if snow had fallen amid the sunshine of a
summer noon.” The public, which by Cooke’s previous tremendous success
had been lulled into believing him invincible, could not understand it.
It was beyond belief. Jay Cooke fail? Impossible, or anything connected
with him. Nevertheless, he had failed; and the New York Stock Exchange,
after witnessing a number of crashes immediately afterward, closed for
eight days. The Lake Shore Railroad failed to pay a call-loan of one
million seven hundred and fifty thousand dollars; and the Union Trust
Company, allied to the Vanderbilt interests, closed its doors after
withstanding a prolonged run. The National Trust Company of New York
had eight hundred thousand dollars of government securities in its
vaults, but not a dollar could be borrowed upon them; and it suspended.
Suspicion was universal, rumor affected every one.
Cowperwood could not believe it. He was beside himself with the thought
of a great opportunity. In company with every other broker, he hurried
into Third Street and up to Number 114, where the famous old banking
house was located, in order to be sure. Despite his natural dignity and
reserve, he did not hesitate to run. If this were true, a great hour
had struck. There would be wide-spread panic and disaster. There would
be a terrific slump in prices of all stocks. He must be in the thick of
it. Wingate must be on hand, and his two brothers. He must tell them
how to sell and when and what to buy. His great hour had come!
Chapter LIX
The banking house of Jay Cooke & Co., in spite of its tremendous
significance as a banking and promoting concern, was a most
unpretentious affair, four stories and a half in height of gray stone
and red brick. It had never been deemed a handsome or comfortable
banking house. Cowperwood had been there often. Wharf-rats as long as
the forearm of a man crept up the culverted channels of Dock Street to
run through the apartments at will. Scores of clerks worked under
gas-jets, where light and air were not any too abundant, keeping track
of the firm’s vast accounts. It was next door to the Girard National
Bank, where Cowperwood’s friend Davison still flourished, and where the
principal financial business of the street converged. As Cowperwood ran
he met his brother Edward, who was coming to the stock exchange with
some word for him from Wingate.
“Run and get Wingate and Joe,” he said. “There’s something big on this
afternoon. Jay Cooke has failed.”
Cowperwood reached Cooke & Co. among the earliest. To his utter
astonishment, the solid brown-oak doors, with which he was familiar,
were shut, and a notice posted on them, which he quickly read, ran:
Before, when the panic following the Chicago fire had occurred, he had
been long—had been compelled to stay long of many things in order to
protect himself. To-day he had nothing to speak of—perhaps a paltry
seventy-five thousand dollars which he had managed to scrape together.
Thank God! he had only the reputation of Wingate’s old house to lose,
if he lost, which was nothing. With it as a trading agency behind
him—with it as an excuse for his presence, his right to buy and sell—he
had everything to gain. Where many men were thinking of ruin, he was
thinking of success. He would have Wingate and his two brothers under
him to execute his orders exactly. He could pick up a fourth and a
fifth man if necessary. He would give them orders to
sell—everything—ten, fifteen, twenty, thirty points off, if necessary,
in order to trap the unwary, depress the market, frighten the fearsome
who would think he was too daring; and then he would buy, buy, buy,
below these figures as much as possible, in order to cover his sales
and reap a profit.
His instinct told him how widespread and enduring this panic would be.
The Northern Pacific was a hundred-million-dollar venture. It involved
the savings of hundreds of thousands of people—small bankers,
tradesmen, preachers, lawyers, doctors, widows, institutions all over
the land, and all resting on the faith and security of Jay Cooke. Once,
not unlike the Chicago fire map, Cowperwood had seen a grand prospectus
and map of the location of the Northern Pacific land-grant which Cooke
had controlled, showing a vast stretch or belt of territory extending
from Duluth—“The Zenith City of the Unsalted Seas,” as Proctor Knott,
speaking in the House of Representatives, had sarcastically called
it—through the Rockies and the headwaters of the Missouri to the
Pacific Ocean. He had seen how Cooke had ostensibly managed to get
control of this government grant, containing millions upon millions of
acres and extending fourteen hundred miles in length; but it was only a
vision of empire. There might be silver and gold and copper mines
there. The land was usable—would some day be usable. But what of it
now? It would do to fire the imaginations of fools with—nothing more.
It was inaccessible, and would remain so for years to come. No doubt
thousands had subscribed to build this road; but, too, thousands would
now fail if it had failed. Now the crash had come. The grief and the
rage of the public would be intense. For days and days and weeks and
months, normal confidence and courage would be gone. This was his hour.
This was his great moment. Like a wolf prowling under glittering,
bitter stars in the night, he was looking down into the humble folds of
simple men and seeing what their ignorance and their unsophistication
would cost them.
He hurried back to the exchange, the very same room in which only two
years before he had fought his losing fight, and, finding that his
partner and his brother had not yet come, began to sell everything in
sight. Pandemonium had broken loose. Boys and men were fairly tearing
in from all sections with orders from panic-struck brokers to sell,
sell, sell, and later with orders to buy; the various trading-posts
were reeling, swirling masses of brokers and their agents. Outside in
the street in front of Jay Cooke & Co., Clark & Co., the Girard
National Bank, and other institutions, immense crowds were beginning to
form. They were hurrying here to learn the trouble, to withdraw their
deposits, to protect their interests generally. A policeman arrested a
boy for calling out the failure of Jay Cooke & Co., but nevertheless
the news of the great disaster was spreading like wild-fire.
After each announcement, always, as in the past, when the gong had
compelled silence, the crowd broke into an ominous “Aw, aw, aw.”
When the time for closing came, his coat torn, his collar twisted
loose, his necktie ripped, his hat lost, he emerged sane, quiet,
steady-mannered.
“Well, Ed,” he inquired, meeting his brother, “how’d you make out?” The
latter was equally torn, scratched, exhausted.
He led the way to find Wingate and his brother Joe, and together they
were off, figuring up some of the larger phases of their purchases and
sales as they went.
And, as he predicted, the excitement did not end with the coming of the
night. The crowd lingered in front of Jay Cooke & Co.’s on Third Street
and in front of other institutions, waiting apparently for some
development which would be favorable to them. For the initiated the
center of debate and agitation was Green’s Hotel, where on the evening
of the eighteenth the lobby and corridors were crowded with bankers,
brokers, and speculators. The stock exchange had practically adjourned
to that hotel en masse. What of the morrow? Who would be the next to
fail? From whence would money be forthcoming? These were the topics
from each mind and upon each tongue. From New York was coming
momentarily more news of disaster. Over there banks and trust companies
were falling like trees in a hurricane. Cowperwood in his
perambulations, seeing what he could see and hearing what he could
hear, reaching understandings which were against the rules of the
exchange, but which were nevertheless in accord with what every other
person was doing, saw about him men known to him as agents of
Mollenhauer and Simpson, and congratulated himself that he would have
something to collect from them before the week was over. He might not
own a street-railway, but he would have the means to. He learned from
hearsay, and information which had been received from New York and
elsewhere, that things were as bad as they could be, and that there was
no hope for those who expected a speedy return of normal conditions. No
thought of retiring for the night entered until the last man was gone.
It was then practically morning.
The next day was Friday, and suggested many ominous things. Would it be
another Black Friday? Cowperwood was at his office before the street
was fairly awake. He figured out his program for the day to a nicety,
feeling strangely different from the way he had felt two years before
when the conditions were not dissimilar. Yesterday, in spite of the
sudden onslaught, he had made one hundred and fifty thousand dollars,
and he expected to make as much, if not more, to-day. There was no
telling what he could make, he thought, if he could only keep his small
organization in perfect trim and get his assistants to follow his
orders exactly. Ruin for others began early with the suspension of Fisk
& Hatch, Jay Cooke’s faithful lieutenants during the Civil War. They
had calls upon them for one million five hundred thousand dollars in
the first fifteen minutes after opening the doors, and at once closed
them again, the failure being ascribed to Collis P. Huntington’s
Central Pacific Railroad and the Chesapeake & Ohio. There was a
long-continued run on the Fidelity Trust Company. News of these facts,
and of failures in New York posted on ’change, strengthened the cause
Cowperwood was so much interested in; for he was selling as high as he
could and buying as low as he could on a constantly sinking scale. By
twelve o’clock he figured with his assistants that he had cleared one
hundred thousand dollars; and by three o’clock he had two hundred
thousand dollars more. That afternoon between three and seven he spent
adjusting his trades, and between seven and one in the morning, without
anything to eat, in gathering as much additional information as he
could and laying his plans for the future. Saturday morning came, and
he repeated his performance of the day before, following it up with
adjustments on Sunday and heavy trading on Monday. By Monday afternoon
at three o’clock he figured that, all losses and uncertainties to one
side, he was once more a millionaire, and that now his future lay clear
and straight before him.
As he sat at his desk late that afternoon in his office looking out
into Third Street, where a hurrying of brokers, messengers, and anxious
depositors still maintained, he had the feeling that so far as
Philadelphia and the life here was concerned, his day and its day with
him was over. He did not care anything about the brokerage business
here any more or anywhere. Failures such as this, and disasters such as
the Chicago fire, that had overtaken him two years before, had cured
him of all love of the stock exchange and all feeling for Philadelphia.
He had been very unhappy here in spite of all his previous happiness;
and his experience as a convict had made, him, he could see quite
plainly, unacceptable to the element with whom he had once hoped to
associate. There was nothing else to do, now that he had reestablished
himself as a Philadelphia business man and been pardoned for an offense
which he hoped to make people believe he had never committed, but to
leave Philadelphia to seek a new world.
“If I get out of this safely,” he said to himself, “this is the end. I
am going West, and going into some other line of business.” He thought
of street-railways, land speculation, some great manufacturing project
of some kind, even mining, on a legitimate basis.
It was with this thought that he went to visit Aileen, and to plan for
the future.
It was only three months later that a train, speeding through the
mountains of Pennsylvania and over the plains of Ohio and Indiana, bore
to Chicago and the West the young financial aspirant who, in spite of
youth and wealth and a notable vigor of body, was a solemn,
conservative speculator as to what his future might be. The West, as he
had carefully calculated before leaving, held much. He had studied the
receipts of the New York Clearing House recently and the disposition of
bank-balances and the shipment of gold, and had seen that vast
quantities of the latter metal were going to Chicago. He understood
finance accurately. The meaning of gold shipments was clear. Where
money was going trade was—a thriving, developing life. He wished to see
clearly for himself what this world had to offer.
What would you say was the intention of the overruling, intelligent,
constructive force which gives to Mycteroperca this ability? To fit it
to be truthful? To permit it to present an unvarying appearance which
all honest life-seeking fish may know? Or would you say that subtlety,
chicanery, trickery, were here at work? An implement of illusion one
might readily suspect it to be, a living lie, a creature whose business
it is to appear what it is not, to simulate that with which it has
nothing in common, to get its living by great subtlety, the power of
its enemies to forefend against which is little. The indictment is
fair.
The three witches that hailed Macbeth upon the blasted heath might in
turn have called to Cowperwood, “Hail to you, Frank Cowperwood, master
of a great railway system! Hail to you, Frank Cowperwood, builder of a
priceless mansion! Hail to you, Frank Cowperwood, patron of arts and
possessor of endless riches! You shall be famed hereafter.” But like
the Weird Sisters, they would have lied, for in the glory was also the
ashes of Dead Sea fruit—an understanding that could neither be inflamed
by desire nor satisfied by luxury; a heart that was long since wearied
by experience; a soul that was as bereft of illusion as a windless
moon. And to Aileen, as to Macduff, they might have spoken a more
pathetic promise, one that concerned hope and failure. To have and not
to have! All the seeming, and yet the sorrow of not having! Brilliant
society that shone in a mirage, yet locked its doors; love that eluded
as a will-o’-the-wisp and died in the dark. “Hail to you, Frank
Cowperwood, master and no master, prince of a world of dreams whose
reality was disillusion!” So might the witches have called, the bowl
have danced with figures, the fumes with vision, and it would have been
true. What wise man might not read from such a beginning, such an end?
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
be renamed.
Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
are located before using this ebook.
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation."
* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
works.
* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
1.F.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org